{Note
from the preparer of this etext: I have had to insert a view comments mainly in
regards to adjustments to fonts to allow for some of the characters in the
Indian names; you will find any of my own notes enclosed in these brackets--{}.
I have also renumbered the footnotes and placed them at the end of this e-text,
removing them from within the document where they fell at the end of each
corresponding page.}
LIFE
OF WILLIAM CAREY, Shoemaker & Missionary
BY
GEORGE SMITH C.I.E., LL.D.
FIRST
ISSUE OF THIS EDITION 1909
REPRINTED...1913,
1922
PREFACE
ON
the death of William Carey In 1834 Dr. Joshua Marshman promised to write the
Life of his great colleague, with whom he had held almost daily converse since
the beginning of the century, but he survived too short a time to begin the
work. In 1836 the Rev. Eustace Carey anticipated him by issuing what is little
better than a selection of mutilated letters and journals made at the request
of the Committee of the Baptist Missionary Society. It contains one passage of
value, however. Dr. Carey once said to his nephew, whose design he seems to
have suspected, “Eustace, if after my removal any one should think it worth his
while to write my Life, I will give you a criterion by which you may judge of
its correctness. If he give me credit for being a plodder he will describe me
justly. Anything beyond this will be too much. I can plod. I can persevere in
any definite pursuit. To this I owe everything.”
In
1859 Mr. John Marshman, after his final return to England, published The
Life and Times of Carey, Marshman, and Ward, a valuable history and defence
of the Serampore Mission, but rather a biography of his father than of Carey.
When
I first went to Serampore the great missionary had not been twenty years dead.
During my long residence there as Editor of the Friend of India, I came to
know, in most of its details, the nature of the work done by Carey for India
and for Christendom in the first third of the century. I began to collect such
materials for his Biography as were to be found in the office, the press, and
the college, and among the Native Christians and Brahman pundits whom he had
influenced. In addition to such materials and experience I have been favoured
with the use of many unpublished letters written by Carey or referring to him;
for which courtesy I here desire to thank Mrs. S. Carey, South Bank, Red Hill;
Frederick George Carey, Esq., LL.B., of Lincoln’s Inn; and the Rev. Jonathan P.
Carey of Tiverton.
My
Biographies of Carey of Serampore, Henry Martyn, Duff of Calcutta, and Wilson
of Bombay, cover a period of nearly a century and a quarter, from 1761 to 1878.
They have been written as contributions to that history of the Christian Church
of India which one of its native sons must some day attempt; and to the history
of English-speaking peoples, whom the Foreign Missions begun by Carey have made
the rulers and civilisers of the non-Christian world.
CONTENTS
PAGE
I. CAREY’S COLLEGE 1
II. THE BIRTH OF ENGLAND’S FOREIGN
MISSIONS 20
III. INDIA AS CAREY FOUND IT 40
IV. SIX YEARS IN NORTH BENGAL--MISSIONARY
AND INDIGO PLANTER 58
V. THE NEW CRUSADE--SERAMPORE AND THE
BROTHERHOOD 81
VI. THE FIRST NATIVE CONVERTS AND CHRISTIAN
SCHOOLS 96
VII. CALCUTTA AND THE MISSION CENTRES FROM
DELHI TO AMBOYNA 115
VIII.
CAREY’S FAMILY AND FRIENDS 134
IX. PROFESSOR OF SANSKRIT, BENGALI, AND
MARATHI 156
X. THE WYCLIF OF THE EAST--BIBLE
TRANSLATION 175
XI. WHAT CAREY DID FOR LITERATURE AND FOR
HUMANITY 201
XII. WHAT CAREY DID FOR SCIENCE--FOUNDER OF
THE AGRICULTURAL AND
HORTICULTURAL SOCIETY OF INDIA 216
XIII.
CAREY’S IMMEDIATE INFLUENCE IN GREAT BRITAIN AND AMERICA 241
XIV. CAREY AS AN EDUCATOR--THE FIRST
CHRISTIAN COLLEGE IN THE EAST 273
XV. CAREY’S CHRISTIAN UNIVERSITY FOR THE
PEOPLE OF INDIA 290
XVI. CAREY’S LAST DAYS
295
APPENDIX 318
INDEX 324
LIFE
OF WILLIAM CAREY, D.D.
CHAPTER
I
CAREY’S
COLLEGE
1761-1785
The
Heart of England--The Weaver Carey who became a Peer, and the weaver who was
father of William Carey--Early training in Paulerspury--Impressions made by him
on his sister--On his companions and the villagers--His experience as son of
the parish clerk--Apprenticed to a shoemaker of Hackleton--Poverty--Famous
shoemakers from Annianus and Crispin to Hans Sachs and Whittier--From
Pharisaism to Christ--The last shall be first--The dissenting preacher in the
parish clerk’s home--He studies Latin, Greek and Hebrew, Dutch and French--The
cobbler’s shed is Carey’s College.
WILLIAM
CAREY, the first of her own children of the Reformation whom England sent forth
as a missionary to India, where he became the most extensive translator of the
Bible and civiliser, was the son of a weaver, and was himself a village
shoemaker till he was twenty-eight years of age. He was born on the 17th August
1761, in the very midland of England, in the heart of the district which had
produced Shakspere, had fostered Wyclif and Hooker, had bred Fox and Bunyan,
and had for a time been the scene of the lesser lights of John Mason and
Doddridge, of John Newton and Thomas Scott. William Cowper, the poet of
missions, made the land his chosen home, writing Hope and The Task
in Olney, while the shoemaker was studying theology under Sutcliff on the
opposite side of the market-place. Thomas Clarkson, born a year before Carey,
was beginning his assaults on the slave-trade by translating into English his
Latin essay on the day-star of African liberty when the shoemaker, whom no
university knew, was writing his Enquiry into the Obligations of Christians
to use means for the Conversion of the Heathens.
William
Carey bore a name which had slowly fallen into forgetfulness after services to
the Stewarts, with whose cause it had been identified. Professor Stephens, of
Copenhagen, traces it to the Scando-Anglian Car, CAER or CARE, which became a
place-name as CAR-EY. Among scores of neighbours called William, William of
Car-ey would soon sink into Carey, and this would again become the family name.
In Denmark the name Caròe is common. The oldest English instance is the Cariet who coined money
in London for Æthelred II. in 1016. Certainly the name, through its forms of Crew,
Carew, Carey, and Cary, still prevails on the Irish coast--from which
depression of trade drove the family first to Yorkshire, then to the
Northamptonshire village of Yelvertoft, and finally to Paulerspury, farther
south--as well as over the whole Danegelt from Lincolnshire to Devonshire. If
thus there was Norse blood in William Carey it came out in his persistent
missionary daring, and it is pleasant even to speculate on the possibility of
such an origin in one who was all his Indian life indebted to Denmark for the
protection which alone made his career possible.
The
Careys who became famous in English history sprang from Devon. For two and a
half centuries, from the second Richard to the second Charles, they gave
statesmen and soldiers, scholars and bishops, to the service of their country.
Henry Carey, first cousin of Queen Elizabeth, was the common ancestor of two
ennobled houses long since extinct--the Earls of Dover and the Earls of
Monmouth. A third peerage won by the Careys has been made historic by the
patriotic counsels and self-sacrificing fate of Viscount Falkland, whose
representative was Governor of Bombay for a time. Two of the heroic Falkland’s
descendants, aged ladies, addressed a pathetic letter to Parliament about the
time that the great missionary died, praying that they might not be doomed to
starvation by being deprived of a crown pension of £80 a year. The older branch
of the Careys also had fallen on evil times, and it became extinct while the
future missionary was yet four years old. The seventh lord was a weaver when he
succeeded to the title, and he died childless. The eighth was a Dutchman who
had to be naturalised, and he was the last. The Careys fell lower still. One of
them bore to the brilliant and reckless Marquis of Halifax, Henry Carey, who
wrote one of the few English ballads that live. Another, the poet’s
granddaughter, was the mother of Edmund Kean, and he at first was known by her
name on the stage.
At
that time when the weaver became the lord the grandfather of the missionary was
parish clerk and first schoolmaster of the village of Paulerspury, eleven miles
south of Northampton, and near the ancient posting town of Towcester, on the
old Roman road from London to Chester. The free school was at the east or
“church end” of the village, which, after crossing the old Watling Street,
straggles for a mile over a sluggish burn to the “Pury end.” One son, Thomas,
had enlisted and was in Canada. Edmund Carey, the second, set up the loom on
which he wove the woollen cloth known as “tammy,” in a two-storied cottage.
There his eldest child, WILLIAM, was born, and lived for six years till his
father was appointed schoolmaster, when the family removed to the free
schoolhouse. The cottage was demolished in 1854 by one Richard Linnell, who
placed on the still meaner structure now occupying the site the memorial slab
that guides many visitors to the spot. The schoolhouse, in which William Carey
spent the eight most important years of his childhood till he was fourteen, and
the school made way for the present pretty buildings.
The
village surroundings and the country scenery coloured the whole of the boy’s
after life, and did much to make him the first agricultural improver and
naturalist of Bengal, which he became. The lordship of Pirie, as it was called
by Gitda, its Saxon owner, was given by the Conqueror, with much else, to his
natural son, William Peverel, as we see from the Domesday survey. His
descendants passed it on to Robert de Paveli, whence its present name, but in
Carey’s time it was held by the second Earl Bathurst, who was Lord Chancellor.
Up to the very schoolhouse came the royal forest of Whittlebury, its walks
leading north to the woods of Salcey, of Yardley Chase and Rockingham, from the
beeches which give Buckingham its name. Carey must have often sat under the
Queen’s Oak, still venerable in its riven form, where Edward IV., when hunting,
first saw Elizabeth, unhappy mother of the two princes murdered in the Tower.
The silent robbery of the people’s rights called “inclosures” has done much,
before and since Carey’s time, to sweep away or shut up the woodlands. The
country may be less beautiful, while the population has grown so that
Paulerspury has now nearly double the eight hundred inhabitants of a century
ago. But its oolitic hills, gently swelling to above 700 feet, and the valleys
of the many rivers which flow from this central watershed, west and east, are
covered with fat vegetation almost equally divided between grass and corn, with
green crops. The many large estates are rich in gardens and orchards. The
farmers, chiefly on small holdings, are famous for their shorthorns and
Leicester sheep. Except for the rapidly-developing production of iron from the
Lias, begun by the Romans, there is but one manufacture--that of shoes. It is
now centred by modern machinery and labour arrangements in Northampton itself,
which has 24,000 shoemakers, and in the other towns, but a century ago the
craft was common to every hamlet. For botany and agriculture, however,
Northamptonshire was the finest county in England, and young Carey had trodden
many a mile of it, as boy and man, before he left home for ever for Bengal.
Two
unfinished autobiographical sketches, written from India at the request of
Fuller and of Ryland, and letters of his youngest sister Mary, his favourite
“Polly” who survived him, have preserved for us in still vivid characters the
details of the early training of William Carey. He was the eldest of five
children. He was the special care of their grandmother, a woman of a delicate
nature and devout habits, who closed her sad widowhood in the weaver-son’s
cottage. Encompassed by such a living influence the grandson spent his first
six years. Already the child unconsciously showed the eager thirst for
knowledge, and perseverance in attaining his object, which made him chiefly
what he became. His mother would often be awoke in the night by the pleasant
lisping of a voice “casting accompts; so intent was he from childhood in the
pursuit of knowledge. Whatever he began he finished; difficulties never seemed
to discourage his mind.” On removal to the ancestral schoolhouse the boy had a
room to himself. His sister describes it as full of insects stuck in every
corner that he might observe their progress. His many birds he entrusted to her
care when he was from home. In this picture we see the exact foreshadowing of
the man. “Though I often used to kill his birds by kindness, yet when he saw my
grief for it he always indulged me with the pleasure of serving them again; and
often took me over the dirtiest roads to get at a plant or an insect. He never
walked out, I think, when quite a boy, without observation on the hedges as he passed;
and when he took up a plant of any kind he always observed it with care. Though
I was but a child I well remember his pursuits. He always seemed in earnest in
his recreations as well as in school. He was generally one of the most active
in all the amusements and recreations that boys in general pursue. He was
always beloved by the boys about his own age.” To climb a certain tree was the
object of their ambition; he fell often in the attempt, but did not rest till
he had succeeded. His Uncle Peter was a gardener in the same village, and gave
him his first lessons in botany and horticulture. He soon became responsible
for his father’s official garden, till it was the best kept in the
neighbourhood. Wherever after that he lived, as boy or man, poor or in comfort,
William Carey made and perfected his garden, and always for others, until he
created at Serampore the botanical park which for more than half a century was
unique in Southern Asia.
We
have in a letter from the Manse, Paulerspury, a tradition of the impression
made on the dull rustics by the dawning genius of the youth whom they but dimly
comprehended. He went amongst them under the nickname of Columbus, and they
would say, “Well, if you won’t play, preach us a sermon,” which he would do.
Mounting on an old dwarf witch-elm about seven feet high, where several could
sit, he would hold forth. This seems to have been a resort of his for reading,
his favourite occupation. The same authority tells how, when suffering
toothache, he allowed his companions to drag the tooth from his head with a
violent jerk, by tying around it a string attached to a wheel used to grind
malt, to which they gave a sharp turn.
The
boy’s own peculiar room was a little library as well as museum of natural
history. He possessed a few books, which indeed were many for those days, but
he borrowed more from the whole country-side. Recalling the eight years of his
intellectual apprenticeship till he was fourteen, from the serene height of his
missionary standard, he wrote long after:--“I chose to read books of science,
history, voyages, etc., more than any others. Novels and plays always disgusted
me, and I avoided them as much as I did books of religion, and perhaps from the
same motive. I was better pleased with romances, and this circumstance made me
read the Pilgrim’s Progress with eagerness, though to no purpose.” The
new era, of which he was to be the aggressive spiritual representative from
Christendom, had not dawned. Walter Scott was ten years his junior. Captain
Cook had not discovered the Sandwich Islands, and was only returning from the
second of his three voyages while Carey was still at school. The church
services and the watchfulness of his father supplied the directly moral
training which his grandmother had begun.
The
Paulerspury living of St. James is a valuable rectory in the gift of New
College, Oxford. Originally built in Early English, and rebuilt in 1844, the
church must have presented a still more venerable appearance a century ago than
it does now, with
its noble tower in the Perpendicular, and chancel in the Decorated style,
dominating all the county. Then, as still, effigies of a Paveli and his wife,
and of Sir Arthur Throckmorton and his wife recumbent head to head, covered a
large altar-tomb in the chancel, and with the Bathurst and other
monuments called forth first the fear and then the pride of the parish clerk’s
eldest son. In those days the clerk had just below the pulpit the desk from
which his sonorous “Amen” sounded forth, while his family occupied a low
gallery rising from the same level up behind the pulpit. There the boys of the
free school also could be under the master’s eye, and with instruments of music
like those of King David, but now banished from even village churches, would
accompany him in the doggerel strains of Sternhold and Hopkins, immortalised by
Cowper. To the far right the boys could see and long for the ropes under the
tower, in which the bell-ringers of his day, as of Bunyan’s not long before,
delighted. The preaching of the time did nothing more for young Carey than for
the rest of England and Scotland, whom the parish church had not driven into
dissent or secession. But he could not help knowing the Prayer-Book, and
especially its psalms and lessons, and he was duly confirmed. The family
training, too, was exceptionally scriptural, though not evangelical. “I had
many stirrings of mind occasioned by being often obliged to read books of a
religious character; and, having been accustomed from my infancy to read the
Scriptures, I had a considerable acquaintance therewith, especially with the
historical parts.” The first result was to make him despise dissenters. But,
undoubtedly, this eldest son of the schoolmaster and the clerk of the parish
had at fourteen received an education from parents, nature, and books which,
with his habits of observation, love of reading, and perseverance, made him
better instructed than most boys of fourteen far above the peasant class to
which he belonged.
Buried
in this obscure village in the dullest period of the dullest of all centuries,
the boy had no better prospect before him than that of a weaver or labourer, or
possibly a schoolmaster like one of his uncles in the neighbouring town of
Towcester. When twelve years of age, with his uncle there, he might have formed
one of the crowd which listened to John Wesley, who, in 1773 and then aged
seventy, visited the prosperous posting town. Paulerspury could indeed boast of
one son, Edward Bernard, D.D., who, two centuries before, had made for himself
a name in Oxford, where he was Savilian Professor of Astronomy. But Carey was
not a Scotsman, and therefore the university was not for such as he. Like his
school-fellows, he seemed born to the English labourer’s fate of five shillings
a week, and the poorhouse in sickness and old age. From this, in the first
instance, he was saved by a disease which affected his face and hands most
painfully whenever he was long exposed to the sun. For seven years he had
failed to find relief. His attempt at work in the field were for two years
followed by distressing agony at night. He was now sixteen, and his father
sought out a good man who would receive him as apprentice to the shoemaking
trade. The man was not difficult to find, in the hamlet of Hackleton, nine
miles off, in the person of one Clarke Nichols. The lad afterwards described
him as “a strict churchman and, what I thought, a very moral man. It is true he
sometimes drank rather too freely, and generally employed me in carrying out
goods on the Lord’s Day morning; but he was an inveterate enemy to lying, a
vice to which I was awfully addicted.” The senior apprentice was a dissenter,
and the master and his boys gave much of the talk over their work to disputes
upon religious subjects. Carey “had always looked upon dissenters with
contempt. I had, moreover, a share of pride sufficient for a thousand times my
knowledge; I therefore always scorned to have the worst in an argument, and the
last word was assuredly mine. I also made up in positive assertion what was
wanting in argument, and generally came off with triumph. But I was often
convinced afterwards that although I had the last word my antagonist had the
better of the argument, and on that account felt a growing uneasiness and
stings of conscience gradually increasing.” The dissenting apprentice was soon
to be the first to lead him to Christ.
William
Carey was a shoemaker during the twelve years of his life from sixteen to
twenty-eight, till he went to Leicester. Poverty, which the grace of God used
to make him a preacher also from his eighteenth year, compelled him to work
with his hands in leather all the week, and to tramp many a weary mile to
Northampton and Kettering carrying the product of his labour. At one time, when
minister of Moulton, he kept a school by day, made or cobbled shoes by night,
and preached on Sunday. So Paul had made tents of his native Cilician goatskin
in the days when infant Christianity was chased from city to city, and the
cross was a reproach only less bitter, however, than evangelical dissent in
Christian England in the eighteenth century. The providence which made and kept
young Carey so long a shoemaker, put him in the very position in which he could
most fruitfully receive and nurse the sacred fire that made him the most
learned scholar and Bible translator of his day in the East. The same
providence thus linked him to the earliest Latin missionaries of Alexandria, of
Asia Minor, and of Gaul, who were shoemakers, and to a succession of scholars
and divines, poets and critics, reformers and philanthropists, who have used
the shoemaker’s life to become illustrious.1 St. Mark chose for his successor,
as first bishop of Alexandria, that Annianus whom he had been the means of
converting to Christ when he found him at the cobbler’s stall. The Talmud
commemorates the courage and the wisdom of “Rabbi Jochanan, the shoemaker,”
whose learning soon after found a parallel in Carey’s. Like Annianus, “a poor
shoemaker named Alexander, despised in the world but great in the sight of God,
who did honour to so exalted a station in the Church,” became famous as Bishop
of Comana in Cappadocia, as saint, preacher, and missionary-martyr. Soon after
there perished in the persecutions of Diocletian, at Soissons, the two
missionary brothers whose name of Crispin has ever since been gloried in by the
trade, which they chose at once as a means of livelihood and of helping their
poor converts. The Hackleton apprentice was still a child when the great Goethe
was again adding to the then artificial literature of his country his own true
predecessor, Hans Sachs, the shoemaker of Nürnberg, the friend of
Luther, the meistersinger of the Reformation. And it was another German
shoemaker, Boehme, whose exalted theosophy as expounded by William Law became
one link in the chain that drew Carey to Christ, as it influenced Wesley and
Whitefield, Samuel Johnson and Coleridge. George Fox was only nineteen when,
after eight years’ service with a shoemaker in Drayton, Leicestershire, not far
from Carey’s county, he heard the voice from heaven which sent him forth in
1643 to preach righteousness, temperance, and judgment to come, till Cromwell
sought converse with him, and the Friends became a power among men.
Carlyle
has, in characteristic style, seized on the true meaning that was in the man
when he made to himself a suit of leather and became the modern hero of Sartor
Resartus. The words fit William Carey’s case even better than that of
George Fox:--“Sitting in his stall, working on tanned hides, amid pincers,
paste-horns, rosin, swine-bristles, and a nameless flood of rubbish, this youth
had nevertheless a Living Spirit belonging to him; also an antique Inspired
Volume, through which, as through a window, it could look upwards and discern
its celestial Home.” That “shoe-shop, had men known it, was a holier place than
any Vatican or Loretto-shrine...Stitch away, every prick of that little
instrument is pricking into the heart of slavery.” Thirty-six years after Fox
had begun to wear his leathern doublet he directed all Friends everywhere that
had Indians or blacks to preach the Gospel to them.
But
it would be too long to tell the list of workers in what has been called the
gentle craft, whom the cobbler’s stall, with its peculiar opportunities for
rhythmic meditation, hard thinking, and oft harder debating, has prepared for
the honours of literature and scholarship, of philanthropy and reform. To
mention only Carey’s contemporaries, the career of these men ran parallel at
home with his abroad--Thomas Shillitoe, who stood before magistrates, bishops,
and such sovereigns as George III. and IV. and the Czar Alexander I. in the
interests of social reform; and John Pounds, the picture of whom as the founder
of ragged schools led Thomas Guthrie, when he stumbled on it in an inn in
Anstruther, to do the same Christlike work in Scotland. Coleridge, who when at
Christ’s Hospital was ambitious to be a shoemaker’s apprentice, was right when
he declared that shoemakers had given to the world a larger number of eminent
men than any other handicraft. Whittier’s own early experience in Massachusetts
fitted him to be the poet-laureate of the craft which for some years he
adorned. His Songs of Labour, published in 1850, contain the best
English lines on shoemakers since Shakspere put into the mouth of King Henry V.
the address on the eve of Agincourt, which begins: “This day is called the
feast of Crispin.” But Whittier, Quaker, philanthropist, and countryman of
Judson though he was, might have found a place for Carey when he sang so well
of others:--
“Thy
songs, Hans Sachs, are living yet,
In strong and hearty German;
And
Bloomfield’s lay and Gifford’s wit
And patriot fame of Sherman;
“Still
from his book, a mystic seer,
The soul of Behmen teaches,
And
England’s priestcraft shakes to hear
Of Fox’s leathern breeches.”
The
confessions of Carey, made in the spiritual humility and self-examination of
his later life, form a parallel to the Grace Abounding to the Chief of
Sinners, the little classic of John Bunyan second only to his Pilgrim’s
Progress. The young Pharisee, who entered Hackleton with such hate in his
heart to dissenters that he would have destroyed their meeting-place, who
practised “lying, swearing, and other sins,” gradually yielded so far to his
brother apprentice’s importunity as to leave these off, to try to pray
sometimes when alone, to attend church three times a day, and to visit the
dissenting prayer-meeting. Like the zealot who thought to do God service by
keeping the whole law, Carey lived thus for a time, “not doubting but this
would produce ease of mind and make me acceptable to God.” What revealed him to
himself was an incident which he tells in language recalling at once Augustine
and one of the subtlest sketches of George Eliot, in which the latter uses her
half-knowledge of evangelical faith to stab the very truth that delivered Paul
and Augustine, Bunyan and Carey, from the antinomianism of the Pharisee:--
“A
circumstance which I always reflect on with a mixture of horror and gratitude
occurred about this time, which, though greatly to my dishonour, I must relate.
It being customary in that part of the country for apprentices to collect
Christmas boxes [donations] from the tradesmen with whom their masters have
dealings, I was permitted to collect these little sums. When I applied to an
ironmonger, he gave me the choice of a shilling or a sixpence; I of course
chose the shilling, and putting it in my pocket, went away. When I had got a
few shillings my next care was to purchase some little articles for myself, I
have forgotten what. But then, to my sorrow, I found that my shilling was a
brass one. I paid for the things which I bought by using a shilling of my
master’s. I now found that I had exceeded my stock by a few pence. I expected
severe reproaches from my master, and therefore came to the resolution to
declare strenuously that the bad money was his. I well remember the struggles
of mind which I had on this occasion, and that I made this deliberate sin a
matter of prayer to God as I passed over the fields towards home! I there
promised that, if God would but get me clearly over this, or, in other words,
help me through with the theft, I would certainly for the future leave off all
evil practices; but this theft and consequent lying appeared to me so
necessary, that they could not be dispensed with.
“A
gracious God did not get me safe through. My master sent the other
apprentice to investigate the matter. The ironmonger acknowledged the giving me
the shilling, and I was therefore exposed to shame, reproach, and inward remorse,
which preyed upon my mind for a considerable time. I at this time sought the
Lord, perhaps much more earnestly than ever, but with shame and fear. I was
quite ashamed to go out, and never, till I was assured that my conduct was not
spread over the town, did I attend a place of worship.
“I
trust that, under these circumstances, I was led to see much more of myself
than I had ever done before, and to seek for mercy with greater earnestness. I
attended prayer-meetings only, however, till February 10, 1779, which being
appointed a day of fasting and prayer, I attended worship on that day. Mr.
Chater [congregationalist] of Olney preached, but from what text I have
forgotten. He insisted much on following Christ entirely, and enforced his
exhortation with that passage, ‘Let us therefore go out unto him without the
camp, bearing his reproach.’--Heb. xiii. 13. I think I had a desire to follow
Christ; but one idea occurred to my mind on hearing those words which broke me
off from the Church of England. The idea was certainly very crude, but useful
in bringing me from attending a lifeless, carnal ministry to one more
evangelical. I concluded that the Church of England, as established by law, was
the camp in which all were protected from the scandal of the cross, and that I
ought to bear the reproach of Christ among the dissenters; and accordingly I
always afterwards attended divine worship among them.”
At
eighteen Carey was thus emptied of self and there was room for Christ. In a
neighbouring village he consorted much for a time with some followers of
William Law, who had not long before passed away in a village in the
neighbourhood, and select passages from whose writings the Moravian minister,
Francis Okely, of Northampton, had versified. These completed the negative
process. “I felt ruined and helpless.” Then to his spiritual eyes, purged of
self, there appeared the Crucified One; and to his spiritual intelligence there
was given the Word of God. The change was that wrought on Paul by a Living
Person. It converted the hypocritical Pharisee into the evangelical preacher;
it turned the vicious peasant into the most self-denying saint; it sent the
village shoemaker far off to the Hindoos.
But
the process was slow; it had been so even in Paul’s case. Carey found encouragement
in intercourse with some old Christians in Hackleton, and he united with a few
of them, including his fellow-apprentice, in forming a congregational church.
The state of the parish may be imagined from its recent history. Hackleton is
part of Piddington, and the squire had long appropriated the living of £300 a
year, the parsonage, the glebe, and all tithes, sending his house minister “at
times” to do duty. A Certificate from Northamptonshire, against the
pluralities and other such scandals, published in 1641, declared that not a
child or servant in Hackleton or Piddington could say the Lord’s Prayer. Carey
sought the preaching of Doddridge’s successor at Northampton, of a Baptist
minister at Road, and of Scott the commentator, then at Ravenstone. He had
found peace, but was theologically “inquisitive and unsatisfied.” Fortunately,
like Luther, he “was obliged to draw all from the Bible alone.”
When,
at twenty years of age, Carey was slowly piecing together “the doctrines in the
Word of God” into something like a system which would at once satisfy his own
spiritual and intellectual needs, and help him to preach to others, a little
volume was published, of which he wrote:--”I do not remember ever to have read
any book with such raptures.” It was Help to Zion’s Travellers; being an
attempt to remove various Stumbling-Blocks out of the Way, relating to
Doctrinal, Experimental, and Practical Religion, by Robert Hall. The writer
was the father of the greater Robert Hall, a venerable man, who, in his village
church of Arnsby, near Leicester, had already taught Carey how to preach. The
book is described as an “attempt to relieve discouraged Christians” in a day of
gloominess and perplexity, that they might devote themselves to Christ through
life as well as be found in Him in death. Carey made a careful synopsis of it
in an exquisitely neat hand on the margin of each page. The worm-eaten copy,
which he treasured even in India, is now deposited in Bristol College.
A
Calvinist of the broad missionary type of Paul, Carey somewhat suddenly,
according to his own account, became a Baptist. “I do not recollect having read
anything on the subject till I applied to Mr. Ryland, senior, to baptise me. He
lent me a pamphlet, and turned me over to his son,” who thus told the story
when the Baptist Missionary Society held its first public meeting in
London:--“October 5th, 1783: I baptised in the river Nen, a little beyond Dr.
Doddridge’s meeting-house at Northampton, a poor journeyman shoemaker, little
thinking that before nine years had elapsed, he would prove the first
instrument of forming a society for sending missionaries from England to preach
the gospel to the heathen. Such, however, as the event has proved, was the
purpose of the Most High, who selected for this work not the son of one of our
most learned ministers, nor of one of the most opulent of our dissenting
gentlemen, but the son of a parish clerk.”
The
spot may still be visited at the foot of the hill, where the Nen fed the moat
of the old castle, in which many a Parliament sat from the days of King John.
The text of that morning’s sermon happened to be the Lord’s saying, “Many first
shall be last, and the last first,” which asserts His absolute sovereignty in
choosing and in rewarding His missionaries, and introduces the parable of the
labourers in the vineyard. As Carey wrote in the fulness of his fame, that the
evangelical doctrines continued to be the choice of his heart, so he never
wavered in his preference for the Baptist division of the Christian host. But
from the first he enjoyed the friendship of Scott and Newton, and of his
neighbour Mr. Robinson of St. Mary’s, Leicester, and we shall see him in India
the centre of the Episcopal and Presbyterian chaplains and missionaries from
Martyn Wilson to Lacroix and Duff. His controversial spirit died with the
youthful conceit and self-righteousness of which it is so often the birth. When
at eighteen he learned to know himself, he became for ever humble. A zeal like
that of his new-found Master took its place, and all the energy of his nature,
every moment of his time, was directed to setting Him forth.
In
his monthly visits to the father-house at Paulerspury the new man in him could
not be hid. His sister gives us a vivid sketch of the lad, whose going over to the
dissenters was resented by the formal and stern clerk, and whose evangelicalism
was a reproach to the others.
“At
this time he was increasingly thoughtful, and very was jealous for the Lord of
Hosts. Like Gideon, he seemed for throwing down all the altars of Baal in one
night. When he came home we used to wonder at the change. We knew that before
he was rather inclined to persecute the faith he now seemed to wish to
propagate. At first, perhaps, his zeal exceeded the bounds of prudence; but he
felt the importance of things we were strangers to, and his natural disposition
was to pursue earnestly what he undertook, so that it was not to be wondered
at, though we wondered at the change. He stood alone in his father’s house for
some years. After a time he asked permission to have family prayer when he came
home to see us, a favour which he very readily had granted. Often have I felt
my pride rise while he was engaged in prayer, at the mention of those words in
Isaiah, ‘that all our righteousness was like filthy rags.’ I did not think he
thought his so, but looked on me and the family as filthy, not himself
and his party. Oh, what pride is in the human heart! Nothing but my love to my
brother would have kept me from showing my resentment.”
“A
few of the friends of religion wished our brother to exercise his gifts by
speaking to a few friends in a house licensed at Pury; which he did with great
acceptance. The next morning a neighbour of ours, a very pious woman, came in
to congratulate my mother on the occasion, and to speak of the Lord’s goodness
in calling her son, and my brother, two such near neighbours, to the
same noble calling. My mother replied, ‘What, do you think he will be a
preacher?’ ‘Yes,’ she replied, ‘and a great one, I think, if spared.’ From that
time till he was settled at Moulton he regularly preached once a month at Pury
with much acceptance. He was at that time in his twentieth year, and married.
Our parents were always friendly to religion; yet, on some accounts, we should
rather have wished him to go from home than come home to preach. I do not think
I ever heard him, though my younger brother and my sister, I think, generally
did. Our father much wished to hear his son, if he could do it unseen by him or
any one. It was not long before an opportunity offered, and he embraced it.
Though he was a man that never discovered any partiality for the abilities of
his children, but rather sometimes went too far on the other hand, that often
tended a little to discourage them, yet we were convinced that he approved of
what he heard, and was highly gratified by it.”
In
Hackleton itself his expositions of Scripture were so valued that the people,
he writes, “being ignorant, sometimes applauded to my great injury.” When in
poverty, so deep that he fasted all that day because he had not a penny to buy
a dinner, he attended a meeting of the Association of Baptist Churches at
Olney, not far off. There he first met with his lifelong colleague, the future
secretary of the mission, Andrew Fuller, the young minister of Soham, who
preached on being men in understanding, and there it was arranged that he
should preach regularly to a small congregation at Earls Barton, six miles from
Hackleton. His new-born humility made him unable to refuse the duty, which he discharged
for more than three years while filling his cobbler’s stall at Hackleton all
the week, and frequently preaching elsewhere also. The secret of his power
which drew the Northamptonshire peasants and craftsmen to the feet of their
fellow was this, that he studied the portion of Scripture, which he read every
morning at his private devotions, in Hebrew, Greek, and Latin.
This
was Carey’s “college.” On the death of his first master, when he was eighteen,
he had transferred his apprenticeship to a Mr. T. Old. Hackleton stands on the
high road from Bedford and Olney to Northampton, and Thomas Scott was in the
habit of resting at Mr. Old’s on his not infrequent walks from Olney, where he
had succeeded John Newton. There he had no more attentive listener or
intelligent talker than the new journeyman, who had been more influenced by his
preaching at Ravenstone than by that of any other man. Forty years after, just
before Scott’s death, Dr. Ryland gave him this message from Carey:--“If there
be anything of the work of God in my soul, I owe much of it to his preaching
when I first set out in the ways of the Lord;” to which this reply was sent: “I
am surprised as well as gratified at your message from Dr. Carey. He heard me
preach only a few times, and that as far as I know in my rather irregular
excursions; though I often conversed and prayed in his presence, and
endeavoured to answer his sensible and pertinent inquiries when at Hackleton.
But to have suggested even a single useful hint to such a mind as his must be
considered as a high privilege and matter of gratitude.” Scott had previously
written this more detailed account of his intercourse with the preaching
shoemaker, whom he first saw when he called on Mr. Old to tell him of the
welfare of his mother:
“When
I went into the cottage I was soon recognised, and Mr. Old came in, with a
sensible-looking lad in his working-dress. I at first rather wondered to see
him enter, as he seemed young, being, I believe, little of his age. We,
however, entered into very interesting conversation, especially respecting my
parishioner, their relative, and the excellent state of her mind, and the
wonder of divine grace in the conversion of one who had been so very many years
considered as a self-righteous Pharisee. I believe I endeavoured to show that
the term was often improperly applied to conscientious but ignorant inquirers,
who are far from self-satisfied, and who, when the Gospel is set before them,
find the thing which they had long been groping after. However that may be, I
observed the lad who entered with Mr. Old riveted in attention with every mark
and symptom of intelligence and feeling; saying little, but modestly asking now
and then an appropriate question. I took occasion, before I went forward, to inquire
after him, and found that, young as he was, he was a member of the church at
Hackleton, and looked upon as a very consistent and promising character. I
lived at Olney till the end of 1785; and in the course of that time I called
perhaps two or three times each year at Mr. Old’s, and was each time more and
more struck with the youth’s conduct, though I said little; but, before I left
Olney, Mr. Carey was out of his engagement with Mr. Old. I found also that he
was sent out as a probationary preacher, and preached at Moulton; and I said to
all to whom I had access, that he would, if I could judge, prove no ordinary
man. Yet, though I often met both old Mr. Ryland, the present Dr. Ryland, Mr.
Hall, Mr. Fuller, and knew almost every step taken in forming your Missionary
Society, and though I sometimes preached very near Moulton, it so happened that
I do not recollect having met with him any more, till he came to my house in
London with Mr. Thomas, to desire me to use what little influence I had with
Charles Grant, Esq., to procure them licence to go in the Company’s ships as
missionaries to the British settlements in India, perhaps in 1792. My little
influence was of no avail. What I said of Mr. Carey so far satisfied Mr. Grant
that he said, if Mr. Carey was going alone, or with one equally to be depended
on along with him, he would not oppose him; but his strong disapprobation of
Mr. T., on what ground I knew not, induced his negative. I believe Mr. Old died
soon after I left Olney, if not just before; and his shop, which was a little
building apart from the house, was suffered to go to decay. While in this state
I several times passed it, and said to my sons and others with me, that is Mr.
Carey’s college.”
This
cobbler’s shed which was Carey’s college has been since restored, but two of
the original walls still stand, forming the corner in which he sat, opposite
the window that looks out into the garden he carefully kept. Here, when his
second master died, Carey succeeded to the business, charging himself with the
care of the widow, and marrying the widow’s sister, Dorothy or Dolly Placket.
He was only twenty when he took upon himself such burdens, in the neighbouring
church of Piddington, a village to which he afterwards moved his shop. Never
had minister, missionary, or scholar a less sympathetic mate, due largely to
that latent mental disease which in India carried her off; but for more than
twenty years the husband showed her loving reverence. As we stand in the
Hackleton shed, over which Carey placed the rude signboard prepared by his own
hands, and now in the library of Regent’s Park College, “Second Hand Shoes
Bought and--,”2 we can realise the low estate to which Carey fell, even below
his father’s loom and schoolhouse, and from which he was called to become the apostle
of North India as Schwartz was of the South.
How
was this shed his college? We have seen that he brought with him from his
native village an amount of information, habits of observation, and a knowledge
of books unusual in rustics of that day, and even of the present time. At
twelve he made his first acquaintance with a language other than his own, when
he mastered the short grammar in Dyche’s Latine Vocabulary, and
committed nearly the whole book to memory. When urging him to take the
preaching at Barton, Mr. Sutcliff of Olney gave him Ruddiman’s Latin Grammar.
The one alleviation of his lot under the coarse but upright Nichols was found
in his master’s small library. There he began to study Greek. In a New
Testament commentary he found Greek words, which he carefully transcribed and
kept until he should next visit home, where a youth whom dissipation had
reduced from college to weaving explained both the words and their terminations
to him. All that he wanted was such beginnings. Hebrew he seems to have learned
by the aid of the neighbouring ministers; borrowing books from them, and
questioning them “pertinently,” as he did Scott.3 At the end of Hopkins’s Three
Sermons on the Effects of Sin on the Universe, preached in 1759, he had
made this entry on 9th August 1787--“Gulielm. Careius perlegit.”
He starved himself to purchase a few books at the sale which attended Dr.
Ryland’s removal from Northampton to Bristol. In an old woman’s cottage he
found a Dutch quarto, and from that he so taught himself the language that in
1789 he translated for Ryland a discourse on the Gospel Offer sent to him by
the evangelical Dr. Erskine of Edinburgh. The manuscript is in an extremely
small character, unlike what might have been expected from one who had wrought
with his hands for eight years. French he acquired, sufficiently for literary
purposes, in three weeks from the French version of Ditton on the Resurrection,
which he purchased for a few coppers. He had the linguistic gift which soon
after made the young carpenter Mezzofanti of Bologna famous and a cardinal. But
the gift would have been buried in the grave of his penury and his
circumstances had his trade been almost any other, and had he not been impelled
by the most powerful of all motives. He never sat on his stall without his book
before him, nor did he painfully toil with his wallet of new-made shoes to the
neighbouring towns or return with leather without conning over his
lately-acquired knowledge, and making it for ever, in orderly array, his own.
He so taught his evening school and his Sunday congregations that the teaching
to him, like writing to others, stereotyped or lighted up the truths. Indeed,
the school and the cobbling often went on together--a fact commemorated in the
addition to the Hackleton signboard of the Piddington nail on which he used to
fix his thread while teaching the children.
But
that which sanctified and directed the whole throughout a working life of more
than half a century, was the missionary idea and the missionary consecration. With
a caution not often shown at that time by bishops in laying hands on those whom
they had passed for deacon’s orders, the little church at Olney thus dealt with
the Father of Modern Missions before they would recognise his call and send him
out “to preach the gospel wherever God in His providence might call him:”
“June
17, 1785.--A request from William Carey of Moulton, in Northamptonshire, was
taken into consideration. He has been and still is in connection with a society
of people at Hackleton. He is occasionally engaged with acceptance in various
places in speaking the Word. He bears a very good moral character. He is
desirous of being sent out from some reputable church of Christ into the work
of the ministry. The principal Question was--‘In what manner shall we receive
him? by a letter from the people of Hackleton, or on a profession of faith,
etc.?’ The final resolution of it was left to another church Meeting.
“July
14--Ch. Meeting. W. Carey appeared before the Church, and having given a
satisfactory account of the work of God upon his soul, he was admitted a
member. He had been formerly baptised by the Rev. Mr. Ryland, jun., of
Northampton. He was invited by the Church to preach in public once next Lord’s
Day.
“July
17.--Ch. Meeting, Lord’s Day Evening. W. Carey, in consequence of a request
from the Church, preached this Evening. After which it was resolved that he
should be allowed to go on preaching at those places where he has been for some
time employed, and that he should engage again on suitable occasions for some
time before us, in order that farther trial may be made of ministerial gifts.
“June
16, 1786.--C.M. The case of Bror. Carey was considered, and an unanimous
satisfaction with his ministerial abilities being expressed, a vote was passed
to call him to the Ministry at a proper time.
“August
10.--Ch. Meeting. This evening our Brother William Carey was called to the work
of the Ministry, and sent out by the Church to preach the Gospel, wherever God
in His providence might call him.
“April
29, 1787.--Ch. M. After the Orde. our Brother William Carey was dismissed to
the Church of Christ at Moulton in Northamptonshire with a view to his
Ordination there.”
These
were the last years at Olney of William Cowper before he removed to the Throckmortons’
house at Weston village, two miles distant. Carey must often have seen the poet
during the twenty years which he spent in the corner house of the
market-square, and in the walks around. He must have read the poems of 1782,
which for the first time do justice to missionary enterprise. He must have
hailed what Mrs. Browning calls “the deathless singing” which in 1785, in The
Task, opened a new era in English literature. He may have been fired with
the desire to imitate Whitefield, in the description of whom, though reluctant
to name him, Cowper really anticipated Carey himself:--
“He
followed Paul; his zeal a kindred flame,
His apostolic charity the same;
Like him crossed cheerfully tempestuous seas,
Forsaking country, kindred, friends and ease;
Like him he laboured and, like him, content
To bear it, suffered shame where’er he went.”
CHAPTER
II
THE
BIRTH OF ENGLAND’S FOREIGN MISSIONS
1785-1792
Moulton
the Mission’s birthplace--Carey’s fever and poverty--His Moulton school--Fired
with the missionary idea--His very large missionary map--Fuller’s confession of
the aged and respectable ministers’ opposition--Old Mr. Ryland’s rebuke--Driven
to publish his Enquiry--Its literary character--Carey’s survey of the
world in 1788--His motives, difficulties, and plans--Projects the first
Missionary Society--Contrasted with his predecessors from Erasmus--Prayer
concert begun in Scotland in 1742--Jonathan Edwards--The Northamptonshire
Baptist movement in 1784--Andrew Fuller--The Baptists, Particular and
General--Antinomian and Socinian extremes opposed to Missions--Met by Fuller’s
writings and Clipstone sermon--Carey’s agony at continued delay--His work in
Leicester--His sermon at Nottingham--Foundation of Baptist Missionary Society
at last--Kettering and Jerusalem.
THE
north road, which runs for twelve miles from Northampton to Kettering, passes
through a country known last century for the doings of the Pytchley Hunt.
Stories, by no means exaggerated, of the deep drinking and deeper play of the club,
whose gatehouse now stands at the entrance of Overstone Park, were rife, when
on Lady Day 1785 William Carey became Baptist preacher of Moulton village, on
the other side of the road. Moulton was to become the birthplace of the modern
missionary idea; Kettering, of evangelical missionary action.
No
man in England had apparently a more wretched lot or more miserable prospects
than he. He had started in life as a journeyman shoemaker at eighteen, burdened
with a payment to his first master’s widow which his own kind heart had led him
to offer, and with the price of his second master’s stock and business. Trade
was good for the moment, and he had married, before he was twenty, one who
brought him the most terrible sorrow a man can bear. He had no sooner completed
a large order for which his predecessor had contracted than it was returned on
his hands. From place to place he wearily trudged, trying to sell the shoes.
Fever carried off his first child and brought himself so near to the grave that
he sent for his mother to help in the nursing. At Piddington he worked early
and late at his garden, but ague, caused by a neighbouring marsh, returned and
left him so bald that he wore a wig thereafter until his voyage to India.
During his preaching for more than three years at Barton, which involved a walk
of sixteen miles, he did not receive from the poor folks enough to pay for the
clothes he wore out in their service. His younger brother delicately came to
his help, and he received the gift with a pathetic tenderness. But a calling
which at once starved him, in spite of all his method and perseverance, and
cramped the ardour of his soul for service to the Master who had revealed
Himself in him, became distasteful. He gladly accepted an invitation from the
somewhat disorganised church at Moulton to preach to them. They could offer him
only about £10 a year, supplemented by £5 from a London fund. But the
schoolmaster had just left, and Carey saw in that fact a new hope. For a time
he and his family managed to live on an income which is estimated as never
exceeding £36 a year. We find this passage in a printed appeal made by the
“very poor congregation” for funds to repair and enlarge the chapel to which
the new pastor’s preaching had attracted a crowd:--“The peculiar situation of
our minister, Mr. Carey, renders it impossible for us to send him far abroad to
collect the Contributions of the Charitable; as we are able to raise him but
about Ten Pounds per Annum, so that he is obliged to keep a School for his
Support: And as there are other two Schools in the Town, if he was to leave
Home to collect for the Building, he must probably quit his Station on his
Return, for Want of a Maintenance.”
His
genial loving-kindness and his fast increasing learning little fitted him to
drill peasant children in the alphabet. “When I kept school the boys kept me,”
he used to confess with a merry twinkle. In all that our Lord meant by it
William Carey was a child from first to last. The former teacher returned, and
the poor preacher again took to shoemaking for the village clowns and the shops
in Kettering and Northampton. His house still stands, one of a row of six
cottages of the dear old English type, with the indispensable garden behind,
and the glad sunshine pouring in through the open window embowered in roses and
honeysuckle.
There,
and chiefly in the school-hours as he tried to teach the children geography and
the Bible and was all the while teaching himself, the missionary idea arose in
his mind, and his soul became fired with the self-consecration, unknown to
Wyclif and Hus, Luther and Calvin, Knox and even Bunyan, for theirs was other
work. All his past knowledge of nature and of books, all his favourite reading
of voyages and of travels which had led his school-fellows to dub him Columbus,
all his painful study of the Word, his experience of the love of Christ and
expoundings of the meaning of His message to men for six years, were gathered
up, were intensified, and were directed with a concentrated power to the
thought that Christ died, as for him, so for these millions of dark savages
whom Cook was revealing to Christendom, and who had never heard the glad
tidings of great joy.
Carey
had ceased to keep school when the Moulton Baptists, who could subscribe no
more than twopence a month each for their own poor, formally called the
preacher to become their ordained pastor, and Ryland, Sutcliff, and Fuller were
asked to ordain him on the 10th August 1786. Fuller had discovered the value of
a man who had passed through spiritual experience, and possessed a native
common sense like his own, when Carey had been suddenly called to preach in
Northampton to supply the place of another. Since that day he had often visited
Moulton, and he thus tells us what he had seen:--
“The
congregation being few and poor, he followed his business in order to assist in
supporting his family. His mind, however, was much occupied in acquiring the
learned languages, and almost every other branch of useful knowledge. I
remember, on going into the room where he employed himself at his business, I
saw hanging up against the wall a very large map, consisting of several sheets
of paper pasted together by himself, on which he had drawn, with a pen, a place
for every nation in the known world, and entered into it whatever he met with
in reading, relative to its population, religion, etc. The substance of this
was afterwards published in his Enquiry. These researches, on which his
mind was naturally bent, hindered him, of course, from doing much of his
business; and the people, as was said, being few and poor, he was at this time
exposed to great hardships. I have been assured that he and his family have
lived for a great while together without tasting animal food, and with but a
scanty pittance of other provision.”
“He
would also be frequently conversing with his brethren in the ministry on the
practicability and importance of a mission to the heathen, and of his
willingness to engage in it. At several ministers’ meetings, between the year
1787 and 1790, this was the topic of his conversation. Some of our most aged
and respectable ministers thought, I believe, at that time, that it was a wild
and impracticable scheme that he had got in his mind, and therefore gave him no
encouragement. Yet he would not give it up; but would converse with us, one by
one, till he had made some impression upon us.”
The
picture is completed by his sister:--
“He
was always, from his first being thoughtful, remarkably impressed about heathen
lands and the slave-trade. I never remember his engaging in prayer, in his
family or in public, without praying for those poor creatures. The first time I
ever recollect my feeling for the heathen world, was from a discourse I heard
my brother preach at Moulton, the first summer after I was thoughtful. It was
from these words:--‘For Zion’s sake will I not hold my peace, and for
Jerusalem’s sake will I give him no rest.’ It was a day to be remembered by me;
a day set apart for prayer and fasting by the church. What hath God wrought
since that time!”
Old
Mr. Ryland always failed to recall the story, but we have it on the testimony
of Carey’s personal friend, Morris of Clipstone, who was present at the meeting
of ministers held in 1786 at Northampton, at which the incident occurred.
Ryland invited the younger brethren to propose a subject for discussion. There
was no reply, till at last the Moulton preacher suggested, doubtless with an
ill-restrained excitement, “whether the command given to the Apostles, to teach
all nations, was not obligatory on all succeeding ministers to the end of the
world, seeing that the accompanying promise was of equal extent.” Neither
Fuller nor Carey himself had yet delivered the Particular Baptists from the
yoke of hyper-calvinism which had to that hour shut the heathen out of a dead
Christendom, and the aged chairman shouted out the rebuke--“You are a miserable
enthusiast for asking such a question. Certainly nothing can be done before
another Pentecost, when an effusion of miraculous gifts, including the gift of
tongues, will give effect to the commission of Christ as at first.” Carey had
never before mentioned the subject openly, and he was for the moment greatly
mortified. But, says Morris, he still pondered these things in his heart. That
incident marks the wide gulf which Carey had to bridge. Silenced by his
brethren, he had recourse to the press. It was then that he wrote his own
contribution to the discussion he would have raised on a duty which was more
than seventeen centuries old, and had been for fourteen of these neglected: An Enquiry
into the Obligations of Christians to use Means for the Conversion of the
Heathens, in which the Religious State of the Different Nations of the World,
the Success of Former Undertakings, and the Practicability of Further
Undertakings, are considered by WILLIAM CAREY. Then follows the great
conclusion of Paul in his letter to the Romans (x. 12-15): “For there is no difference between the Jew and the Greek...How shall
they preach except they be sent?” He happened to be in Birmingham in 1786
collecting subscriptions for the rebuilding of the chapel in Moulton, when Mr.
Thomas Potts, who had made a fortune in trade with America, discovering that he
had prepared the manuscript, gave him £10 to publish it. And it appeared at
Leicester in 1792, “price one shilling and sixpence,” the profits to go to the
proposed mission. The pamphlet form doubtless accounts for its disappearance
now; only four copies of the original edition4 are known to be in existence.
This
Enquiry has a literary interest of its own, as a contribution to the
statistics and geography of the world, written in a cultured and almost
finished style, such as few, if any, University men of that day could have
produced, for none were impelled by such a motive as Carey had. In an obscure
village, toiling save when he slept, and finding rest on Sunday only by a
change of toil, far from libraries and the society of men with more advantages
than his own, this shoemaker, still under thirty, surveys the whole world,
continent by continent, island by island, race by race, faith by faith, kingdom
by kingdom, tabulating his results with an accuracy, and following them up with
a logical power of generalisation which would extort the admiration of the
learned even of the present day.
Having
proved that the commission given by our Lord to His disciples is still binding
on us, having reviewed former undertakings for the conversion of the heathen
from the Ascension to the Moravians and “the late Mr. Wesley” in the West Indies,
and having thus surveyed in detail the state of the world in 1786, he removes
the five impediments in the way of carrying the Gospel among the heathen, which
his contemporaries advanced--their distance from us, their barbarism, the
danger of being killed by them, the difficulty of procuring the necessaries of
life, the unintelligibleness of their languages. These his loving heart and
Bible knowledge enable him skilfully to turn in favour of the cause he pleads.
The whole section is essential to an appreciation of Carey’s motives,
difficulties, and plans:--
“FIRST,
As to their distance from us, whatever objections might have been made on that
account before the invention of the mariner’s compass, nothing can be alleged
for it with any colour of plausibility in the present age. Men can now sail
with as much certainty through the Great South Sea as they can through the
Mediterranean or any lesser sea. Yea, and providence seems in a manner to
invite us to the trial, as there are to our knowledge trading companies, whose
commerce lies in many of the places where these barbarians dwell. At one time
or other ships are sent to visit places of more recent discovery, and to
explore parts the most unknown; and every fresh account of their ignorance or
cruelty should call forth our pity, and excite us to concur with providence in
seeking their eternal good. Scripture likewise seems to point out this method,
‘Surely the Isles shall wait for me; the ships of Tarshish first, to bring my
sons from far, their silver and their gold with them, unto the name of the
Lord, thy God.’--Isai. lx. 9. This seems to imply that in the time of the
glorious increase of the church, in the latter days (of which the whole chapter
is undoubtedly a prophecy), commerce shall subserve the spread of the gospel.
The ships of Tarshish were trading vessels, which made voyages for traffic to
various parts; thus much therefore must be meant by it, that navigation,
especially that which is commercial, shall be one great mean of carrying
on the work of God; and perhaps it may imply that there shall be a very
considerable appropriation of wealth to that purpose.
“SECONDLY,
As to their uncivilised and barbarous way of living, this can be no objection
to any, except those whose love of ease renders them unwilling to expose
themselves to inconveniences for the good of others. It was no objection to the
apostles and their successors, who went among the barbarous Germans and Gauls,
and still more barbarous Britons! They did not wait for the ancient inhabitants
of these countries to be civilised before they could be christianised, but went
simply with the doctrine of the cross; and Tertullian could boast that ‘those
parts of Britain which were proof against the Roman armies, were conquered by
the gospel of Christ.’ It was no objection to an Eliot or a Brainerd, in later
times. They went forth, and encountered every difficulty of the kind, and found
that a cordial reception of the gospel produced those happy effects which the
longest intercourse with Europeans without it could never accomplish. It is
no objection to commercial men. It only requires that we should have as much
love to the souls of our fellow-creatures, and fellow-sinners, as they have for
the profits arising from a few otter-skins, and all these difficulties would be
easily surmounted.
“After
all, the uncivilised state of the heathen, instead of affording an objection against
preaching the gospel to them, ought to furnish an argument for it. Can we
as men, or as Christians, hear that a great part of our fellow-creatures, whose
souls are as immortal as ours, and who are as capable as ourselves of adorning
the gospel and
contributing by their preachings, writings, or practices to the glory of our
Redeemer’s name and the good of his church, are enveloped in ignorance and
barbarism? Can we hear that they are without the gospel, without government,
without laws, and without arts, and sciences; and not exert ourselves to
introduce among them the sentiments of men, and of Christians? Would not the
spread of the gospel be the most effectual mean of their civilisation? Would
not that make them useful members of society? We know that such effects did in
a measure follow the afore-mentioned efforts of Eliot,
Brainerd, and others amongst the American Indians; and if similar attempts were
made in other parts of the world, and succeeded with a divine blessing (which
we have every reason to think they would), might we not expect to see able
divines, or read well-conducted treatises in defence of the truth, even amongst
those who at present seem to be scarcely human?
“THIRDLY,
In respect to the danger of being killed by them, it is true that whoever does
go must put his life in his hand, and not consult with flesh and blood; but do
not the goodness of the cause, the duties incumbent on us as the creatures of
God and Christians, and the perishing state of our fellow-men, loudly call upon
us to venture all, and use every warrantable exertion for their benefit? Paul
and Barnabas, who hazarded their lives for the name of our Lord Jesus Christ,
were not blamed as being rash, but commended for so doing; while John Mark, who
through timidity of mind deserted them in their perilous undertaking, was
branded with censure. After all, as has been already observed, I greatly
question whether most of the barbarities practised by the savages upon those
who have visited them, have not originated in some real or supposed affront,
and were therefore, more properly, acts of self-defence, than proofs of
ferocious dispositions. No wonder if the imprudence of sailors should prompt
them to offend the simple savage, and the offence be resented; but Eliot,
Brainerd, and the Moravian missionaries have been very seldom molested. Nay, in
general the heathen have showed a willingness to hear the word; and have
principally expressed their hatred of Christianity on account of the vices of
nominal Christians.
“FOURTHLY,
As to the difficulty of procuring the necessaries of life, this would not be so
great as may appear at first sight; for, though we could not procure European
food, yet we might procure such as the natives of those countries which we
visit, subsist upon themselves. And this would only be passing through what we
have virtually engaged in by entering on the ministerial office. A Christian
minister is a person who in a peculiar sense is not his own; he is the servant
of God, and therefore ought to be wholly devoted to him. By entering on that
sacred office he solemnly undertakes to be always engaged, as much as possible,
in the Lord’s work, and not to choose his own pleasure, or employment, or
pursue the ministry as a something that is to subserve his own ends, or
interests, or as a kind of bye-work. He engages to go where God pleases, and to
do or endure what he sees fit to command, or call him to, in the exercise of
his function. He virtually bids farewell to friends, pleasures, and comforts,
and stands in readiness to endure the greatest sufferings in the work of his
Lord, and Master. It is inconsistent for ministers to please themselves with
thoughts of a numerous auditory, cordial friends, a civilised country, legal
protection, affluence, splendour, or even a competency. The slights, and hatred
of men, and even pretended friends, gloomy prisons, and tortures, the society
of barbarians of uncouth speech, miserable accommodations in wretched
wildernesses, hunger, and thirst, nakedness, weariness, and painfulness, hard
work, and but little worldly encouragement, should rather be the objects of their
expectation. Thus the apostles acted, in the primitive times, and endured
hardness, as good soldiers of Jesus Christ; and though we, living in a
civilised country where Christianity is protected by law, are not called to
suffer these things while we continue here, yet I question whether all are
justified in staying here, while so many are perishing without means of grace
in other lands. Sure I am that it is entirely contrary to the spirit of the
gospel for its ministers to enter upon it from interested motives, or with
great worldly expectations. On the contrary, the commission is a sufficient
call to them to venture all, and, like the primitive Christians, go everywhere
preaching the gospel.
“It
might be necessary, however, for two, at least, to go together, and in general
I should think it best that they should be married men, and to prevent their
time from being employed in procuring necessaries, two, or more, other persons,
with their wives and families, might also accompany them, who should be wholly
employed in providing for them. In most countries it would be necessary for
them to cultivate a little spot of ground just for their support, which would
be a resource to them, whenever their supplies failed. Not to mention the
advantages they would reap from each other’s company, it would take off the
enormous expense which has always attended undertakings of this kind, the first
expense being the whole; for though a large colony needs support for a
considerable time, yet so small a number would, upon receiving the first crop,
maintain themselves. They would have the advantage of choosing their situation,
their wants would be few; the women, and even the children, would be necessary
for domestic purposes: and a few articles of stock, as a cow or two, and a
bull, and a few other cattle of both sexes, a very few utensils of husbandry,
and some corn to sow their land, would be sufficient. Those who attend the
missionaries should understand husbandry, fishing, fowling, etc., and be
provided with the necessary implements for these purposes. Indeed, a variety of
methods may be thought of, and when once the work is undertaken, many things
will suggest themselves to us, of which we at present can form no idea.
“FIFTHLY,
As to learning their languages, the same means would be found necessary here as
in trade between different nations. In some cases interpreters might be
obtained, who might be employed for a time; and where these were not to be
found, the missionaries must have patience, and mingle with the people, till
they have learned so much of their language as to be able to communicate their
ideas to them in it. It is well known to require no very extraordinary talents to
learn, in the space of a year, or two at most, the language of any people upon
earth, so much of it at least as to be able to convey any sentiments we wish to
their understandings.
“The
Missionaries must be men of great piety, prudence, courage, and forbearance; of
undoubted orthodoxy in their sentiments, and must enter with all their hearts into
the spirit of their mission; they must be willing to leave all the comforts of
life behind them, and to encounter all the hardships of a torrid or a frigid
climate, an uncomfortable manner of living, and every other inconvenience that
can attend this undertaking. Clothing, a few knives, powder and shot,
fishing-tackle, and the articles of husbandry above mentioned, must be provided
for them; and when arrived at the place of their destination, their first
business must be to gain some acquaintance with the language of the natives
(for which purpose two would be better than one), and by all lawful means to
endeavour to cultivate a friendship with them, and as soon as possible let them
know the errand for which they were sent. They must endeavour to convince them
that it was their good alone which induced them to forsake their friends, and
all the comforts of their native country. They must be very careful not to
resent injuries which may be offered to them, nor to think highly of
themselves, so as to despise the poor heathens, and by those means lay a
foundation for their resentment or rejection of the gospel. They must take
every opportunity of doing them good, and labouring and travelling night and
day, they must instruct, exhort, and rebuke, with all long suffering and
anxious desire for them, and, above all, must be instant in prayer for the
effusion of the Holy Spirit upon the people of their charge. Let but
missionaries of the above description engage in the work, and we shall see that
it is not impracticable.
“It
might likewise be of importance, if God should bless their labours, for them to
encourage any appearances of gifts amongst the people of their charge; if such
should be raised up many advantages would be derived from their knowledge of
the language and customs of their countrymen; and their change of conduct would
give great weight to their ministrations.”
This
first and still greatest missionary treatise in the English language closes
with the practical suggestion of these means--fervent and united prayer, the
formation of a catholic or, failing that, a Particular Baptist Society of
“persons whose hearts are in the work, men of serious religion and possessing a
spirit of perseverance,” with an executive committee, and subscriptions from
rich and poor of a tenth of their income for both village preaching and foreign
missions, or, at least, an average of one penny or more per week from all
members of congregations. He thus concludes:--“It is true all the reward is of
mere grace, but it is nevertheless encouraging; what a treasure, what an
harvest must await such characters as Paul, and Eliot, and Brainerd, and
others, who have given themselves wholly to the work of the Lord. What a heaven
will it be to see the many myriads of poor heathens, of Britons amongst the
rest, who by their labours have been brought to the knowledge of God. Surely a
crown of rejoicing like this is worth aspiring to. Surely it is worth while to
lay ourselves out with all our might, in promoting the cause and kingdom of Christ.”
So
Carey projected the first organisation which England had seen for missions to
all the human race outside of Christendom; and his project, while necessarily
requiring a Society to carry it out, as coming from an “independent” Church,
provided that every member of every congregation should take a part to the
extent of fervent and united prayer, and of an average subscription of a penny
a week. He came as near to the New Testament ideal of all Christians acting in
an aggressive missionary church as was possible in an age when the Established
Churches of England, Scotland, and Germany scouted foreign missions, and the
Free Churches were chiefly congregational in their ecclesiastical action. While
asserting the other ideal of the voluntary tenth or tithe as both a Scriptural
principle and Puritan practice, his common sense was satisfied to suggest an
average penny a week, all over, for every Christian. At this hour, more than a
century since Carey wrote, and after a remarkable missionary revival in consequence
of what he wrote and did, all Christendom, Evangelical, Greek, and Latin, does
not give more than five millions sterling a year to Christianise the majority
of the race still outside its pale. It is not too much to say that were Carey’s
penny a week from every Christian a fact, and the prayer which would sooner or
later accompany it, the five millions would be fifty, and Christendom would
become a term nearly synonymous with humanity. The Churches, whether by
themselves or by societies, have yet to pray and organise up to the level of
Carey’s penny a week.
The
absolute originality as well as grandeur of the unconscious action of the
peasant shoemaker who, from 1779, prayed daily for all the heathen and slaves,
and organised his society accordingly, will be seen in the dim light or
darkness visible of all who had preceded him. They were before the set time; he
was ready in the fulness of the missionary preparation. They belonged not only
to periods, but to nations, to churches, to communities which were failing in
the struggle for fruitfulness and expansion in new worlds and fresh lands; he
was a son of England, which had come or was about to come out of the struggle a
victor, charged with the terrible responsibility of the special servant of the Lord,
as no people had ever before been charged in all history, sacred or secular.
William Carey, indeed, reaped the little that the few brave toilers of the
wintry time had sown; with a humility that is pathetic he acknowledges their
toll, while ever ignorant to the last of his own merit. But he reaped only as
each generation garners such fruits of its predecessor as may have been worthy
to survive. He was the first of the true Anastatosantes of the modern
world, as only an English-speaking man could be--of
the most thorough, permanent, and everlasting of all Reformers, the men who
turn the world upside down, because they make it rise up and depart from deadly
beliefs and practices, from the fear and the fate of death, into the life and
light of Christ and the Father.
Who
were his predecessors, reckoning from the Renascence of Europe, the discovery
of America, and the opening up of India and Africa? Erasmus comes first, the
bright scholar of compromise who in 1516 gave the New Testament again to
Europe, as three centuries after Carey gave it to all Southern Asia, and whose
missionary treatise, Ecclesiasties, in 1535 anticipated, theoretically
at least, Carey’s Enquiry by two centuries and a half. The missionary
dream of this escaped monk of Rotterdam and Basel, who taught women and weavers
and cobblers to read the Scriptures, and prayed that the Book might be
translated into all languages, was realised in the scandalous iniquities and
frauds of Portuguese and Spanish and Jesuit missions in West and East. Luther
had enough to do with his papal antichrist and his German translation of the
Greek of the Testament of Erasmus. The Lutheran church drove missions into the
hands of the Pietists and Moravians--Wiclif’s offspring--who nobly but
ineffectually strove to do a work meant for the whole Christian community. The
Church of England thrust forth the Puritans first to Holland and then to New
England, where Eliot, the Brainerds, and the Mayhews sought to evangelise
tribes which did not long survive themselves.
It
was from Courteenhall, a Northamptonshire village near Paulerspury, that in
1644 there went forth the appeal for the propagation of the Gospel which comes
nearest to Carey’s cry from the same midland region. Cromwell was in power, and
had himself planned a Protestant Propaganda, so to the Long Parliament William
Castell, “parson of Courteenhall,” sent a petition which, with the “Eliot
Tracts,” resulted in an ordinance creating the Corporation for the Promoting
and Propagating the Gospel of Jesus Christ in New England. Seventy English
ministers had backed the petition, and six of the Church of Scotland, first of
whom was Alexander Henderson. The corporation, which, in a restored form,
Robert Boyle governed for thirty years, familiarised the nation with the duty
of caring for the dark races then coming more and more under our sway alike in
America and in India. It still exists, as well as Boyle’s Society for advancing
the Faith in the West Indies. The Friends also, and then the Moravians, taught
the Wesleys and Whitefield to care for the negroes. The English and Scottish
Propagation Societies sought also to provide spiritual aids for the colonists
and the highlanders.
The
two great thinkers of the eighteenth century, who flourished as philosopher and
moralist when Carey was a youth, taught the principles which he of all others
was to apply on their spiritual and most effective side. Adam Smith put his
finger on the crime which had darkened and continued till 1834 to shadow the
brightness of geographical enterprise in both hemispheres--the treatment of the
natives by Europeans whose superiority of force enabled them to commit every
sort of injustice in the new lands. He sought a remedy in establishing an
equality of force by the mutual communication of knowledge and of all sorts of
improvements by an extensive commerce.5 Samuel Johnson rose to a higher level
alike of wisdom and righteousness, when he expressed the indignation of a
Christian mind that the propagation of truth had never been seriously pursued
by any European nation, and the hope “that the light of the Gospel will at last
illuminate the sands of Africa and the deserts of America, though its progress
cannot but be slow when it is so much obstructed by the lives of Christians.”
The
early movement which is connected most directly with Carey’s and the
Northamptonshire Baptists’ began in Scotland. Its Kirk, emasculated by the
Revolution settlement and statute of Queen Anne, had put down the evangelical
teaching of Boston and the “marrow” men, and had cast out the fathers of the
Secession in 1733. In 1742 the quickening spread over the west country. In
October 1744 several ministers in Scotland united, for the two years next
following, in what they called, and what has since become familiar in America
as, a “Concert to promote more abundant application to a duty that is
perpetually binding--prayer that our God’s kingdom may come, joined with
praises;” to be offered weekly on Saturday evening and Sunday morning, and more
solemnly on the first Tuesday
of every quarter. Such was the result, and so did the prayer concert spread in
the United Kingdom that in August 1746 a memorial was sent to Boston inviting
all Christians in North America to enter into it for the next seven years. It
was on this that Jonathan Edwards wrote his Humble Attempt to promote
Explicit Agreement and Visible Union of God’s People in Extraordinary Prayer
for the Revival of Religion and the Advancement of Christ’s Kingdom on Earth.
This
work of Edwards, republished at Olney, came into the hands of Carey, and
powerfully influenced the Northamptonshire Association of Baptist ministers and
messengers. At their meeting in Nottingham in 1784 Sutcliff of Olney suggested
and Ryland of Northampton drafted an invitation to the people to join them, for
one hour on the first Monday of every month, in prayer for the effusion of the
Holy Spirit of God. “Let the whole interest of the Redeemer be affectionately
remembered,” wrote these catholic men, and to give emphasis to their œcumenical
missionary desires they added in italics--“Let the spread of the Gospel to the
most distant parts of the habitable globe be the object of your most fervent
requests. We shall rejoice if any other Christian societies of our own or other
denominations will join with us, and we do now invite them most cordially to
join heart and hand in the attempt.” To this Carey prominently referred in his Enquiry,
tracing to even the unimportunate and feeble prayers of these eight years the
increase of the churches, the clearing of controversies, the opening of lands
to missions, the spread of civil and religious liberty, the noble effort made
to abolish the inhuman slave-trade, and the establishment of the free
settlement of Sierra Leone. And then he hits the other blots in the movement,
besides the want of importunity and earnestness--“We must not be contented with
praying without exerting ourselves in the use of means...Were the children of
light but as wise in their generation as the children of this world, they would
stretch every nerve to gain so glorious a prize, nor ever imagine that it was
to be obtained in any other way.” A trading company obtain a charter and go to
its utmost limits. The charter, the encouragements of Christians are exceeding
great, and the returns promised infinitely superior. “Suppose a company of
serious Christians, ministers and private persons, were to form themselves into
a society.”
The
man was ready who had been specially fitted, by character and training, to form
the home organisation of the society, while Carey created its foreign mission.
For the next quarter of a century William Carey and Andrew Fuller worked
lovingly, fruitfully together, with the breadth of half the world between them.
The one showed how, by Bible and church and school, by physical and spiritual truth,
India and all Asia could be brought to Christ; the other taught England,
Scotland, and America to begin at last to play their part in an enterprise as
old as Abraham; as divine in its warrant, its charge, its promise, as Christ
Himself. Seven years older than Carey, his friend was born a farmer’s son and
labourer in the fen country of Cromwell whom he resembled, was self-educated
under conditions precisely similar, and passed through spiritual experiences
almost exactly the same. The two, unknown to each other, found themselves when
called to preach at eighteen unable to reconcile the grim dead theology of
their church with the new life and liberty which had come to them direct from
the Spirit of Christ and from His Word. Carey had left his ancestral church at
a time when the biographer of Romaine could declare with truth that that
preacher was the only evangelical in the established churches of all London,
and that of twenty thousand clergymen in England, the number who preached the
truth as it is in Jesus had risen from not twenty in 1749 to three hundred in
1789. The methodism of the Wesleys was beginning to tell, but the Baptists were
as lifeless as the Established Church. In both the Church and Dissent there
were individuals only, like Newton and Scott, the elder Robert Hall and Ryland,
whose spiritual fervour made them marked men.
The
Baptists, who had stood alone as the advocates of toleration, religious and
civil, in an age of intolerance which made them the victims, had subsided like
Puritan and Covenanter when the Revolution of 1688 brought persecution to an
end. The section who held the doctrine of “general” redemption, and are now
honourably known as General Baptists, preached ordinary Arminianism, and even
Socinianism. The more earnest and educated among them clung to Calvinism, but,
by adopting the unhappy term of “particular” Baptists, gradually fell under a
fatalistic and antinomian spell. This false Calvinism, which the French
theologian of Geneva would have been the first to denounce, proved all the more
hostile to the preaching of the Gospel of salvation to the heathen abroad, as
well as the sinner at home, that it professed to be an orthodox evangel while
either emasculating the Gospel or turning the grace of God into licentiousness.
From such “particular” preachers as young Fuller and Carey listened to, at first with
bewilderment, then impatience, and then denunciation, missions of no kind could
come. Fuller exposed and pursued the delusion with a native shrewdness, a
masculine sagacity, and a fine English style, which have won for him the apt
name of the Franklin of Theology. For more than twenty years Fullerism, as it
was called, raised a controversy like that of the Marrow of Divinity in
Scotland, and cleared the ground sufficiently at least to allow of the
foundation of foreign missions in both countries. It now seems incredible that
the only class who a century ago represented evangelicalism should have opposed
missions to the heathen on the ground that the Gospel is meant only for the
elect, whether at home or abroad; that nothing spiritually good is the duty of
the unregenerate, therefore “nothing must be addressed to them in a way of
exhortation excepting what relates to external obedience.”
The
same year, 1784, in which the Baptist concert for prayer was begun, saw the
publication of Fuller’s Gospel Worthy of all Acceptation. Seven years
later he preached at Clipstone a famous sermon, in which he applied the dealing
of the Lord of Hosts (in Haggai) to the Jewish apathy--“The time is not come
that the Lord’s house should be built”--with a power and directness which
nevertheless failed practically to convince himself. The men who listened to
him had been praying for seven years, yet had opposed Carey’s pleas for a
foreign mission, had treated him as a visionary or a madman. When Fuller had
published his treatise, Carey had drawn the practical deduction--“If it be the
duty of all men, when the Gospel comes, to believe unto salvation, then it is
the duty of those who are entrusted with the Gospel to endeavour to make it
known among all nations for the obedience of faith.” Now, after seven more
years of waiting, and remembering the manuscript Enquiry, Carey thought
action cannot be longer delayed. Hardly was the usual discussion that followed
the meeting over when, as the story is told by the son of Ryland who had
silenced him in a former ministers’ meeting, Carey appealed to his brethren to
put their preaching into practice and begin a missionary society that very day.
Fuller’s sermon bore the title of The Evil Nature and the Dangerous Tendency
of Delay in the Concerns of Religion, and it had been preceded by one on
being very jealous for the Lord God of Hosts, in which Sutcliff cried for the
divine passion, the celestial fire that burned in the bosom and blazed in the
life of Elijah. The Elijah of their own church and day was among them, burning
and blazing for years, and all that he could induce them to promise was vaguely
that, “something should be done,” and to throw to his importunity the easy
request that he would publish his manuscript and preach next year’s sermon.
Meanwhile,
in 1789, Carey had left Moulton6 for Leicester, whither he was summoned to
build up a congregation, ruined by antinomianism, in the mean brick chapel of
the obscure quarter of Harvey Lane. This chapel his genius and Robert Hall’s
eloquence made so famous in time that the Baptists sent off a vigorous hive to
the fine new church. In an equally humble house opposite the chapel the poverty
of the pastor compelled him to keep a school from nine in the morning till four
in winter and five in summer. Between this and the hours for sleep and food he
had little leisure; but that he spent, as he had done all his life before and
did all his life after, with a method and zeal which doubled his working days.
“I have seen him at work,” writes Gardiner in his Music and Friends,
“his books beside him, and his beautiful flowers in the windows.” In a letter
to his father we have this division of his leisure--Monday, “the learned languages;”
Tuesday, “the study of science, history, composition, etc;” Wednesday, “I
preach a lecture, and have been for more than twelve months on the Book of
Revelation;” Thursday, “I visit my friends;” Friday and Saturday, “preparing
for the Lord’s Day.” He preached three times every Sunday in his own chapel or
the surrounding villages, with such results that in one case he added hundreds
to its Wesleyan congregation. He was secretary to the local committee of
dissenters. “Add to this occasional journeys, ministers’ meetings, etc., and you will
rather wonder that I have any time, than that I have so little. I am not my
own, nor would I choose for myself. Let God employ me where he thinks fit, and
give me patience and discretion to fill up my station to his honour and glory.”
“After
I had been probationer in this place a year and ten months, on the 24th of May
1791 I was solemnly set apart to the office of pastor. About twenty ministers
of different denominations were witnesses to the transactions of the day. After
prayer Brother Hopper of Nottingham addressed the congregation upon the nature
of an ordination, after which he proposed the usual questions to the church,
and required my Confession of Faith; which being delivered, Brother Ryland
prayed the ordination prayer, with laying on of hands. Brother Sutcliff
delivered a very solemn charge from Acts vi. 4--‘But we will give ourselves
continually to prayer and to the ministry of the word.’ And Brother Fuller
delivered an excellent address to the people from Eph. v. 2--‘Walk in love.’ In
the evening Brother Pearce of Birmingham preached from Gal. vi. 14--‘God forbid
that I should glory, save in the cross of our Lord Jesus Christ, by whom the
world is crucified unto me and I unto the world.’ The day was a day of
pleasure, and I hope of profit to the greatest part of the Assembly.”
Carey
became the friend of his neighbour, Thomas Robinson, evangelical rector of St.
Mary’s, to whom he said on one occasion when indirectly charged in humorous
fashion with “sheep-stealing:” “Mr. Robinson, I am a dissenter, and you are a
churchman; we must each endeavour to do good according to our light. At the
same time, you may be assured that I had rather be the instrument of converting
a scavenger that sweeps the streets than of merely proselyting the richest and
best characters in your congregation.” Dr. Arnold and Mr. R. Brewin, a
botanist, opened to him their libraries, and all good men in Leicester soon
learned to be proud of the new Baptist minister. In the two chapels, as in that
of Moulton, enlarged since his time, memorial tablets tell succeeding
generations of the virtues and the deeds of “the illustrious W. Carey, D.D.”
The
ministers’ meeting of 1792 came round, and on 31st May Carey seized his
opportunity. The place was Nottingham, from which the 1784 invitation to prayer
had gone forth. Was the answer to come just there after nine years’ waiting?
His Enquiry had been published; had it prepared the brethren? Ryland had
been always loyal to the journeyman shoemaker he had baptised in the river, and
he gives us this record:--“If all the people had lifted up their voices and
wept, as the children of Israel did at Bochim, I should not have wondered at
the effect. It would only have seemed proportionate to the cause, so clearly
did he prove the criminality of our supineness in the cause of God.” The text
was Isaiah’s (liv. 2, 3) vision of the widowed church’s tent stretching forth
till her children inherited the nations and peopled the desolate cities, and
the application to the reluctant brethren was couched in these two great maxims
written ever since on the banners of the missionary host of the kingdom--
EXPECT GREAT THINGS FROM GOD.
ATTEMPT GREAT THINGS FOR GOD.
The
service was over; even Fuller was afraid, even Ryland made no sign, and the
ministers were leaving the meeting. Seizing Fuller’s arm with an imploring
look, the preacher, whom despair emboldened to act alone for his Master,
exclaimed: “And are you, after all, going again to do nothing?” What Fuller
describes as the “much fear and trembling” of these inexperienced, poor, and
ignorant village preachers gave way to the appeal of one who had gained both
knowledge and courage, and who, as to funds and men, was ready to give himself.
They entered on their minutes this much:--“That a plan be prepared against the
next ministers’ meeting at Kettering for forming a Baptist Society for
propagating the Gospel among the Heathen.” There was more delay, but only for
four months. The first purely English Missionary Society, which sent forth its
own English founder, was thus constituted as described in the minutes of the
Northampton ministers’ meeting.
“At
the ministers’ meeting at Kettering, October 2, 1792, after the public services
of the day were ended, the ministers retired to consult further on the matter,
and to lay a foundation at least for a society, when the following resolutions
were proposed, and unanimously agreed to:--
“1.
Desirous of making an effort for the propagation of the gospel among the
heathen, agreeably to what is recommended in brother Carey’s late publication
on that subject, we, whose names appear to the subsequent subscription, do
solemnly agree to act in society together for that purpose.
“2.
As in the present divided state of Christendom, it seems that each
denomination, by exerting itself separately, is most likely to accomplish the
great ends of a mission, it is agreed that this society be called The Particular
[Calvinistic] Baptist Society for Propagating the Gospel among the Heathen.
“3.
As such an undertaking must needs be attended with expense, we agree immediately
to open a subscription for the above purpose, and to recommend it to others.
“4.
Every person who shall subscribe ten pounds at once, or ten shillings and
sixpence annually, shall be considered a member of the society.
“5.
That the Rev. John Ryland, Reynold Hogg, William Carey, John Sutcliff, and
Andrew Fuller, be appointed a committee, three of whom shall be empowered to
act in carrying into effect the purposes of this society.
“6.
That the Rev. Reynold Hogg be appointed treasurer, and the Rev. Andrew Fuller
secretary.
“7.
That the subscriptions be paid in at the Northampton ministers’ meeting,
October 31, 1792, at which time the subject shall be considered more
particularly by the committee, and other subscribers who may be present.
“Signed,
John Ryland, Reynold Hogg, John Sutcliff, Andrew Fuller, Abraham Greenwood,
Edward Sherman, Joshua Burton, Samuel Pearce, Thomas Blundel, William Heighton,
John Eayres, Joseph Timms; whose subscriptions in all amounted to £13:2:6.”
The
procedure suggested in “brother Carey’s late publication” was strictly
followed--a society of subscribers, 2d. a week, or 10s. 6d. a year as a
compromise between the tithes and the penny a week of the Enquiry. The
secretary was the courageous Fuller, who once said to Ryland and Sutcliff: “You
excel me in wisdom, especially in foreseeing difficulties. I therefore want to
advise with you both, but to execute without you.” The frequent chairman was
Ryland, who was soon to train missionaries for the work at Bristol College. The
treasurer was the only rich man of the twelve, who soon resigned his office
into a layman’s hands, as was right. Of the others we need now point only to
Samuel Pearce, the seraphic preacher of Birmingham, who went home and sent £70
to the collection, and who, since he desired to give himself like Carey, became
to him dearer than even Fuller was. The place was a low-roofed parlour in the
house of Widow Wallis, looking on to a back garden, which many a pilgrim still
visits, and around which there gathered thousands in 1842 to hold the first
jubilee of modern missions, when commemorative medals were struck. There in
1892 the centenary witnessed a still vaster assemblage.
Can
any good come out of Kettering? was the conclusion of the Baptist ministers of
London with the one exception of Booth, when they met formally to decide
whether, like those of Birmingham and other places, they should join the
primary society. Benjamin Beddome, a venerable scholar whom Robert Hall
declared to be chief among his brethren, replied to Fuller in language which is
far from unusual even at the present day, but showing the position which the
Leicester minister had won for himself even then:--
“I
think your scheme, considering the paucity of well-qualified ministers, hath a
very unfavourable aspect with respect to destitute churches at home, where
charity ought to begin. I had the pleasure once to see and hear Mr. Carey; it
struck me he was the most suitable person in the kingdom, at least whom I knew,
to supply my place, and make up my great deficiencies when either disabled or
removed. A different plan is formed and pursued, and I fear that the great and
good man, though influenced by the most excellent motives, will meet with a
disappointment. However, God hath his ends, and whoever is disappointed He
cannot be so. My unbelieving heart is ready to suggest that the time is not come,
the time that the Lord’s house should be built.”
The
other Congregationalists made no sign. The Presbyterians, with a few noble
exceptions like Dr. Erskine, whose Dutch volume Carey had translated, denounced
such movements as revolutionary in a General Assembly of Socinianised
“moderates.” The Church of England kept haughtily or timidly aloof, though king
and archbishop were pressed to send a mission. “Those who in that day sneered
that England had sent a cobbler to convert the world were the direct lineal
descendants of those who sneered in Palestine 2000 years ago, ‘Is not this the
carpenter?’” said Archdeacon Farrar in Westminster Abbey on 6th March 1887.
Hence Fuller’s reference to this time:--“When we began in 1792 there was little
or no respectability among us, not so much as a squire to sit in the chair or
an orator to address him with speeches. Hence good Dr. Stennett advised the
London ministers to stand aloof and not commit themselves.”
One
man in India had striven to rouse the Church to its duty as Carey had done at
home. Charles Grant had in 1787 written from Malda to Charles Simeon and
Wilberforce for eight missionaries, but not one Church of England clergyman
could be found to go. Thirty years after, when chairman of the Court of Directors
and father of Lord Glenelg and Sir Robert Grant, he wrote:--“I had formed the
design of a mission to Bengal: Providence reserved that honour for the
Baptists.” After all, the twelve village pastors in the back parlour of
Kettering were the more really the successors of the twelve apostles in the
upper room of Jerusalem.
CHAPTER
III
INDIA
AS CAREY FOUND IT
1793
Tahiti
v. Bengal--Carey and Thomas appointed missionaries to Bengal--The
farewell at Leicester--John Thomas, first medical missionary--Carey’s letter to
his father--The Company’s “abominable monopoly”--The voyage--Carey’s
aspirations for world-wide missions--Lands at Calcutta--His description of
Bengal in 1793--Contrast presented by Carey to Clive, Hastings, and
Cornwallis--The spiritual founder of an Indian Empire of Christian
Britain--Bengal and the famine of 1769-70--The Decennial Settlement declared
permanent--Effects on the landed classes--Obstacles to Carey’s work--East India
Company at its worst--Hindooism and the Bengalees in 1793--Position of Hindoo
women--Missionary attempts before Carey’s--Ziegenbalg and Schwartz--Kiernander
and the chaplains--Hindooised state of Anglo-Indian society and its reaction on
England--Guneshan Dass, the first caste Hindoo to visit England--William Carey
had no predecessor.
CAREY
had desired to go first to Tahiti or Western Africa. The natives of North
America and the negroes of the West Indies and Sierra Leone were being cared
for by Moravian and Wesleyan evangelists. The narrative of Captain Cook’s two
first voyages to the Pacific and discovery of Tahiti had appeared in the same
year in which the Northampton churches began their seven years’ concert of
prayer, just after his own second baptism. From the map, and a leather globe
which also he is said to have made, he had been teaching the children of
Piddington, Moulton, and Leicester the great outlines and thrilling details of
expeditions round the world which roused both the scientific and the simple of
England as much as the discoveries of Columbus had excited Europe. When the
childlike ignorance and natural grace of the Hawaiians, which had at first
fired him with the longing to tell them the good news of God, were seen turned
into the wild justice of revenge, which made Cook its first victim, Carey
became all the more eager to anticipate the disasters of later days. That was
work for which others were to be found. It was not amid the scattered and
decimated savages of the Pacific or of America that the citadel of heathenism
was found, nor by them that the world, old and new, was to be made the kingdom
of Christ. With the cautious wisdom that marked all Fuller’s action, though
perhaps with the ignorance that was due to Carey’s absence, the third meeting
of the new society recorded this among other articles “to be examined and
discussed in the most diligent and impartial manner--In what part of the
heathen world do there seem to be the most promising openings?”
The
answer, big with consequence for the future of the East, was in their hands, in
the form of a letter from Carey, who stated that “Mr. Thomas, the Bengal
missionary,” was trying to raise a fund for that province, and asked “whether
it would not be worthy of the Society to try to make that and ours unite with
one fund for the purpose of sending the gospel to the heathen indefinitely.”
Tahiti was not to be neglected, nor Africa, nor Bengal, in “our larger plan,”
which included above four hundred millions of our fellowmen, among whom it was
an object “worthy of the most ardent and persevering pursuit to disseminate the
humane and saving principles of the Christian Religion.” If this Mr. Thomas
were worthy, his experience made it desirable to begin with Bengal. Thomas
answered for himself at the next meeting, when Carey fell upon his neck and
wept, having previously preached from the words--“Behold I come quickly, and My
reward is with Me.” “We saw,” said Fuller afterwards, “there was a gold mine in
India, but it was as deep as the centre of the earth. Who will venture to
explore it? ‘I will venture to go down,’ said Carey, ‘but remember that you
(addressing Fuller, Sutcliff, and Ryland) must hold the ropes.’ We solemnly
engaged to him to do so, nor while we live shall we desert him.”
Carey
and Thomas, an ordained minister and a medical evangelist, were at this meeting
in Kettering, on 10th January 1793, appointed missionaries to “the East Indies
for preaching the gospel to the heathen,” on “£100 or £150 a year between them
all,”--that is, for two missionaries, their wives, and four children,--until
they should be able to support themselves like the Moravians. As a matter of
fact they received just £200 in all for the first three years when self-support
and mission extension fairly began. The whole sum at credit of the Society for
outfit, passage, and salaries was £130, so that Fuller’s prudence was not
without justification when supported by Thomas’s assurances that the amount was
enough, and Carey’s modest self-sacrifice. “We advised Mr. Carey,” wrote Fuller
to Ryland, “to give up his school this quarter, for we must make up the loss to
him.” The more serious cost of the passage was raised by Fuller and by the preaching
tours of the two missionaries. During one of these, at Hull, Carey met the
printer and newspaper editor, William Ward, and
cast his mantle over him thus--“If the Lord bless us, we shall want a person of
your business to enable us to print the Scriptures; I hope you will come after
us.” Ward did so in five years.
The
20th March 1793 was a high day in the Leicester chapel, Harvey Lane, when the
missionaries were set apart like Barnabas and Paul--a forenoon of prayer; an
afternoon of preaching by Thomas from Psalm xvi. 4; “Their sorrows shall be
multiplied that hasten after another God;” an evening of preaching by the
treasurer from Acts xxi. 14, “And when he would not be persuaded, we ceased,
saying, the will of the Lord be done;” and the parting charge by Fuller the
secretary, from the risen Lord’s own benediction and forthsending of His
disciples, “Peace be unto you, as My Father hath sent Me, even so send I you.”
Often in after days of solitude and reproach did Carey quicken his faith by
reading the brave and loving words of Fuller on “the objects you must keep in
view, the directions you must observe, the difficulties you must encounter, the
reward you may expect.”
Under
date four days after we find this entry in the Church Book--“Mr. Carey, our
minister, left Leicester to go on a mission to the East Indies, to take and
propagate the Gospel among those idolatrous and superstitious heathens. This is
inserted to show his love to his poor miserable fellow-creatures. In this we
concurred with him, though it is at the expense of losing one whom we love as
our own souls.” When Carey’s preaching had so filled the church that it became
necessary to build a front gallery at a cost of £98, and they had applied to
several other churches for assistance in vain, he thus taught them to help
themselves. The minister and many of the members agreed to pay off the debt
“among ourselves” by weekly subscriptions,--a process, however, which covered
five years, so poor were they. Carey left this as a parting lesson to home
congregations, while his people found it the easier to pay the debt that they
had sacrificed their best, their own minister, to the work of missions for
which he had taught them to pray.
John
Thomas, four years older than Carey, was a surgeon, who had made two voyages to
Calcutta in the Oxford Indiaman, had been of spiritual service to
Charles Grant, Mr. George Udny, and the Bengal civilian circle at Malda, and
had been supported by Mr. Grant as a missionary for a time until his
eccentricities and debts outraged his friends and drove him home at the time of
the Kettering meetings. Full justice has been done to a character and a career
somewhat resembling those of John Newton, by his patient and able biographer
the Rev. C. B. Lewis. John Thomas has the merit of being the first medical
missionary, at a time when no other Englishman cared for either the bodies or
souls of our recently acquired subjects in North India, outside of Charles
Grant’s circle. He has more; he was used by God to direct Carey to the dense
Hindoo population of Bengal--to the people and to the centre, that is, where
Brahmanism had its seat, and whence Buddhism had been carried by thousands of
missionaries all over Southern, Eastern, and Central Asia. But there our
ascription of merit to Thomas must stop. However well he might speak the
uncultured Bengali, he never could write the language or translate the Bible
into a literary style so that it could be understood by the people or influence
their leaders. His temper kept Charles Grant back from helping the infant
mission, though anxious to see Mr. Carey and to aid him and any other
companion. The debts of Thomas caused him and Carey to be excluded from the Oxford,
in which his friend the commander had agreed to take them and their party
without a licence; clouded the early years of the enterprise with their shadow,
and formed the heaviest of the many burdens Carey had to bear at starting. If,
afterwards, the old association of Thomas with Mr. Udny at Malda gave Carey a
home during his Indian apprenticeship, this was a small atonement for the loss
of the direct help of Mr. Grant. If Carey proved to be the John among the men
who began to make Serampore illustrious, Thomas was the Peter, so far as we
know Peter in the Gospels only.
Just
before being ejected from the Oxford, as he had been deprived of the
effectual help of Charles Grant through his unhappy companion, when with only
his eldest son Felix beside him, how did Carey view his God-given mission? The
very different nature of his wife, who had announced to him the birth of a
child, clung anew to the hope that this might cause him to turn back. Writing
from Ryde on the 6th May he thus replied with sweet delicacy of human
affection, but with true loyalty to his Master’s call:--
“Received
yours, giving me an account of your safe delivery. This is pleasant news indeed
to me; surely goodness and mercy follow me all my days. My stay here was very
painful and unpleasant,
but now I see the goodness of God in it. It was that I might hear the most
pleasing accounts that I possibly could hear respecting earthly things. You
wish to know in what state my mind is. I answer, it is much as when I left you.
If I had all the world, I would freely give it all to have you and my dear
children with me; but the sense of duty is so strong as to overpower all other
considerations; I could not turn back without guilt on my soul. I find a
longing desire to enjoy more of God; but, now I am among the people of the
world, I think I see more beauties in godliness than ever, and, I hope, enjoy
more of God in retirement than I have done for some time past...You want to
know what Mrs. Thomas thinks, and how she likes the voyage...She would rather
stay in England than go to India; but thinks it right to go with her
husband...Tell my dear children I love them dearly, and pray for them
constantly. Felix sends his love. I look upon this mercy as an answer to prayer
indeed. Trust in God. Love to Kitty, brothers, sisters, etc. Be assured I love
you most affectionately. Let me know my dear little child’s name.--I am, for ever, your faithful and affectionate husband,
“WILLIAM
CAREY.
“My
health never was so well. I believe the sea makes Felix and me both as hungry
as hunters. I can eat a monstrous meat supper, and drink a couple of glasses of
wine after it, without hurting me at all. Farewell.”
She
was woman and wife enough, in the end, to do as Mrs. Thomas had done, but she
stipulated that her sister should accompany her.
By a
series of specially providential events, as it seemed, such as marked the whole
early history of this first missionary enterprise of modern England, Carey and
Thomas secured a passage on board the Danish Indiaman Kron Princessa Maria,
bound from Copenhagen to Serampore. At Dover, where they had been waiting for
days, the eight were roused from sleep by the news that the ship was off the
harbour. Sunrise on the 13th June saw them on board. Carey had had other
troubles besides his colleague and his wife. His father, then fifty-eight years
old, had not given him up without a struggle. “Is William mad?” he had said
when he received the letter in which his son thus offered himself up on the
missionary altar. His mother had died six years before:--
“LEICESTER,
Jan. 17th, 1793.
“DEAR
AND HONOURED FATHER,--The importance of spending our time for God alone, is the
principal theme of the gospel. I beseech you, brethren, says Paul, by the
mercies of God, that you present your bodies a living sacrifice, holy and
acceptable, which is your reasonable service. To be devoted like a sacrifice to
holy uses, is the great business of a christian, pursuant to these
requisitions. I consider myself as devoted to the service of God alone, and now
I am to realise my professions. I am appointed to go to Bengal, in the East
Indies, a missionary to the Hindoos. I shall have a colleague who has been
there five or six years already, and who understands their language. They are
the most mild and inoffensive people in all the world, but are enveloped in the
greatest superstition, and in the grossest ignorance...I hope, dear father, you
may be enabled to surrender me up to the Lord for the most arduous, honourable,
and important work that ever any of the sons of men were called to engage in. I
have many sacrifices to make. I must part with a beloved family, and a number
of most affectionate friends. Never did I see such sorrow manifested as reigned
through our place of worship last Lord’s-day. But I have set my hand to the
plough.--I remain, your dutiful son,
“WILLIAM
CAREY.”
When
in London Carey had asked John Newton, “What if the Company should send us home
on our arrival in Bengal?” “Then conclude,” was the reply, “that your Lord has
nothing there for you to accomplish. But if He have, no power on earth can
hinder you.” By Act of Parliament not ten years old, every subject of the King
going to or found in the East Indies without a licence from the Company, was
guilty of a high crime and misdemeanour, and liable to fine and imprisonment.
Only four years previously a regulation had compelled every commander to
deliver to the Hoogli pilot a return of the passengers on board that the Act
might be enforced. The Danish nationality of the ship and crew saved the
missionary party. So grievously do unjust laws demoralise contemporary opinion,
that Fuller was constrained to meet the objections of many to the “illegality”
of the missionaries’ action by reasoning, unanswerable indeed, but not now required:
“The apostles and primitive ministers were commanded to go into all the world,
and preach the gospel to every creature; nor were they to stop for the permission of any
power upon earth, but to go, and take the consequences. If a man of God,
conscious of having nothing in his heart unfriendly to any civil government
whatever, but determined in all civil matters to obey and teach obedience to
the powers that are, put his life in his hand, saying, I will go, and if I am
persecuted in one city I will flee to another’...whatever the wisdom of this
world may decide upon his conduct, he will assuredly be acquitted, and more
than acquitted, at a higher tribunal.”
Carey’s
journal of the voyage begins with an allusion to “the abominable East Indian
monopoly,” which he was to do more than any other man to break down by weapons
not of man’s warfare. The second week found him at Bengali, and for his
companion the poems of Cowper. Of the four fellow-passengers one was a French
deist, with whom he had many a debate.
“Aug.
2.--I feel myself to be much declined, upon the whole, in the more spiritual
exercises of religion; yet have had some pleasant exercises of soul, and feel
my heart set upon the great work upon which I am going. Sometimes I am quite
dejected when I see the impenetrability of the hearts of those with us. They
hear us preach on the Lord’s-day, but we are forced to witness their disregard
to God all the week. O may God give us greater success among the heathen. I am
very desirous that my children may pursue the same work; and now intend to
bring up one in the study of Sanskrit, and another of Persian. O may God give
them grace to fit them for the work! I have been much concerned for fear the
power of the Company should oppose us...
“Aug.
20.--I have reason to lament over a barrenness of soul, and am sometimes much
discouraged; for if I am so dead and stupid, how can I expect to be of any use
among the heathen? Yet I have of late felt some very lively desires after the
success of our undertaking. If there is anything that engages my heart in
prayer to God, it is that the heathen may be converted, and that the society
which has so generously exerted itself may be encouraged, and excited to go on
with greater vigour in the important undertaking...
“Nov.
9.--I think that I have had more liberty in prayer, and more converse with God,
than for some time before; but have, notwithstanding, been a very unfruitful
creature, and so remain. For near a month we have been within two hundred miles
of Bengal, but the violence of the currents set us back when we have been at
the very door. I hope I have learned the necessity of bearing up in the things
of God against wind and tide, when there is occasion, as we have done in our
voyage.”
To
the Society he writes for a Polyglot Bible, the Gospels in Malay, Curtis’s Botanical
Magazine, and Sowerby’s English Botany, at his own cost, and thus
plans the conquest of the world:--“I hope the Society will go on and increase,
and that the multitudes of heathen in the world may hear the glorious words of
truth. Africa is but a little way from England; Madagascar but a little way
farther; South America, and all the numerous and large islands in the Indian
and Chinese seas, I hope will not be passed over. A large field opens on every
side, and millions of perishing heathens, tormented in this life by idolatry,
superstition, and ignorance, and exposed to eternal miseries in the world to
come, are pleading; yea, all their miseries plead as soon as they are known,
with every heart that loves God, and with all the churches of the living God.
Oh, that many labourers may be thrust out into the vineyard of our Lord Jesus
Christ, and that the gentiles may come to the knowledge of the truth as it is
in Him!”
On
the 7th November, as the ship lay in the roads of Balasore, he and Thomas
landed and “began our labours.” For three hours the people of the bazaar
listened with great attention to Thomas, and one prepared for them a native
dinner with plantain leaf for dish, and fingers for knives and forks. Balasore--name
of Krishna--was one of the first settlements of the English in North India in
1642, and there the American Baptist successors of Carey have since carried on
his work. On the 11th November, after a five months’ voyage, they landed at
Calcutta unmolested. The first fortnight’s experience of the city, whose native
population he estimated at 200,000, and of the surrounding country, he thus
condenses:--“I feel something of what Paul felt when he beheld Athens, and ‘his
spirit was stirred within him.’ I see one of the finest countries in the world,
full of industrious inhabitants; yet three-fifths of it are an uncultivated
jungle, abandoned to wild beasts and serpents. If the gospel flourishes here,
‘the wilderness will in every respect become a fruitful field.’”
Clive,
Hastings (Macpherson during an interregnum of twenty-two months), and
Cornwallis, were the men who had founded and administered the empire of British
India up to this time. Carey passed the last Governor-General in the Bay of
Bengal as he retired with the honours of a seven years’ successful generalship
and government to atone for the not unhappy surrender of York Town, which had resulted
in the independence of the United States. Sir John Shore, afterwards Lord
Teignmouth, who had been selected by Pitt to carry out the reforms which he had
elaborated along with his predecessor, had entered on his high office just a
fortnight before. What a contrast was presented, as man judges, by the shy
shoemaker, schoolmaster, and Baptist preacher, who found not a place in which
to lay his head save a hovel lent to him by a Hindoo, to Clive, whose suicide
he might have heard of when a child; to Hastings, who for seventeen years had
stood before his country impeached. They were men described by Macaulay as of
ancient, even illustrious lineage, and they had brought into existence an
empire more extensive than that of Rome. He was a peasant craftsman, who had
taught himself with a skill which Lord Wellesley, their successor almost as
great as themselves, delighted publicly to acknowledge--a
man of the people, of the class who had used the Roman Empire to build out of
it a universal Christendom, who were even then turning France upside down,
creating the Republic of America, and giving new life to Great Britain itself.
The little Englishman was about to do in Calcutta and from Serampore what the
little Jew, Paul, had done in Antioch and Ephesus, from Corinth and Rome.
England might send its nobly born to erect the material and the secular fabric
of empire, but it was only, in the providence of God, that they might prepare
for the poor village preacher to convert the empire into a spiritual force
which should in time do for Asia what Rome had done for Western Christendom.
But till the last, as from the first, Carey was as unconscious of the part
which he had been called to play as he was unresting in the work which it
involved. It is no fanatical criticism, but the true philosophy of history,
which places Carey over against Clive, the spiritual and secular founders, and
Duff beside Hastings, the spiritual and secular consolidators of our Indian
Empire.
Carey’s
work for India underlay the first period of forty years of transition from
Cornwallis to Bentinck, as Duff’s covered the second of thirty years to the
close of Lord Canning’s administration, which introduced the new era of full
toleration and partial but increasing self-government directed by the Viceroy
and Parliament.
Carey
had been sent not only to the one people outside of Christendom whose
conversion would tell most powerfully on all Asia, Africa, and their
islands--the Hindoos; but to the one province which was almost entirely
British, and could be used as it had been employed to assimilate the rest of
India--Bengal. Territorially the East India Company possessed, when he landed,
nothing outside of the Ganges valley of Bengal, Bihar, and Benares, save a few
spots on the Madras and Malabar coasts and the portion just before taken in the
Mysore war. The rest was desolated by the Marathas, the Nizam, Tipoo, and other
Mohammedan adventurers. On the Gangetic delta and right up to Allahabad, but
not beyond, the Company ruled and raised revenue, leaving the other functions
of the state to Mohammedans of the type of Turkish pashas under the titular
superiority of the effete Emperor of Delhi. The Bengali and Hindi-speaking
millions of the Ganges and the simpler aborigines of the hills had been
devastated by the famine of 1769-70, which the Company’s officials, who were
powerless where they did not intensify it by interference with trade, confessed
to have cut off from ten to twelve millions of human beings. Over three-fifths
of the area the soil was left without a cultivator. The whole young of that
generation perished, so that, even twenty years after, Lord Cornwallis
officially described one-third of Bengal as a jungle inhabited only by wild
beasts. A quarter of a century after Carey’s language was, as we have seen,
“three-fifths of it are an uncultivated jungle abandoned to wild beasts and
serpents.”
But
the British peace, in Bengal at least, had allowed abundant crops to work their
natural result on the population. The local experience of Shore, who had
witnessed the horrors he could do so little to relieve, had united with the
statesmanship of Cornwallis to initiate a series of administrative reforms that
worked some evil, but more good, all through Carey’s time. First of all, as
affecting the very existence and the social development of the people, or their
capacity for being educated, Christianised, civilised in the highest sense,
there was the relation of the Government to the ryots (“protected ones”) and
the zameendars (“landholders”). In India, as nearly all over the world except
in feudalised Britain, the state is the common landlord in the interests of all
classes who hold the soil subject to the payment of customary rents, directly
or through middlemen, to the Government. For thirty years after Plassey the
Government of India had been learning its business, and in the process had
injured both itself and the landed classes, as much as has been done in
Ireland. From a mere trader it had been, more or less consciously, becoming a
ruler. In 1786 the Court
of Directors, in a famous letter, tried to arrest the ruin which the famine had
only hastened by ordering that a settlement of the land-tax
or revenue or rent be made, not with mere farmers like the pashas of Turkey,
but with the old zameendars, and that the rate be fixed for ten years.
Cornwallis and Shore took three years to make the detailed investigations, and
in 1789 the state rent-roll of Bengal proper was fixed at £2,858,772 a year.
The English peer, who was Governor-General, at once jumped to the conclusion
that this rate should be fixed not only for ten years, but for ever. The
experienced Bengal civilian protested that to do that would be madness when a
third of the rich province was out of cultivation, and as to the rest its value
was but little known, and its estates were without reliable survey or
boundaries.
We
can now see that, as usual, both were right in what they asserted and wrong in
what they denied. The principle of fixity of tenure and tax cannot be
over-estimated in its economic, social, and political value, but it should have
been applied to the village communities and cultivating peasants without the
intervention of middlemen other than the large ancestral landholders with
hereditary rights, and that on the standard of corn rents. Cornwallis had it in
his power thus to do what some years afterwards Stein did in Prussia, with the
result seen in the present German people and empire. The dispute as to a
permanent or a decennial settlement was referred home, and Pitt, aided by
Dundas and Charles Grant, took a week to consider it. His verdict was given in favour
of feudalism. Eight months before Carey landed at Calcutta the settlement had
been declared perpetual; in 1795 it was extended to Benares also.
During
the next twenty years mismanagement and debt revolutionised the landed
interest, as in France at the same time, but in a very different direction. The
customary rights of the peasant proprietors had been legislatively secured by
reserving to the Governor-General the power “to enact such regulations as he
may think necessary for the protection and welfare of the dependent talookdars,
ryots, and other cultivators of the soil.” The peasants continued long to be so
few that there was competition for them; the process of extortion with the aid
of the courts had hardly begun when they were many, and the zameendars were
burdened with charges for the police. But in 1799 and again in 1812 the state,
trembling for its rent, gave the zameendars further authority. The principle of
permanence of assessment so far co-operated with the splendid fertility of the
Ganges valley and the peaceful multiplication of the people and spread of
cultivation, that all through the wars and annexations, up to the close of the
Mutiny, it was Bengal which enabled England to extend the empire up to its
natural limits from the two seas to the Himalaya. But in 1859 the first attempt
was made by the famous Act X. to check the rack-renting power of the
zameendars. And now, more than a century since the first step was taken to
arrest the ruin of the peasantry, the legislature of India has again tried to
solve for the whole country these four difficulties which all past landed
regulations have intensified--to give the state tenants a guarantee against
uncertain enhancements of rent, and against taxation of improvements; to
minimise the evil of taking rent in cash instead of in kind by arranging the
dates on which rent is paid; and to mitigate if not prevent famine by allowing
relief for failure of crops. As pioneering, the work of Carey and his
colleagues all through was distinctly hindered by the treatment of the land
question, which at once ground down the mass of the people and created a class
of oppressive landlords destitute for the most part of public spirit and the
higher culture. Both were disinclined by their circumstances to lend an ear to
the Gospel, but these circumstances made it the more imperative on the
missionaries to tell them, to teach their children, to print for all the glad
tidings. Carey, himself of peasant extraction, cared for the millions of the
people above all; but his work in the classical as well as the vernacular
languages was equally addressed to their twenty thousand landlords. The time of
his work--before Bentinck; and the centre of it--outside the metropolis, left
the use of the English weapon against Brahmanism largely for Duff.
When
Cornwallis, following Warren Hastings, completed the substitution of the
British for the Mohammedan civil administration by a system of courts and
police and a code of regulations, he was guilty of one omission and one mistake
that it took years of discussion and action to rectify. He did not abolish from
the courts the use of Persian, the language of the old Mussulman invaders, now
foreign to all parties; and he excluded from all offices above £30 a year the
natives of the country, contrary to their fair and politic practice. Bengal and
its millions, in truth, were nominally governed in detail by three hundred
white and upright civilians, with the inevitable result in abuses which they
could not prevent, and oppression of native by native which they would not
check, and the delay or development of reforms which the few missionaries long called for in vain. In a
word, after making the most generous allowance for the good intentions of
Cornwallis, and conscientiousness of Shore, his successor, we must admit that
Carey was called to become the reformer of a state of society which the worst
evils of Asiatic and English rule combined to prevent him and other self-sacrificing or disinterested philanthropists from purifying. The East
India Company, at home and in India, had reached that depth of opposition to
light and freedom in any form which justifies Burke’s extremest passages--the
period between its triumph on the exclusion of “the pious clauses” from the
Charter of 1793 and its defeat in the Charter of 1813. We shall reproduce some
outlines of the picture which Ward drew:--7
“On
landing in Bengal, in the year 1793, our brethren found themselves surrounded
with a population of heathens (not including the Mahometans) amounting to at
least one hundred millions of souls.
“On
the subject of the divine nature, with the verbal admission of the doctrine of
the divine unity, they heard these idolaters speak of 330,000,000 of gods.
Amidst innumerable idol temples they found none erected for the worship of the
one living and true God. Services without end they saw performed in honour of
the elements and deified heroes, but heard not one voice tuned to the praise or
employed in the service of the one God. Unacquainted with the moral perfections
of Jehovah, they saw this immense population prostrate before dead matter,
before the monkey, the serpent, before idols the very personifications of sin;
and they found this animal, this reptile, and the lecher Krishnu {u with
inverted ^ like
š} and his concubine Radha, among the favourite deities
of the Hindoos...
“Respecting
the real nature of the present state, the missionaries perceived that the
Hindoos laboured under the most fatal misapprehensions; that they believed the
good or evil actions of this birth were not produced as the volitions of their
own wills, but arose from, and were the unavoidable results of, the actions of
the past birth; that their present actions would inevitably give rise to the
whole complexion of their characters and conduct in the following birth; and
that thus they were doomed to interminable transmigrations, to float as some
light substance upon the bosom of an irresistible torrent...
“Amongst
these idolaters no Bibles were found; no sabbaths; no congregating for
religious instruction in any form; no house for God; no God but a log of wood,
or a monkey; no Saviour but the Ganges; no worship but that paid to abominable
idols, and that connected with dances, songs, and unutterable impurities; so
that what should have been divine worship, purifying, elevating, and carrying
the heart to heaven, was a corrupt but rapid torrent, poisoning the soul and
carrying it down to perdition; no morality, for how should a people be moral
whose gods are monsters of vice; whose priests are their ringleaders in crime;
whose scriptures encourage pride, impurity, falsehood, revenge, and murder;
whose worship is connected with indescribable abominations, and whose heaven is
a brothel? As might be expected, they found that men died here without
indulging the smallest vestige of hope, except what can arise from
transmigration, the hope, instead of plunging into some place of misery, of
passing into the body of some reptile. To carry to such a people the divine
word, to call them together for sacred instruction, to introduce amongst them a
pure and heavenly worship, and to lead them to the observance of a Sabbath on
earth, as the preparative and prelude to a state of endless perfection, was
surely a work worthy for a Saviour to command, and becoming a christian people
to attempt.”
The
condition of women, who were then estimated at “seventy-five millions of
minds,” and whom the census shows to be now above 144,000,000, is thus
described after an account of female infanticide:--
“To
the Hindoo female all education is denied by the positive injunction of the
shastru {u with inverted ^
like š}, and by the general voice of the population. Not a
single school for girls, therefore, all over the country! With knitting,
sewing, embroidery, painting, music, and drawing, they have no more to do than
with letters; the washing is done by men of a particular tribe. The
Hindoo girl, therefore, spends the ten first years of her life in sheer
idleness, immured in the house of her father.
“Before
she has attained to this age, however, she is sought after by the ghutuks,
men employed by parents to seek wives for their sons. She is betrothed without
her consent; a legal agreement, which binds her for life, being made by the
parents on both sides while she is yet a child. At a time most convenient to
the parents, this boy and girl are brought together for the first time, and the
marriage ceremony is performed; after which she returns to the house of her
father.
“Before
the marriage is consummated, in many instances, the boy dies, and this girl
becomes a widow; and as the law prohibits the marriage of widows, she is doomed
to remain in this state as long as she lives. The greater number of these
unfortunate beings become a prey to the seducer, and a disgrace to their
families. Not long since a bride, on the day the marriage ceremony was to have
been performed, was burnt on the funeral pile with the dead body of the
bridegroom, at Chandernagore, a few miles north of Calcutta. Concubinage, to a
most awful extent, is the fruit of these marriages without choice. What a sum
of misery is attached to the lot of woman in India before she has attained even
her fifteenth year!
“In
some cases as many as fifty females, the daughters of so many Hindoos, are
given in marriage to one bramhun {u with inverted ^ like š}, in order to make these families something more respectable, and that
the parents may be able to say, we are allied by marriage to the kooleens...
“But the awful state of
female society in this miserable country appears in nothing so much as in
dooming the female, the widow, to be burnt alive with the putrid carcase of her
husband. The Hindoo legislators have sanctioned this immolation, showing herein
a studied determination to insult and degrade woman. She is, therefore, in the
first instance, deluded into this act by the writings of these bramhuns {u with inverted ^
like š}; in which also she is promised, that if she will offer herself, for
the benefit of her husband, on the funeral pile, she shall, by the
extraordinary merit of this action, rescue her husband from misery, and take
him and fourteen generations of his and her family with her to heaven, where
she shall enjoy with them celestial happiness until fourteen kings of the gods
shall have succeeded to the throne of heaven (that is, millions of years!) Thus
ensnared, she embraces this dreadful death. I have seen three widows, at
different times, burnt alive; and had repeated opportunities of being present
at similar immolations, but my courage failed me...
“The burying alive of widows
manifests, if that were possible, a still more abominable state of feeling
towards women than the burning them alive. The weavers bury their dead. When,
therefore, a widow of this tribe is deluded into the determination not to
survive her husband, she is buried alive with the dead body. In this kind of
immolation the children and relations dig the grave. After certain ceremonies
have been attended to, the poor widow arrives, and is let down into the pit.
She sits in the centre, taking the dead body on her lap and encircling it with
her arms. These relations now begin to throw in the soil; and after a short
space, two of them descend into the grave, and tread the earth firmly round the
body of the widow. She sits a calm and unremonstrating spectator of the horrid
process. She sees the earth rising higher and higher around her, without
upbraiding her murderers, or making the least effort to arise and make her
escape. At length the earth reaches her lips--covers
her head. The rest of the earth is then hastily thrown in, and these children
and relations mount the grave, and tread down the earth upon the head of the
suffocating widow--the mother!”
Before
Carey, what had been done to turn the millions of North India from such
darkness as that? Nothing, beyond the brief and impulsive efforts of Thomas.
There does not seem to have been there one genuine convert from any of the
Asiatic faiths; there had never been even the nucleus of a native church.
In
South India, for the greater part of the century, the Coast Mission, as it was
called, had been carried on from Tranquebar as a centre by the Lutherans whom,
from Ziegenbalg to Schwartz, Francke had trained at Halle and Friedrich IV. of
Denmark had sent forth to its East India Company’s settlement. From the baptism
of the first convert in 1707 and translation of the New Testament into Tamil,
to the death in 1798 of Schwartz, with whom Carey sought to begin a
correspondence then taken up by Guericke, the foundations were laid around
Madras, in Tanjore, and in Tinnevelli of a native church which now includes
nearly a million. But, when Carey landed, rationalism in Germany and Denmark,
and the Carnatic wars between the English and French, had reduced the Coast
Mission to a state of inanition. Nor was Southern India the true or ultimate
battlefield against Brahmanism; the triumphs of Christianity there were rather
among the demon-worshipping tribes of Dravidian origin than among the Aryan
races till Dr. W. Miller developed the Christian College. But the way for the
harvest now being reaped by the Evangelicals and Anglicans of the Church of
England, by the Independents of the London Missionary Society, the Wesleyans,
and the Presbyterians of Scotland and America, was prepared by the German
Ziegenbalg and Schwartz under Danish protection. The English Propagation and
Christian Knowledge Societies sent them occasional aid, the first two Georges
under the influence of their German chaplains wrote to them encouraging
letters, and the East India Company even gave them a free passage in its ships,
and employed the sculptor Bacon to prepare the noble group of marble which, in
St. Mary’s Church, Madras, expresses its gratitude to Schwartz for his
political services.
It
was Clive himself who brought to Calcutta the first missionary, Kiernander the
Swede, but he was rather a chaplain, or a missionary to the Portuguese, who
were nominal Christians of the lowest Romanist type. The French had closed the
Danish mission at Cuddalore, and in 1758 Calcutta was without a Protestant
clergyman to bury the dead or baptise or marry the living. Two years before one
of the two chaplains had perished in the tragedy of the Black Hole, where he
was found lying hand in hand with his son, a young lieutenant. The other had
escaped down the river only to die of fever along with many more. The victory
of Plassey and the large compensation paid for the destruction of Old Calcutta
and its church induced thousands of natives to flock to the new capital, while
the number of the European troops and officials was about 2000. When chaplains
were sent out, the Governor-General officially wrote of them to the Court of
Directors so late as 1795:--“Our clergy in Bengal, with some exceptions, are
not respectable characters.” From the general relaxation of morals, he added,
“a black coat is no security.” They were so badly paid--from £50 to £230 a
year, increased by £120 to meet the cost of living in Calcutta after 1764--that
they traded. Preaching was the least of the chaplains’ duties; burying was the most onerous.
Anglo-Indian society, cut off from London, itself not much
better, by a six months’ voyage, was corrupt. Warren Hastings and Philip
Francis, his hostile colleague in Council, lived in open adultery. The majority
of the officials had native women, and the increase of their children, who
lived in a state worse than that of the heathen, became so alarming that the
compensation paid by the Mohammedan Government of Moorshedabad for the
destruction of the church was applied to the foundation of the useful charity
still known as the Free School. The fathers not infrequently adopted the Hindoo
pantheon along with the zanana. The pollution, springing from England
originally, was rolled back into it in an increasing volume, when the survivors
retired as nabobs with fortunes, to corrupt social and political life, till
Pitt cried out; and it became possible for Burke almost to succeed in his
eighteen years’ impeachment of Hastings. The literature of the close of the
eighteenth century is full of alarm lest the English character should be
corrupted, and lest the balance of the constitution should be upset.
Kiernander
is said to have been the means of converting 209 heathens and 380 Romanists, of
whom three were priests, during the twenty-eight years of his Calcutta career.
Claudius Buchanan declares that Christian tracts had been translated into
Bengali--one written by the Bishop of Sodor and Man--and that in the time of
Warren Hastings Hindoo Christians had preached to their countrymen in the city.
The “heathen” were probably Portuguese descendants, in whose language
Kiernander preached as the lingua franca of the time. He could not even
converse in Bengali or Hindostani, and when Charles Grant went to him for
information as to the way of a sinner’s salvation this happened--“My anxious
inquiries as to what I should do to be saved appeared to embarrass and confuse
him exceedingly. He could not answer my questions, but he gave me some good
instructive books.” On Kiernander’s bankruptcy, caused by his son when the
father was blind, the “Mission Church” was bought by Grant, who wrote that its
labours “have been confined to the descendants of Europeans, and have hardly
ever embraced a single heathen, so that a mission to the Hindoos and
Mohammedans would be a new thing.” The Rev. David Brown, who had been sent out
the year after as master and chaplain of the Military Orphan Society, for the
education of the children of officers and soldiers, and was to become one of
the Serampore circle of friends, preached to Europeans only in the Mission
Church. Carey could find no trace of Kiernander’s work among the natives six
years after his death.8 The only converted Hindoo known of in Northern India up
to that time was Guneshan Dass, of Delhi, who when a boy joined Clive’s army,
who was the first man of caste to visit England, and who, on his return with
the Calcutta Supreme Court Judges in 1774 as Persian interpreter and
translator, was baptised by Kiernander, Mr. justice Chambers being sponsor.
William
Carey had no predecessor in India as the first ordained Englishman who was sent
to it as a missionary; he had no predecessor in Bengal and Hindostan proper as
the first missionary from any land to the people. Even the Moravians, who in
1777 had sent two brethren to Serampore, Calcutta, and Patna, had soon
withdrawn them, and one of them became the Company’s botanist in Madras--Dr.
Heyne. Carey practically stood alone at the first, while he unconsciously set
in motion the double revolution, which was to convert the Anglo-Indian
influence on England from corrupting heathenism to aggressive missionary zeal,
and to change the Bengal of Cornwallis into the India of Bentinck, with all the
possibilities that have made it grow, thus far, into the India of the
Lawrences.
CHAPTER
IV
SIX
YEARS IN NORTH BENGAL--MISSIONARY AND INDIGO PLANTER
1794-1799
Carey’s
two missionary principles--Destitute in Calcutta--Bandel and Nuddea--Applies in
vain to be under-superintendent of the Botanic Garden--Housed by a native
usurer--Translation and preaching work in Calcutta--Secures a grant of waste
land at Hasnabad--Estimate of the Bengali language, and appeal to the Society
to work in Asia and Africa rather than in America--The Udny family--Carey’s
summary of his first year’s experience--Superintends the indigo factory of
Mudnabati--Indigo and the East India Company’s monopolies--Carey’s first nearly
fatal sickness--Death of his child and chronic madness of his wife--Formation
of first Baptist church in India--Early progress of Bible translation--Sanskrit
studies; the Mahabarata--The wooden printing-press set up at
Mudnabati--His educational ideal; school-work--The medical mission--Lord
Wellesley--Carey seeks a mission centre among the Bhooteas--Describes his first
sight of a Sati--Projects a mission settlement at Kidderpore.
CAREY
was in his thirty-third year when he landed in Bengal. Two principles regulated
the conception, the foundation, and the whole course of the mission which he
now began. He had been led to these by the very genius of Christianity itself,
by the example and teaching of Christ and of Paul, and by the experience of the
Moravian brethren. He had laid them down in his Enquiry, and every
month’s residence during forty years in India confirmed him in his adhesion to
them. These principles are that (1) a missionary must be one of the companions
and equals of the people to whom he is sent; and (2) a missionary must as soon
as possible become indigenous, self-supporting, self-propagating, alike by the
labours of the mission and of the converts. Himself a man of the people yet a
scholar, a shoemaker and a schoolmaster yet a preacher and pastor to whom the
great Robert Hall gloried in being a successor, Carey had led the two lives as
Paul had done. Now that he was fairly in Calcutta he resumed the divine toil,
and ceased it not till he entered on the eternal rest. He prepared to go up
country to Malda to till the ground among the natives of the rich district
around the ruined capital of Gour. He engaged as his pundit and interpreter Ram
Basu, one of the professing inquirers whom Thomas had attracted in former days.
Experience soon taught him that, however correct his principle, Malda is not a
land where the white man can be a farmer. So he became, in the different stages
of his career, a captain of labour as an indigo planter, a teacher of Bengali,
and professor of Sanskrit and Marathi, and the Government translator of
Bengali. Nor did he or his associates ever make the mistake--or commit the
fraud--of the Jesuit missionaries, whose idea of equality with the people was
not that of brotherhood in Christ, but that of dragging down Christian
doctrine, worship and civilisation, to the level of idolatrous heathenism, and
deluding the ignorant into accepting the blasphemous compromise.
Alas!
Carey could not manage to get out of Calcutta and its neighbourhood for five
months. As he thought to live by farming, Thomas was to practise his
profession; and their first year’s income of £150 had, in those days when the
foreign exchanges were unknown, to be realised by the sale of the goods in
which it had been invested. As usual, Thomas had again blundered, so that even
his gentle colleague himself half-condemned, half-apologised for him by the
shrewd reflection that he was only fit to live at sea, where his daily business
would be before him, and daily provision would be made for him. Carey found
himself penniless. Even had he received the whole of his £75, as he really did
in one way or other, what was that for such a family as his at the beginning of
their undertaking? The expense of living at all in Calcutta drove the whole
party thirty miles up the river to Bandel, an old Portuguese suburb of the
Hoogli factory. There they rented a small house from the German hotel-keeper,
beside the Augustinian priory and oldest church in North India, which dates
from 1599 and is still in good order. There they met Kiernander, then at the
great age of eighty-four. Daily they preached or talked to the people. They
purchased a boat for regular visitation of the hamlets, markets, and towns
which line both banks of the river. With sure instinct Carey soon fixed on
Nuddea, as the centre of Brahmanical superstition and Sanskrit learning, where
“to build me a hut and live like the natives,” language recalled to us by the
words of the dying Livingstone in the swamps of Central Africa. There, in the
capital of the last of the Hindoo kings, beside the leafy tols or
colleges of a river port which rivals Benares, Poona, and Conjeeveram in
sanctity, where Chaitanya the Vaishnaiva reformer was born, Carey might have
attacked Brahmanism
in its stronghold. A passage in his journal shows how he realised the position.
Thomas, the pundit, and he “sought the Lord by prayer for direction,” and this
much was the result--“Several of the most learned Pundits
and Brahmans wished us to settle there; and, as that is the great place for
Eastern learning, we seemed inclined, especially as it is the bulwark of
heathenism, which, if once carried, all the rest of the country must be laid
open to us.” But there was no available land there for an Englishman’s
cultivation. From Bandel he wrote home these impressions of Anglo-Indian life
and missionary duty:--
“26th
Dec. 1793.--A missionary must be one of the companions and equals of the people
to whom he is sent, and many dangers and temptations will be in his way. One or
two pieces of advice I may venture to give. The first is to be exceedingly
cautious lest the voyage prove a great snare. All the discourse is about high
life, and every circumstance will contribute to unfit the mind for the work and
prejudice the soul against the people to whom he goes; and in a country like
this, settled by Europeans, the grandeur, the customs, and prejudices of the
Europeans are exceeding dangerous. They are very kind and hospitable, but even
to visit them, if a man keeps no table of his own, would more than ten times
exceed the allowance of a mission; and all their discourse is about the vices
of the natives, so that a missionary must see thousands of people treating him
with the greatest kindness, but whom he must be entirely different from in his
life, his appearance in everything, or it is impossible for him to stand their
profuse way of living, being so contrary to his character and so much above his
ability. This is a snare to dear Mr. Thomas, which will be felt by us both in
some measure. It will be very important to missionaries to be men of calmness
and evenness of temper, and rather inclined to suffer hardships than to court
the favour of men, and such who will be indefatigably employed in the work set
before them, an inconstancy of mind being quite injurious to it.”
He
had need of such faith and patience. Hearing of waste land in Calcutta, he
returned there only to be disappointed. The Danish captain, knowing that he had
written a botanical work, advised him to take it to the doctor in charge of the
Company’s Botanic Garden, and offer himself for a vacant appointment to
superintend part of it. The doctor, who and whose successors were soon to be
proud of his assistance on equal terms, had to tell him that the office had
been filled up, but invited the weary man to dine with him. Houseless, with his
maddened wife, and her sister and two of his four children down with dysentery,
due to the bad food and exposure of six weeks in the interor, Carey found a
friend, appropriately enough, in a Bengali money-lender.9 Nelu Dutt, a banker
who had lent money to Thomas, offered the destitute family his garden house in
the north-eastern quarter of Manicktolla until they could do better. The place
was mean enough, but Carey never forgot the deed, and he had it in his power
long after to help Nelu Dutt when in poverty. Such, on the other hand, was the
dislike of the Rev. David Brown to Thomas, that when Carey had walked five
miles in the heat of the sun to visit the comparatively prosperous evangelical
preacher, “I left him without his having so much as asked me to take any
refreshment.”
Carey
would not have been allowed to live in Calcutta as a missionary. Forty years
were to pass before that could be possible without a Company’s passport. But no
one was aware of the existence of the obscure vagrant, as he seemed, although
he was hard at work. All around him was a Mohammedan community whom he
addressed with the greatest freedom, and with whom he discussed the relative
merits of the Koran and the Bible in a kindly spirit, “to recommend the Gospel
and the way of life by Christ.” He had helped Thomas with a translation of the
book of Genesis during the voyage, and now we find this in his journal two
months and a half after he had landed:--
“Through
the delays of my companion I have spent another month, and done scarcely
anything, except that I have added to my knowledge of the language, and had
opportunity of seeing much more of the genius and disposition of the natives
than I otherwise could have known. This day finished the correction of the
first chapter of Genesis, which moonshi says is rendered into very good
Bengali. Just as we had finished it, a pundit and another man from Nuddea came
to see me. I showed it to them; and the pundit seemed much pleased with the account of the
creation; only they have an imaginary place somewhere beneath the earth, and he
thought that should have been mentioned likewise...
“Was
very weary, having walked in the sun about fifteen or sixteen miles, yet had the
satisfaction of discoursing with some money-changers at Calcutta, who could
speak English, about the importance and absolute necessity of faith in the Lord
Jesus Christ. One of them was a very crafty man, and tried much to entangle me
with hard questions; but at last, finding himself entangled, he desisted, and
went to his old occupation of money-changing again. If once God would by his
Spirit convince them of sin, a Saviour would be a blessing indeed to them: but
human nature is the same all the world over, and all conviction fails except it
is produced by the effectual working of the Holy Spirit.”
Ram
Basu was himself in debt, was indeed all along a self-interested inquirer. But
the next gleam of hope came from him, that the Carey family should move to the
waste jungles of the Soondarbans, the tiger-haunted swamps south-east of
Calcutta, and there cultivate a grant of land. With a sum of £16 borrowed from
a native at twelve per cent. by Mr. Thomas, a boat was hired, and on the fourth
day, when only one more meal remained, the miserable family and their
stout-hearted father saw an English-built house. As they walked up to it the
owner met them, and with Anglo-Indian hospitality invited them all to become
his guests. He proved to be Mr. Charles Short, in charge of the Company’s salt
manufacture there. As a deist he had no sympathy with Carey’s enterprise, but
he helped the missionary none the less, and the reward came to him in due time
in the opening of his heart to the love of Christ. He afterwards married Mrs.
Carey’s sister, and in England the two survived the great missionary, to tell
this and much more regarding him. Here, at the place appropriately named
Hasnabad, or the “smiling spot,” Carey took a few acres on the Jamoona arm of
the united Ganges and Brahmapootra, and built him a bamboo house, forty miles
east of Calcutta. Knowing that the sahib’s gun would keep off the tigers,
natives squatted around to the number of three or four thousand. Such was the
faith, the industry, and the modesty of the brave little man that, after just
three months, he wrote thus:--“When I know the language well enough to preach
in it, I have no doubt of having a stated congregation, and I much hope to send
you pleasing accounts. I can so far converse in the language as to be
understood in most things belonging to eating and drinking, buying and selling,
etc. My ear is somewhat familiarised to the Bengali sounds. It is a language of
a very singular construction, having no plural except for pronouns, and not a
single preposition in it: but the cases of nouns and pronouns are almost
endless, all the words answering to our prepositions being put after the word,
and forming a new case. Except these singularities, I find it an easy language.
I feel myself happy in my present undertaking; for, though I never felt the
loss of social religion so much as now, yet a consciousness of having given up
all for God is a support; and the work, with all its attendant inconveniences,
is to me a rich reward. I think the Society would do well to keep their eye
towards Africa or Asia, countries which are not like the wilds of America,
where long labour will scarcely collect sixty people to hear the Word: for here
it is almost impossible to get out of the way of hundreds, and preachers are
wanted a thousand times more than people to preach to. Within India are the
Maratha country and the northern parts to Cashmere, in which, as far as I can
learn, there is not one soul that thinks of God aright...My health was never
better. The climate, though hot, is tolerable; but, attended as I am with
difficulties, I would not renounce my undertaking for all the world.”
It
was at this time that he drew his strength often from the experience of the
first missionary, described by Isaiah, in all his solitude:--“Look unto Abraham
your father, for I called him alone and blessed him and increased him. For the
Lord shall comfort Zion; He will comfort all her waste places.” The sun of His
comfort shone forth at last.
Carey’s
original intention to begin his mission near Malda was now to be carried out.
In the opening week of 1794 the small English community in Bengal were saddened
by the news that, when crossing the Hoogli at Calcutta, a boat containing three
of its principal merchants and the wife of one of them, had been upset, and all
had been drowned. It turned out that two of the men recovered, but Mr. R. Udny
and his young wife perished. His aged mother had been one of the godly circle
in the Residency at Malda to whom Thomas had ministered; and Mr. G. Udny, her
other son, was still the Company’s commercial Resident there. A letter of
sympathy which Thomas sent to them restored the old relations, and resulted in
Mr. G. Udny inviting first the writer and then Carey to become his assistants in charge of new indigo
factories which he was building on his own account. Each received a salary
equivalent to £250 a year, with the prospect of a commission on the
out-turn, and even a proprietary share. Carey’s remark in his journal on the
day he received the offer was:--“This appearing to be a remarkable opening in
divine providence for our comfortable support, I accepted it...I shall likewise
be joined with my colleague again, and we shall unitedly engage in our work.”
Again:--“The conversion of the heathen is the object which above all others I
wish to pursue. If my situation at Malda should be tolerable, I most certainly
will publish the Bible in numbers.” On receiving the rejoinder to his
acceptance of the offer he set this down:--“I am resolved to write to the
Society that my circumstances are such that I do not need future help from
them, and to devote a sum monthly for the printing of the Bengali Bible.” This
he did, adding that it would be his glory and joy to stand in the same relation
to the Society as if he needed support from them. He hoped they would be the
sooner able to send another mission somewhere--to Sumatra or some of the Indian
Islands. From the first he lived with such simplicity that he gave from
one-fourth to one-third of his little income to his own mission at Mudnabati.
Carey
thus sums up his first year’s experience before leaving his jungle home on a
three weeks’ voyage up the Ganges, and records his first deliberate and regular
attempt to preach in Bengali on the way.
“8th
April 1794.--All my hope is in, and all my comfort arises from, God; without
His power no European could possibly be converted, and His power can convert
any Indian; and when I reflect that He has stirred me up to the work, and
wrought wonders to prepare the way, I can hope in His promises, and am
encouraged and strengthened...
“19th
April.--O how glorious are the ways of God! ‘My soul longeth and fainteth for
God, for the living God, to see His glory and beauty as I have seen them in the
sanctuary.’ When I first left England, my hope of the conversion of the heathen
was very strong; but, among so many obstacles, it would entirely die away
unless upheld by God. Nothing to exercise it, but plenty to obstruct it, for
now a year and nineteen days, which is the space since I left my dear charge at
Leicester. Since that I have had hurrying up and down; a five months’
imprisonment with carnal men on board the ship; five more learning the
language; my moonshi not understanding English sufficiently to interpret my
preaching; my colleague separated from me; long delays and few opportunities
for social worship; no woods to retire to, like Brainerd, for fear of tigers
(no less than twenty men in the department of Deharta, where I am, have been
carried away by them this season from the salt-works); no earthly thing to
depend upon, or earthly comfort, except food and raiment. Well, I have God, and
His Word is sure; and though the superstitions of the heathen were a million
times worse than they are, if I were deserted by all, and persecuted by all,
yet my hope, fixed on that sure Word, will rise superior to all obstructions,
and triumph over all trials. God’s cause will triumph, and I shall come out of
all trials as gold purified by fire. I was much humbled to-day by reading
Brainerd. O what a disparity betwixt me and him, he always constant, I as
inconstant as the wind!
“22nd
April.--Bless God for a continuance of the happy frame of yesterday. I think
the hope of soon acquiring the language puts fresh life into my soul; for a
long time my mouth has been shut, and my days have been beclouded with
heaviness; but now I begin to be something like a traveller who has been almost
beaten out in a violent storm, and who, with all his clothes about him dripping
wet, sees the sky begin to clear: so I, with only the prospect of a more
pleasant season at hand, scarcely feel the sorrows of the present.
“23rd.--With
all the cares of life, and all its sorrows, yet I find that a life of communion
with God is sufficient to yield consolation in the midst of all, and even to
produce a holy joy in the soul, which shall make it to triumph over all
affliction. I have never yet repented of any sacrifice that I have made for the
Gospel, but find that consolation of mind which can come from God alone.
“26th
May.--This day kept Sabbath at Chandureea; had a pleasant day. In the morning
and afternoon addressed my family, and in the evening began my work of
publishing the Word of God to the heathen. Though imperfect in the knowledge of
the language, yet, with the help of moonshi, I conversed with two Brahmans in
the presence of about two hundred people, about the things of God. I had been
to see a temple, in which were the images of Dukkinroy, the god of the woods,
riding on a tiger; Sheetulla, goddess of the smallpox, without a head, riding
on a horse without a head; Punchanon, with large ears; and Colloroy, riding on
a horse. In another apartment was Seeb, which was only a smooth post of wood,
with two or three
mouldings in it, like the base of a Tuscan pillar. I therefore discoursed with
them upon the vanity of idols, the folly and wickedness of idolatry, the nature
and attributes of God, and the way of salvation by Christ. One Brahman was
quite confounded, and a number of people were all at once crying out to him,
‘Why do you not answer him? Why do you not answer him?’ He replied, ‘I have no
words.’ Just at this time a very learned Brahman came up, who was desired to
talk with me, which he did, and so acceded to what I said, that he at last said
images had been used of late years, but not from the beginning. I inquired what
I must do to be saved; he said I must repeat the name of God a great many
times. I replied, would you, if your son had offended you, be so pleased with
him as to forgive him if he were to repeat the word ‘father’ a thousand times?
This might please children or fools, but God is wise. He told me that I must
get faith; I asked what faith was, to which he gave me no intelligible reply,
but said I must obey God. I answered, what are His commands? what is His will?
They said God was a great light, and as no one could see him, he became
incarnate, under the threefold character of Brhumma, Bishno, and Seeb, and that
either of them must be worshipped in order to life. I told them of the sure
Word of the Gospel, and the way of life by Christ; and, night coming on, left
them. I cannot tell what effect it may have, as I may never see them again.”
At
the beginning of the great rains in the middle of June Carey joined Mr. Udny
and his mother at the chief factory. On each of the next two Sabbaths he
preached twice in the hall of the Residency of the Company, which excluded all
Christian missionaries by Act of Parliament. As an indigo planter he received
the Company’s licence to reside for at least five years. So on 26th June he began
his secular duties by completing for the season of indigo manufacture the
buildings at Mudnabati, and making the acquaintance of the ninety natives under
his charge. Both Mr. Udny and he knew well that he was above all things a
Christian missionary. “These will furnish a congregation immediately, and,
added to the extensive engagements which I must necessarily have with the
natives, will open a very wide door for activity. God grant that it may not
only be large but effectual.”
These
were the days, which continued till the next charter, when the East India
Company was still not only a body of merchants but of manufacturers. Of all the
old monopolies only the most evil one is left, that of the growth, manufacture,
and sale of opium. The civil servants, who were termed Residents, had not
political duties with tributary sovereigns as now, but from great factory-like
palaces, and on large salaries, made advances of money to contractors, native
and European, who induced the ryots to weave cloth, to breed and feed the
silkworm, and to grow and make the blue dye to which India had long given the
name of “indigo.” Mr. Carey was already familiar with the system of advances
for salt, and the opium monopoly was then in its infancy. The European
contractors were “interlopers,” who introduced the most valuable cultivation
and processes into India, and yet with whom the “covenanted” Residents were
often at war. The Residents had themselves liberty of private trade, and
unscrupulous men abused it. Clive had been hurried out thirty years before to
check the abuse, which was ruining not only the Company’s investments but the
people. It had so spread on his departure that even judges and chaplains shared
in the spoils till Cornwallis interfered. In the case of Mr. G. Udny and purely
commercial agents the evil was reduced to a minimum, and the practice had been
deliberately sanctioned by Sir John Shore on the ground that it was desirable
to make the interests of the Company and of individuals go hand in hand.
The
days when Europe got its cotton cloth from India, calling it “calico,” from
Calicut, and its rich yellow silks, have long since passed, although the latter
are still supplied in an inferior form, and the former is once more raising its
head, from the combination of machinery and cheap labour. For the old abuses of
the Company the Government by Parliament has to some extent atoned by fostering
the new cultures of tea, coffee, and cinchona, jute and wheat. The system of
inducing the ryots to cultivate by advances, protected by a stringent contract
law, still exists in the case of opium. The indigo culture system of Carey’s
time broke down in 1860 in the lower districts, where, following the Company
itself, the planter made cash advances to the peasant, who was required to sow
indigo on land which he held as a tenant but often as a proprietor, to deliver
it at a fixed rate, and to bear the risk of the crop as well as the exactions
of the factory servants. It still exists in the upper districts of Bihar,
especially in Tirhoot, on a system comparatively free from economic objections.
The
plant known as “Indigofera Tinctoria” is sown in March in soil carefully
prepared, grows to about 5 feet, is cut down early in July, is fermented in vats, and the
liquor is beaten till it precipitates the precious blue dye, which is boiled,
drained, cut in small cakes, and dried. From first to last the growth and the
manufacture are even more precarious than most tropical crops. An even
rainfall, rigorous weeding, the most careful superintendence of the chemical
processes, and conscientious packing, are necessary. One good crop in three
years will pay where the factory is not burdened by severe interest on capital;
one every other year will pay very well. Personally Carey had more than the
usual qualifications of a successful planter, scientific knowledge, scrupulous
conscientiousness and industry, and familiarity with the native character, so
soon as he acquired the special experience necessary for superintending the
manufacture. That experience he spared no effort to gain at once.
“1st,
2nd, and 3rd July.--Much engaged in the necessary business of preparing our
works for the approaching season of indigo-making, which will commence in about
a fortnight. I had on the evening of each of these days very precious seasons
of fervent prayer to God. I have been on these evenings much drawn out in
prayer for my dear friends at Leicester, and for the Society that it may be
prosperous; likewise for the ministers of my acquaintance, not only of the
Baptist but other denominations. I was engaged for the churches in America and Holland,
as well as England, and much concerned for the success of the Gospel among the
Hindoos. At present I know not of any success since I have been here. Many say
that the Gospel is the word of truth; but they abound so much in flattery and
encomiums, which are mere words of course, that little can be said respecting
their sincerity. The very common sins of lying and avarice are so universal
also, that no European who has not witnessed it can form any idea of their
various appearances: they will stoop to anything whatsoever to get a few
cowries, and lie on every occasion. O how desirable is the spread of the
Gospel!
“4th
July.--Rather more flat, perhaps owing to the excessive heat; for in the rainy
season, if there be a fine day, it is very hot indeed. Such has been this day,
and I was necessitated to be out in it from morning till evening, giving
necessary directions. I felt very much fatigued indeed, and had no spirits left
in the evening, and in prayer was very barren...
“9th
July to 4th Aug.--Employed in visiting several factories to learn the process
of indigo-making. Had some very pleasant seasons at Malda, where I preached
several times, and the people seemed much affected with the Word. One day, as
Mr. Thomas and I were riding out, we saw a basket hung in a tree, in which an
infant had been exposed; the skull remained, the rest having been devoured by
ants.”
Success
in the indigo culture was indeed never possible in Mudnabati. The factory stood
on the river Tangan, within what is now the district of Dinajpoor, thirty miles
north of Malda. To this day the revenue surveyors of Government describe it as
low and marshy, subject to inundation during the rains, and considered very
unhealthy. Carey had not been there a fortnight when he had to make this record:--
“5th,
6th, 7th July.--Much employed in settling the affairs of the buildings, etc.,
having been absent so long, and several of our managing and principal people
being sick. It is indeed an awful time here with us now, scarcely a day but
some are seized with fevers. It is, I believe, owing to the abundance of water,
there being rice-fields all around us, in which they dam up the water, so that
all the country hereabouts is about a foot deep in water; and as we have rain,
though moderate to what I expected the rainy season to be, yet the continual
moisture occasions fevers in such situations where rice is cultivated...Felt at
home and thankful these days. O that I may be very useful! I must soon learn
the language tolerably well, for I am obliged to converse with the natives
every day, having no other persons here except my family.”
Soon
in September, the worst of all the months in Bengal, he himself was brought
near to the grave by a fever, one of the paroxysms continuing for twenty-six
hours without intermission, “when providentially Mr. Udny came to visit us, not
knowing that I was ill, and brought a bottle of bark with him.” He slowly
recovered, but the second youngest child, Peter, a boy of five, was removed by
dysentery, and caste made it long difficult to find any native to dig his
grave. But of this time the faithful sufferer could write:--
“Sometimes
I enjoyed sweet seasons of self-examination and prayer, as I lay upon my bed.
Many hours together I sweetly spent in contemplating subjects for preaching,
and in musing over discourses in Bengali; and when my animal spirits were
somewhat raised by the fever, I found myself able to reason and discourse in
Bengali for some hours together, and words and phrases occurred much more
readily than when I was in health. When my dear child was ill I was enabled to
attend upon him night and day, though very dangerously ill myself, without much
fatigue; and
now, I bless God that I feel a sweet resignation to his will.”
A
still harder fate befell him. The monomania of his wife became chronic. A
letter which she wrote and sent by special messenger called forth from Thomas
this loving sympathy:--“You must endeavour to consider it a disease. The eyes
and ears of many are upon you, to whom your conduct is unimpeachable with
respect to all her charges; but if you show resentment, they have ears, and
others have tongues set on fire. Were I in your case, I should be violent; but
blessed be God, who suits our burdens to our backs. Sometimes I pray earnestly
for you, and I always feel for you. Think of Job, Think of Jesus. Think of
those who were ‘destitute, afflicted, tormented.’”
A
voyage up the Tangan in Mr. Udny’s pinnace as far as the north frontier, at a
spot now passed by the railway to Darjeeling, restored the invalid. “I am no
hunter,” he wrote, while Thomas was shooting wild buffaloes, but he was ever
adding to his store of observations of the people, the customs and language.
Meanwhile he was longing for letters from Fuller and Pearce and Ryland. At the
end of January 1795 the missionary exile thus talks of himself in his
journal:--“Much engaged in writing, having begun to write letters to Europe;
but having received none, I feel that hope deferred makes the heart sick.
However, I am so fully satisfied of the firmness of their friendship that I
feel a sweet pleasure in writing to them, though rather of a forlorn kind; and
having nothing but myself to write about, feel the awkwardness of being an
egotist. I feel a social spirit though barred from society...I sometimes walk
in my garden, and try to pray to God; and if I pray at all it is in the
solitude of a walk. I thought my soul a little drawn out to-day, but soon gross
darkness returned. Spoke a word or two to a Mohammedan upon the things of God,
but I feel to be as bad as they...9th May. I have added nothing to these
memoirs since the 19th of April. Now I observe that for the last three sabbaths
my soul has been much comforted in seeing so large a congregation, and more
especially as many who are not our own workmen come from the parts adjacent,
whose attendance must be wholly disinterested. I therefore now rejoice in
seeing a regular congregation of from two to six hundred people of all
descriptions--Mussulmans, Brahmans and other classes of Hindus, which I look upon
as a favourable token from God...Blessed be God, I have at last received
letters and other articles from our friends in England...from dear brethren
Fuller, Morris, Pearce, and Rippon, but why not from others?...14th June. I
have had very sore trials in my own family, from a quarter which I forbear to
mention. Have greater need for faith and patience than ever I had, and I bless
God that I have not been altogether without supplies of these graces...Mr.
Thomas and his family spent one Lord’s day with us, May 23rd...We spent
Wednesday, 26th, in prayer, and for a convenient place assembled in a temple of
Seeb, which was near to our house...I was from that day seized with a
dysentery, which continued nearly a week with fearful violence; but then I
recovered, through abundant mercy. That day of prayer was a good day to our
souls. We concerted measures for forming a Baptist church.”
To
his sister he wrote, on the 11th March, of the church, which was duly formed of
Europeans and Eurasians. No native convert was made in this Dinapoor mission
till 1806, after Carey had removed to Serampore. “We have in the neighbourhood
about fifteen or sixteen serious persons, or those I have good hopes of, all
Europeans. With the natives I have very large concerns; almost all the farmers
for nearly twenty miles round cultivate indigo for us, and the labouring people
working here to the number of about five hundred, so that I have considerable
opportunity of publishing the Gospel to them. I have so much knowledge of the
language as to be able to preach to them for about half an hour, so as to be
understood, but am not able to vary my subjects much. I tell them of the evil
and universality of sin, the sins of a natural state, the justice of God, the
incarnation of Christ and his sufferings in our stead, and of the necessity of
conversion, holiness, and faith, in order to salvation. They hear with
attention in general, and some come to me for instruction in the things of
God.”
“It
was always my opinion that missionaries may and must support themselves after
having been sent out and received a little support at first, and in consequence
I pursue a very little worldly employment which requires three months’ closish
attendance in the year; but this is in the rains--the most unfavourable season
for exertion. I have a district of about twenty miles square, where I am
continually going from village to village to publish the Gospel; and in this
space are about two hundred villages, whose inhabitants from time to time hear
the Word. My manner of travelling is with two small boats; one serves me to
live in, and the other for cooking my food. I carry all my furniture and food with me from
place to place--viz. a chair, a table, a bed, and a lamp. I walk
from village to village, but repair to my boat for lodging and eating. There
are several rivers in this extent of country, which is very convenient for
travelling.”
Carey’s
first convert seems to have been Ignatius Fernandez, a Portuguese descendant
who had prospered as a trader in Dinapoor station. The first Protestant place
of worship in Bengal, outside of Calcutta, was built by him, in 1797, next to
his own house. There he conducted service both in English and Bengali, whenever
Carey and Thomas, and Fountain afterwards, were unable to go out to the
station, and in his house Thomas and Fountain died. He remained there as a
missionary till his own death, four years before Carey’s, when he left all his
property to the mission. The mission-house, as it is now, is a typical example
of the bungalow of one story, which afterwards formed the first chapel in
Serampore, and is still common as officers’ quarters in Barrackpore and other
military stations.
Side
by side with his daily public preaching and more private conversations with
inquirers in Bengali, Carey carried on the work of Bible translation. As each
new portion was prepared it was tested by being read to hundreds of natives.
The difficulty was that he had at once to give a literary form to the rich
materials of the language, and to find in these or adapt from them terms
sufficiently pure and accurate to express the divine ideas and facts revealed
through the Hebrew and the Greek of the original. He gives us this unconscious
glimpse of himself at work on this loftiest and most fruitful of tasks, which
Jerome had first accomplished for Latin Christendom, Ulfila for our
Scandinavian forefathers, Wiclif for the English, and Luther for the Germans of
the time.
“Now
I must mention some of the difficulties under which we labour, particularly
myself. The language spoken by the natives of this part, though Bengali, is yet
so different from the language itself, that, though I can preach an hour with
tolerable freedom so as that all who speak the language well, or can write or
read, perfectly understand me, yet the poor labouring people can understand but
little; and though the language is rich, beautiful, and expressive, yet the
poor people, whose whole concern has been to get a little rice to satisfy their
wants, or to cheat their oppressive merchants and zameendars, have scarcely a
word in use about religion. They have no word for love, for repent, and a
thousand other things; and every idea is expressed either by quaint phrases or
tedious circumlocutions. A native who speaks the language well finds it a year’s
work to obtain their idiom. This sometimes discourages me much; but blessed be
God I feel a growing desire to be always abounding in the work of the Lord, and
I know that my labour shall not be in vain in the Lord. I am much encouraged by
our Lord’s expression, ‘He who reapeth’ (in the harvest) ‘receiveth wages, and
gathereth fruit unto eternal life.’ If I, like David, only am an instrument of
gathering materials, and another build the house, I trust my joy will not be
the less.” This was written to the well-beloved Pearce, whom he would fain have
had beside him at Mudnabati. To guide the two missionaries whom the Society
were about to send to Africa on the salaries which he and Thomas had set free
for this extension, Carey adds:--“They will do well to associate as much as
possible with the natives, and to write down every word they can catch, with
its meaning. But if they have children with them, it is by far the readiest way
of learning to listen to them, for they will catch up every idiom in a little time.
My children can speak nearly as well as the natives, and know many things in
Bengali which they do not know in English. I should also recommend to your
consideration a very large country, perhaps unthought of: I mean Bhootan or
Tibet. Were two missionaries sent to that country, we should have it in our
power to afford them much help...The day I received your letter I set about
composing a grammar and dictionary of the Bengal language to send to you. The
best account of Hindu mythology extant, and which is pretty exact, is
Sonnerat’s Voyage, undertaken by order of the king of France.”
Without
Sanskrit Carey found that he could neither master its Bengali offshoot nor
enrich that vernacular with the words and combinations necessary for his
translations of Scripture. Accordingly, with his usual rapidity and industry,
we find that he had by April 1796 so worked his way through the intricate
difficulties of the mother language of the Aryans that he could thus write to
Ryland, with more than a mere scholar’s enthusiasm, of one of the two great
Vedic epics:--“I have read a considerable part of the Mahabarata, an
epic poem written in most beautiful language, and much upon a par with Homer;
and it was, like his Iliad, only considered as a great effort of human
genius, I should think it one of the first productions in the world; but alas!
it is the ground of faith to millions of the simple sons of men, and as such
must be held in the utmost abhorrence.” At the beginning of 1798 he wrote to Sutcliff:--“I am learning the Sanskrit language, which, with only the helps to be
procured here, is perhaps the hardest language in the world. To accomplish
this, I have nearly translated the Sanskrit grammar and dictionary into
English, and have made considerable progress in compiling a dictionary,
Sanskrit, including Bengali and English.”
By
this year he had completed his first translation of the Bible except the
historical books from Joshua to Job, and had gone to Calcutta to obtain
estimates for printing the New Testament, of which he had reported to Mr.
Fuller:--“It has undergone one correction, but must undergo several more. I
employ a pundit merely for this purpose, with whom I go through the whole in as
exact a manner as I can. He judges of the style and syntax, and I of the
faithfulness of the translation. I have, however, translated several chapters
together, which have not required any alteration in the syntax whatever: yet I
always submit this article entirely to his judgment. I can also, by hearing him
read, judge whether he understands his subject by his accenting his reading
properly and laying the emphasis on the right words. If he fails in this, I
immediately suspect the translation; though it is not an easy matter for an
ordinary reader to lay the emphasis properly in reading Bengali, in which there
is no pointing at all. The mode of printing, i.e. whether a
printing-press, etc., shall be sent from England, or whether it shall be
printed here, or whether it shall be printed at all, now rests with the
Society.”
Fuller
was willing, but the ardent scholar anticipated him. Seeing a wooden
printing-press advertised in Calcutta for £40, Carey at once ordered it. On its
arrival in 1798, “after worship” he “retired and thanked God for furnishing us
with a press.” When set up in the Mudnabati house its working was explained to
the natives, on whom the delighted missionary’s enthusiasm produced only the
impression that it must be the idol of the English.
But
Carey’s missionary organisation would not have been complete without schools,
and in planning these from the very first he gives us the germs which blossomed
into the Serampore College of 1818 on the one hand, and the primary school
circles under native Christian inspectors on the other, a system carried out
since the Mutiny of 1857 by the Christian Literature Society, and adopted by
the state departments of public instruction.
“MUDNABATI,
27th January 1795.--Mr. Thomas and I (between whom the utmost
harmony prevails) have formed a plan for erecting two colleges (Chowparis,
Bengali), one here and the other at his residence, where we intend to educate
twelve lads, viz. six Mussulmans and six Hindoos at each place. A pundit is to
have the charge of them, and they are to be taught Sanskrit, Bengali, and
Persian; the Bible is to be introduced, and perhaps a little philosophy and
geography. The time of their education is to be seven years, and we find them
meat, clothing, lodging, etc. We are now inquiring for children proper for the
purpose. We have also determined to require that the Society will advance money
for types to print the Bengali Bible, and make us their debtors for the sum,
which we hope to be able to pay off in one year: and it will also be requisite
to send a printing-press from England. We will, if our lives are spared, repay
the whole, and print the Bible at our own expense, and I hope the Society will
become our creditors by paying for them when delivered. Mr. Thomas is now
preparing letters for specimens, which I hope will be sent by this conveyance.
“We
are under great obligation to Mr. G. Udny for putting us in these stations. He
is a very friendly man and a true Christian. I have no spirit for politics
here; for whatever the East India Company may be in England, their servants and
officers here are very different; we have a few laws, and nothing to do but to
obey.” Of his own school he wrote in 1799 that it consisted of forty boys. “The
school would have been much larger, had we been able to have borne the expense;
but, as among the scholars there are several orphans whom we wholly maintain,
we could not prudently venture on any further expense...The boys have hitherto
learned to read and write, especially parts of the Scriptures, and to keep
accounts. We may now be able to introduce some other useful branches of
knowledge among them...I trust these schools may tend to promote curiosity and
inquisitiveness among the rising generation; qualities which are seldom found
in the natives of Bengal.”
The
Medical Mission completed the equipment. “I submit it to the consideration of
the Society whether we should not be furnished with medicines gratis. No
medicines will be sold by us, yet the cost of them enters very deeply into our
allowance. The whole supply sent in the Earl Howe, amounting to £35,
besides charges amounting to thirty per cent., falls on me; but the whole will
either be administered to sick poor, or given to any neighbour who is in want, or used in our
own families. Neighbouring gentlemen have often supplied us. Indeed, considering
the distance we are from medical assistance, the great expensiveness of it far
beyond our ability, and the number of wretched, afflicted objects whom we
continually see and who continually apply for help, we ought never to sell a
pennyworth. Brother Thomas has been the instrument of saving numbers of lives.
His house is constantly surrounded with the afflicted; and the cures wrought by
him would have gained any physician or surgeon in Europe the most extensive
reputation. We ought to be furnished yearly with at least half a hundredweight
of Jesuit’s bark.”
Around
and as the fruit of the completely organised mission, thus conducted by the
ordained preacher, teacher, scholar, scientist, printer, and licensed indigo
planter in one station, and by his medical colleague sixteen miles to the north
of him at Mahipal, there gathered many native inquirers. Besides the planters,
civil officials, and military officers, to whom he ministered in Malda and
Dinapoor stations, there was added the most able and consistent convert, Mr.
Cunninghame of Lainshaw, the assistant judge, who afterwards in England fought
the battle of missions, and from his Ayrshire estate, where he built a church,
became famous as an expounder of prophecy. Carey looked upon this as “the greatest
event that has occurred since our coming to this country.” The appointment of
Lord Mornington, soon to be known as the Marquis Wellesley, “the glorious
little man,” as Metcalfe called him, and hardly second to his younger brother
Wellington, having led Fuller to recommend that Carey should wait upon his
Excellency at Calcutta, this reply was received:--“I would not, however, have
you suppose that we are obliged to conceal ourselves, or our work: no such
thing. We preach before magistrates and judges; and were I to be in the company
with Lord Mornington, I should not hesitate to declare myself a missionary to
the heathen, though I would not on any account return myself as such to the
Governor-General in Council.”
Two
years before this, in 1797, Carey had written:--“This mission should be
strengthened as much as possible, as its situation is such as may put it in our
power, eventually, to spread the Gospel through the greatest part of Asia, and
almost all the necessary languages may be learned here.” He had just returned
from his first long missionary tour among the Bhooteas, who from Tibet had
overrun the eastern Himalaya from Darjeeling to Assam. Carey and Thomas were
received as Christian Lamas by the Soobah or lieutenant-governor of the country
below the hills, which in 1865 we were compelled to annex and now administer as
Jalpaigori District. They seemed to have been the first Englishmen who had
entered the territory since the political and commercial missions of Bogle and
Buchanan-Hamilton sent by Warren Hastings.
“The
genuine politeness and gentleman-like behaviour of the Soobah exceeded
everything that can be imagined, and his generosity was astonishing. He
insisted on supplying all our people with everything they wanted; and if we did
but cast our eyes to any object in the room, he immediately presented us with
one of the same sort. Indeed he seemed to interpret our looks before we were
aware; and in this manner he presented each of us that night with a sword,
shield, helmet, and cup, made of a very light beautiful wood, and used by all
the Bhooteas for drinking in. We admiring the wood, he gave us a large log of
it; which appears to be like fir, with a very dark beautiful grain: it is full
of a resin or turpentine, and burns like a candle if cut into thin pieces, and
serves for that use. In eating, the Soobah imitated our manners so quickly and
exactly, that though he had never seen a European before, yet he appeared as
free as if he had spent his life with them. We ate his food, though I confess the
thoughts of the Jinkof’s bacon made me eat rather sparingly. We had much talk
about Bhootan, and about the Gospel.
“We
found that he had determined to give all the country a testimony of his
friendship for us in a public manner; and the next day was fixed on to perform
the ceremony in our tent on the market-place. Accordingly we got instructed in
the necessary etiquette; and informed him we were only coming a short journey
to see the country, were not provided with English cloth, etc., for presents. The
time being come, we were waited on by the Soobah, followed by all his servants,
both Bhooteas and Hindus. Being seated, we exchanged each five rupees and five
pieces of betel, in the sight of the whole town; and having chewed betel for
the first time in our lives, we embraced three times in the Eastern manner, and
then shook hands in the English manner; after which, he made us a present of a
piece of rich debang wrought with gold, each a Bhootan blanket, and the tail of
an animal called the cheer cow, as bushy as a horse’s, and used in the Hindu
worship...In the morning, the Soobah came with his usual friendship, and
brought more presents,
which we received, and took our leave. He sent us away with every honour he
could heap upon us; as a band of music before us, guides to show us the way,
etc....The Soobah is to pay us a visit in a little time, which I hope to
improve for the great end of settling a mission in that country.”
Carey
applied his unusual powers of detailed observation and memory in noting the physical
and mental characteristics of these little Buddhists, the structure of the
language and nature of their books, beliefs, and government, all of which he
afterwards utilised. He was often in sight of snowy Kinchinjinga (28,156 feet),
behind Darjeeling, and when the Soobah, being sick, afterwards sent messengers
with gifts to induce him to return, he wrote:--“I hope to ascend those
stupendous mountains, which are so high as to be seen at a distance of 200 or
250 miles. One of these distant mountains, which is seen at Mahipal, is
concealed from view by the tops of a nearer range of hills, when you approach
within sixty miles of them. The distant range forms an angle of about ten
degrees with the horizon.” But the time did not come for a mission to that region
till the sanitarium of Darjeeling became the centre of another British district
opened up by railway from Calcutta, and now the aboriginal Lepchas are coming
in large numbers into the church. Subsequent communications from the Soobah
informed them of the Garos of Assam.
On
his last visit to Calcutta, in 1799, “to get types cast for printing the
Bible,” Carey witnessed that sight of widow-burning which was to continue to
disgrace alike the Hindoos and the Company’s Government until his incessant
appeals in India and in England led to its prevention in 1829. In a letter to
Dr. Ryland he thus describes the horrid rite:--
“MUDNABATI,
1st April 1799.--As I was returning from Calcutta I saw the
Sahamaranam, or, a woman burning herself with the corpse of her husband, for
the first time in my life. We were near the village of Noya Serai, or, as
Rennell calls it in his chart of the Hoogli river, Niaverai. Being evening, we
got out of the boat to walk, when we saw a number of people assembled on the
river-side. I asked them what they were met for, and they told me to burn the
body of a dead man. I inquired if his wife would die with him; they answered
Yes, and pointed to the woman. She was standing by the pile, which was made of
large billets of wood, about two and a half feet high, four feet long, and two
wide, on the top of which lay the dead body of her husband. Her nearest
relation stood by her, and near her was a small basket of sweetmeats called
Thioy. I asked them if this was the woman’s choice, or if she were brought to
it by any improper influence? They answered that it was perfectly voluntary. I
talked till reasoning was of no use, and then began to exclaim with all my
might against what they were doing, telling them that it was a shocking murder.
They told me it was a great act of holiness, and added in a very surly manner,
that if I did not like to see it I might go farther off, and desired me to go.
I told them that I would not go, that I was determined to stay and see the
murder, and that I should certainly bear witness of it at the tribunal of God.
I exhorted the woman not to throw away her life; to fear nothing, for no evil
would follow her refusal to burn. But she in the most calm manner mounted the
pile, and danced on it with her hands extended, as if in the utmost
tranquillity of spirit. Previous to her mounting the pile the relation, whose
office it was to set fire to the pile, led her six times round it, at two
intervals--that is, thrice at each circumambulation. As she went round she
scattered the sweetmeat above mentioned among the people, who picked it up and
ate it as a very holy thing. This being ended, and she having mounted the pile
and danced as above mentioned (N.B.--The dancing only appeared to be to
show us her contempt of death, and prove to us that her dying was
voluntary), she lay down by the corpse, and put one arm under its neck and the
other over it, when a quantity of dry cocoa-leaves and other substances were
heaped over them to a considerable height, and then Ghee, or melted preserved
butter, poured on the top. Two bamboos were then put over them and held fast
down, and fire put to the pile, which immediately blazed very fiercely, owing
to the dry and combustible materials of which it was composed. No sooner was
the fire kindled than all the people set up a great shout--Hurree-Bol,
Hurree-Bol, which is a common shout of joy, and an invocation of Hurree, or
Seeb. It was impossible to have heard the woman had she groaned, or even cried
aloud, on account of the mad noise of the people, and it was impossible for her
to stir or struggle on account of the bamboos which were held down on her like
the levers of a press. We made much objection to their using these bamboos, and
insisted that it was using force to prevent the woman from getting up when the
fire burned her. But they declared that it was only done to keep the pile from
falling down. We could not bear to see more, but left them, exclaiming loudly
against the murder, and full of horror at what we had seen.” In the same letter
Carey communicates
the information he had collected regarding the Jews and Syrian Christians of
the Malabar coast.
Mr.
G. Udny had now found his private indigo enterprise to be disastrous. He
resolved to give it up and retire to England. Thomas had left his factory, and
was urging his colleague to try the sugar trade, which at that time meant the
distillation of rum. Carey rather took over from Mr. Udny the out-factory of
Kidderpore, twelve miles distant, and there resolved to prepare for the arrival
of colleagues, the communistic missionary settlement on the Moravian plan,
which he had advocated in his Enquiry. Mr. John Fountain had been sent
out as the first reinforcement, but he proved to be almost as dangerous to the
infant mission from his outspoken political radicalism as Thomas had been from
his debts. Carey seriously contemplated the setting up of his mission centre
among the Bhooteas, so as to be free from the East India Company. The
authorities would not license Fountain as his assistant. Would they allow
future missionaries to settle with him? Would they always renew his own
licence? And what if he must cease altogether to work with his hands, and give
himself wholly to the work of the mission as seemed necessary?
Four
new colleagues and their families were already on the sea, but God had provided
a better refuge for His servants till the public conscience which they were
about to quicken and enlighten should cause the persecution to cease.
CHAPTER
V
THE
NEW CRUSADE--SERAMPORE AND THE BROTHERHOOD
1800
Effects
of the news in England on the Baptists--On the home churches--In the foundation
of the London and other Missionary Societies--In Scotland--In Holland and
America--The missionary home--Joshua Marshman, William Ward, and two others
sent out--Landing at the Iona of Southern Asia--Meeting of Ward and
Carey--First attempt to evangelise the non-Aryan hill tribes--Carey driven by
providences to Serampore--Dense population of Hoogli district--Adapts his
communistic plan to the new conditions--Purchase of the property--Constitution
of the Brotherhood--His relations to Marshman and Ward--Hannah Marshman, the
first woman missionary--Daily life of the Brethren--Form of Agreement--Carey’s
ideal system of missionary administration realised for fifteen years--Spiritual
heroism of the Brotherhood.
THE
first two English missionaries to India seemed to those who sent them forth to
have disappeared for ever. For fourteen months, in those days of slow Indiamen
and French privateers, no tidings of their welfare reached the poor praying
people of the midlands, who had been emboldened to begin the heroic enterprise.
The convoy, which had seen the Danish vessel fairly beyond the French coast,
had been unable to bring back letters on account of the weather. At last, on
the 29th July 1794, Fuller, the secretary; Pearce, the beloved personal friend
of Carey; Ryland in Bristol; and the congregation at Leicester, received the
journals of the voyage and letters which told of the first six weeks’
experience at Balasore, in Calcutta, Bandel, and Nuddea, just before Carey knew
the worst of their pecuniary position. The committee at once met. They sang
“with sacred joy” what has ever since been the jubilee hymn of missions, that
by William Williams--
“O’er those gloomy hills of darkness.”
They
“returned solemn thanks to the everlasting God whose mercy endureth for ever,
for having preserved you from the perils of the sea, and hitherto made your
ways prosperous. In reading the short account of your labours we feel something
of that spirit spoken of in the prophet, ‘Thine heart shall fear and be enlarged.’ We
cordially thank you for your assiduity in learning the languages, in
translating, and in every labour of love in which you have engaged. Under God
we cheerfully confide in your wisdom, fidelity, and prudence, with relation to
the seat of your labours or the means to carry them into effect. If there be
one place, however, which strikes us as of more importance than the rest, it is
Nuddea. But you must follow where the Lord opens a door for you.” The same
spirit of generous confidence marked the relations of Carey and the committee
so long as Fuller was secretary. When the news came that the missionaries had
become indigo planters, some of the weaker brethren, estimating Carey by
themselves, sent out a mild warning against secular temptations, to which he
returned a half-amused and kindly reply. John Newton,
then the aged rector of St. Mary Woolnoth, on being consulted, reassured them:
“If the heart be fired with a zeal for God and love to souls,” he said, “such
attention to business as circumstances require will not hurt it.” Since Carey,
like the Moravians, meant that the missionaries should live upon a common
stock, and never lay up money, the weakest might have recognised the Paul-like
nobleness, which had marked all his life, in relinquishing the scanty salary
that it might be used for other missions to Africa and Asia.
The
spiritual law which Duff’s success afterwards led Chalmers to formulate, that
the relation of foreign to home missions acts not by exhaustion but by
fermentation, now came to be illustrated on a great scale, and to result in the
foundation of the catholic missionary enterprise of the evangelicals of
England, Scotland, Ireland, America, Germany, and France, which has marked the
whole nineteenth century. We find it first in Fuller himself. In comforting
Thomas during his extremest dejection he quoted to him from his own journal of
1789 the record of a long period of spiritual inactivity, which continued till
Carey compelled him to join in the mission. “Before this I did little but pine
over my misery, but since I have betaken myself to greater activity for God, my
strength has been recovered and my soul replenished.” “Your work is a great
work, and the eyes of the religious world are upon you. Your undertaking, with
that of your dear colleague, has provoked many. The spirit of missions is gone
forth. I wish it may never stop till the Gospel is sent unto all the world.”
Following
the pietist Francke, who in 1710 published the first missionary reports, and
also the Moravians, Fuller and his coadjutors issued from the press of J. W.
Morris at Clipstone, towards the end of 1794, No. I. of their Periodical
Accounts relative to a Society formed among the Particular Baptists for
Propagating the Gospel among the Heathen. That contained a narrative of the
foundation of the Society and the letters of Carey up to 15th February 1794
from the Soondarbans. Six of these Accounts appeared up to the year
1800, when they were published as one volume with an index and illustrations.
The volume closes with a doggerel translation of one of several Gospel ballads
which Carey had written in Bengali in 1798. He had thus early brought into the
service of Christ the Hindoo love of musical recitative, which was recently
re-discovered--as it were--and now forms an important mode of evangelistic work
when accompanied by native musical instruments. The original has a curious
interest and value in the history of the Bengali language, as formed by Carey.
As to the music he wrote:--“We sometimes have a melody that cheers my heart,
though it would be discordant upon the ears of an Englishman.”
Such
was the immediate action of the infant Baptist Society. The moment Dr. Ryland
read his letter from Carey he sent for Dr. Bogue and Mr. Stephen, who happened
to be in Bristol, to rejoice with him. The three returned thanks to God, and
then Bogue and Stephen, calling on Mr. Hey, a leading minister, took the first
step towards the foundation of a similar organisation of non-Baptists, since
known as the London Missionary Society. Immediately Bogue, the able
Presbyterian, who had presided over a theological school at Gosport from which
missionaries went forth, and who refused the best living in Edinburgh when
offered to him by Dundas, wrote his address, which appeared in the Evangelical
Magazine for September, calling on the churches to send out at least twenty
or thirty missionaries. In the sermon of lofty eloquence which he preached the
year after, he declared that the missionary movement of that time would form an
epoch in the history of man,--“the time will be ever remembered by us, and may
it be celebrated by future ages as the Æra of Christian
Benevolence.”
On
the same day the Rev. T. Haweis, rector of All Saints, Aldwinkle, referring to
the hundreds of ministers collected to decide where the first mission should be
sent, thus burst forth: “Methinks I see the great Angel of the Covenant in the
midst of us, pluming his wings, and ready to fly through the midst of heaven
with his own everlasting Gospel, to every nation and tribe and tongue and
people.” In Hindostan “our brethren the Baptists have at present prevented our
wishes...there is room for a thousand missionaries, and I wish we may be ready
with a numerous host for that or any other part of the earth.”
“Scotland10
was the next to take up the challenge sent by Carey. Greville Ewing, then a
young minister of the kirk in Edinburgh, published in March 1796 the appeal of the
Edinburgh or Scottish Missionary Society, which afterwards sent John Wilson to
Bombay, and that was followed by the Glasgow Society, to which we owe the most
successful of the Kafir missions in South Africa. Robert Haldane sold all that
he had when he read the first number of the Periodical Accounts, and
gave £35,000 to send a Presbyterian mission of six ministers and laymen,
besides himself, to do from Benares what Carey had planned from Mudnabati; but
Pitt as well as Dundas, though his personal friends, threatened him with the
Company’s intolerant Act of Parliament. Evangelical ministers of the Church of
England took their proper place in the new crusade, and a year before the
eighteenth century closed they formed the agency, which has ever since been in
the forefront of the host of the Lord as the Church Missionary Society, with
Carey’s friend, Thomas Scott, as its first secretary. The sacred enthusiasm was
caught by the Netherlands on the one side under the influence of Dr. Van der
Kemp, who had studied at Edinburgh University, and by the divinity students of
New England, of whom Adoniram Judson was even then in training to receive from
Carey the apostolate of Burma. Soon too the Bengali Bible translations were to
unite with the needs of the Welsh at home to establish the British and Foreign
Bible Society.
As
news of all this reached Carey amid his troubles and yet triumphs of faith in
the swamps of Dinajpoor, and when he learned that he was soon to be joined by
four colleagues, one of whom was Ward whom he himself had trysted to print the
Bengali Bible for him, he might well write, in July 1799:--“The success of the
Gospel and, among other things, the hitherto unextinguishable missionary flame
in England and all the western world, give us no little encouragement and
animate our hearts.” To Sutcliff he had written eighteen months before
that:--“I rejoice much at the missionary spirit which has lately gone forth:
surely it is a prelude to the universal spread of the Gospel! Your account of
the German Moravian Brethren’s affectionate regard towards me is very pleasing.
I am not much moved by what men in general say of me; yet I cannot be
insensible to the regards of men eminent for godliness...Staying at home is now
become sinful in many cases, and will become so more and more. All gifts should
be encouraged, and spread abroad.”
The
day was breaking now. Men as well as money were offered for Carey’s work. In
Scotland especially Fuller found that he had but to ask, but to appear in any
evangelical pulpit, and he would receive sums which, in that day of small
things, rebuked his little faith. Till the last Scotland was loyal to Carey and
his colleagues, and with almost a prevision of this he wrote so early as
1797:--“It rejoices my heart much to hear of our brethren in Scotland having so
liberally set themselves to encourage the mission.” They approved of his plans,
and prayed for him and his work. When Fuller called on Cecil for help, the
“churchy” evangelical told him he had a poor opinion of all Baptists except
one, the man who wrote The Gospel Worthy of All Acceptation. When he
learned that its author was before him, the hasty offender apologised and
offered a subscription. “Not a farthing, sir!” was the reply, “you do not give
in faith;” but the persistent Cecil prevailed. Men, however, were a greater
want than money at that early stage of the modern crusade. Thomas and Fountain
had each been a mistake. So were the early African missionaries, with the
exception of the first Scotsman, Peter Greig. Of the thirty sent out by the
London Missionary Society in the Duff only four were fit for ordination,
and not one has left a name of mark. The Church Mission continued to send out
only Germans till 1815. In quick succession four young men offered themselves
to the Baptist Society to go out as assistants to Carey, in the hope that the
Company would give them a covenant to reside--Brunsdon and Grant, two of Ryland’s
Bristol flock; Joshua Marshman with his wife Hannah Marshman, and William Ward
called by Carey himself.
In
nine months Fuller had them and their families shipped in an American vessel,
the Criterion, commanded by Captain Wickes, a Presbyterian elder of
Philadelphia, who ever after promoted the cause in the United States. Charles
Grant helped them as he would have aided Carey alone. Though the most
influential of the Company’s directors, he could not obtain a passport for them, but he
gave them the very counsel which was to provide for the young mission its ark
of defence: “Do not land at Calcutta but at Serampore, and there, under the
protection of the Danish flag, arrange to join Mr. Carey.” After five months’
prosperous voyage the party reached the Hoogli. Before arriving within the
limits of the port of Calcutta Captain Wickes sent them off in two boats under
the guidance of a Bengali clerk to Serampore, fifteen miles higher up on the
right bank of the river. They had agreed that he should boldly enter them, not
as assistant planters, but as Christian missionaries, rightly trusting to
Danish protection. Charles Grant had advised them well, but it is not easy now,
as in the case of their predecessors in 1795 and of their successors up to
1813, to refrain from indignation that the British Parliament, and the party
led by William Pitt, should have so long lent all the weight of their power to
the East India Company in the vain attempt to keep Christianity from the
Hindoos. Ward’s journal thus simply tells the story of the landing of the
missionaries at this Iona, this Canterbury of Southern Asia:--
“Lord’s-day,
Oct. 13, 1799.--Brother Brunsdon and I slept in the open air on our
chests. We arrived at Serampore this morning by daylight, in health and pretty
good spirits. We put up at Myerr’s, a Danish tavern to which we had been
recommended. No worship to-day. Nothing but a Portuguese church here.
“Oct.
14.--Mr. Forsyth from Calcutta, missionary belonging to the London Missionary
Society, astonished us by his presence this afternoon. He was wholly unknown,
but soon became well known. He gave us a deal of interesting information. He
had seen brother Carey, who invited him to his house, offered him the
assistance of his Moonshi, etc.
“Oct.
16--The Captain having been at Calcutta came and informed us that his ship
could not be entered unless we made our appearance. Brother Brunsdon and I went
to Calcutta, and the next day we were informed that the ship had obtained an
entrance, on condition that we appeared at the Police Office, or would continue
at Serampore. All things considered we preferred the latter, till the arrival
of our friends from Kidderpore to whom we had addressed letters. Captain Wickes
called on Rev. Mr. Brown, who very kindly offered to do anything for us in his
power. Our Instructions with respect to our conduct towards Civil Government
were read to him. He promised to call at the Police Office afterwards, and to
inform the Master that we intended to stay at Serampore, till we had leave to go
up the country. Captain Wickes called at the office afterwards, and they seemed
quite satisfied with our declaration by him. In the afternoon we went to
Serampore.
“Oct.
19.--I addressed a letter to the Governor to-day begging his acceptance of the
last number of our Periodical Accounts, and informing him that we proposed
having worship to-morrow in our own house, from which we did not wish to
exclude any person.
“Lord’s-day,
Oct. 20.--This morning the Governor sent to inquire the hours of our
worship. About half-past ten he came to our house with a number of gentlemen
and their retinue. I preached from Acts xx. 24. We had a very attentive
congregation of Europeans: several appeared affected, among whom was the
Governor.”
The
text was well chosen from Paul’s words to the elders of Ephesus, as he turned
his face towards the bonds and afflictions that awaited him--“But none of these
things move me, neither count I my life dear unto myself, so that I might
finish my course with joy, and the ministry which I have received of the Lord
Jesus, to testify the gospel of the grace of God.” It proved to be a history of
the three men thenceforth best known as the Serampore Missionaries. Ward, too,
the literary member of the mission, composed the hymn which thus concluded:--
“Yes,
we are safe beneath Thy shade,
And shall be so ‘midst India’s heat:
What should a missionary dread,
For devils crouch at Jesus’ feet.
“There,
sweetest Saviour! let Thy cross
Win many Hindoo hearts to Thee;
This shall make up for every loss,
While Thou art ours eternally.”
In
his first letter to a friend in Hull Ward used language which unconsciously
predicted the future of the mission:--“With a Bible and a press posterity will
see that a missionary will not labour in vain, even in India.” But one of their
number, Grant, was meanwhile removed by death, and, while they waited for a
month, Carey failed to obtain leave for them to settle as his assistants in
British territory. He had appealed to Mr. Brown, and to Dr. Roxburgh, his
friend in charge of the Botanic Garden, to use his influence with the
Government through Colebrooke, the Oriental scholar, then high in the service.
But it was in vain. The police had seen with annoyance the missionaries slip
from their grasp because of the liberality of the Governor-General of whom
Carey had written to Ryland a year before: “At Calcutta, I saw much
dissipation; but yet I think less than formerly. Lord Mornington has set his
face against sports, gaming, horse-racing, and working on the Lord’s-day; in
consequence of which these infamous practices are less common than formerly.”
The missionaries, too, had at first been reported not as Baptist but as
“Papist,” and
the emissaries of France, believed to be everywhere, must be watched against.
The brave little Governor let it be understood that he would protect to the
last the men who had been committed to his care by the Danish consul in London.
So Ward obtained a Danish passport to enable him to visit Dinapoor and consult
with Carey.
It
was Sunday morning when he approached the Mudnabati factory, “feeling very
unusual sensations,” greatly excited. “At length I saw Carey! He is less
altered than I expected: has rather more flesh than when in England, and,
blessed be God! he is a young man still.” It was a wrench to sacrifice
his own pioneer mission, property worth £500, the school, the church, the
inquirers, but he did not hesitate. He thus stated the case on the other
side:--“At Serampore we may settle as missionaries, which is not allow here;
and the great ends of the mission, particularly the printing of the Scriptures,
seem much more likely to be answered in that situation than in this. There also
brother Ward can have the inspection of the press; whereas here we should be
deprived of his important assistance. In that part of the country the
inhabitants are far more numerous than in this; and other missionaries may
there be permitted to join us, which here it seems they will not.” On the way
down, during a visit to the Rajmahal Hills, round which the great Ganges
sweeps, Carey and Ward made the first attempt to evangelise the Santal and
other simple aboriginal tribes, whom the officials Brown and Cleveland had
partly tamed. The Paharis are described, at that time, as without caste, priests,
or public religion, as living on Indian corn and by hunting, for which they
carry bows and arrows. “Brother Carey was able to converse with them.” Again,
Ward’s comment on the Bengali services on the next Sunday, from the boats, is
“the common sort wonder how brother Carey can know so much of the Shasters.” “I
long,” wrote Carey from the spot to his new colleagues, “to stay here and tell
these social and untutored heathen the good news from heaven. I have a strong
persuasion that the doctrine of a dying Saviour would, under the Holy Spirit’s
influence, melt their hearts.” From Taljheri and Pokhuria, near that place, to
Parisnath, Ranchi, and Orissa, thousands of Santals and Kols have since been
gathered into the kingdom.
On
the 10th January 1800 Carey took up his residence at Serampore, on the 11th he
was presented to the Governor, and “he went out and preached to the natives.”
His apprenticeship was over; so began his full apostolate, instant in season
and out of season, to end only with his life thirty-four years after.
Thus
step by step, by a way that he knew not, the shoemaker lad--who had educated
himself to carry the Gospel to Tahiti, had been sent to Bengal in spite of the
Company which cast him out of their ship, had starved in Calcutta, had built
him a wooden hut in the jungles of the Delta, had become indigo planter in the
swamps of Dinapoor that he might preach Christ without interference, had been
forced to think of seeking the protection of a Buddhist in the Himalaya
morass--was driven to begin anew in the very heart of the most densely peopled
part of the British Empire, under the jealous care of the foreign European
power which had a century before sent missionaries to Tranquebar and taught
Zinzendorf and the Moravians the divine law of the kingdom; encouraged by a
Governor, Colonel Bie, who was himself a disciple of Schwartz. To complete this
catalogue of special providences we may add that, if Fuller had delayed only a
little longer, even Serampore would have been found shut against the missionaries.
For the year after, when Napoleon’s acts had driven us to war with Denmark, a
detachment of British troops, under Lord Minto’s son, took possession of
Fredericksnagore, as Serampore was officially called, and of the Danish East
India Company’s ship there, without opposition.
The
district or county of Hoogli and Howrah, opposite Calcutta and Barrackpore, of
which Serampore is the central port, swarms with a population, chiefly Hindoo
but partly Mussulman, unmatched for density in any other part of the world. If,
after years of a decimating fever, each of its 1701 square miles still supports
nearly a thousand human beings or double the proportion of Belgium, we cannot
believe that it was much less dense at the beginning of the century. From Howrah,
the Surrey side of Calcutta, up to Hoogli the county town, the high ridge of
mud between the river and the old channel of the Ganges to the west, has
attracted the wealthiest and most intellectually active of all the Bengalees.
Hence it was here that Portuguese and Dutch, French and English, and Danish
planted their early factories. The last to obtain a site of twenty acres from
the moribund Mussulman Government at Moorshedabad was Denmark, two years before
Plassey. In the half century the hut of the first Governor sent from Tranquebar
had grown into the “beautiful little town” which delighted the first Baptist
missionaries. Its inhabitants, under only British administration since 1845,
now number 45,000. Then
they were much fewer, but then even more than now the town was a centre of the
Vishnoo-worship of Jagganath, second only to that of Pooree in
all India. Not far off, and now connected with the port by railway, is the foul
shrine of Tarakeswar, which attracts thousands of pilgrims, many of them
widows, who measure the road with their prostrate bodies dripping from the
bath. Commercially Serampore sometimes distanced Calcutta itself, for all the
foreign European trade was centred in it during the American and French wars,
and the English civilians used its investments as the best means of remitting
their savings home. When the missionaries landed there was nothing but a
Portuguese Catholic church in the settlement, and the Governor was raising
subscriptions for that pretty building in which Carey preached till he died,
and the spire of which the Governor-General is said to have erected to improve
the view of the town from the windows of his summer palace at Barrackpore
opposite.
Removed
from the rural obscurity of a Bengali village, where the cost of housing,
clothing, and living was small, to a town in the neighbourhood of the capital
much frequented by Europeans, Carey at once adapted the practical details of
his communistic brotherhood to the new circumstances. With such wisdom was he
aided in this by the business experience of Marshman and Ward, that a
settlement was formed which admitted of easy development in correspondence with
the rapid growth of the mission. At first the community consisted of ten adults
and nine children. Grant had been carried off in a fever caused by the dampness
of their first quarters. The promising Brunsdon was soon after removed by liver
complaint caught from standing on an unmatted floor in the printing-office.
Fountain, who at first continued the mission at Dinapoor, soon died there a
happy death. Thomas had settled at Beerbhoom, but joined the Serampore brethren
in time to do good though brief service before he too was cut off. But,
fortunately as it proved for the future, Carey had to arrange for five families
at the first, and this is how it was done as described by Ward:--
“The
renting of a house, or houses, would ruin us. We hoped therefore to have been
able to purchase land, and build mat houses upon it; but we can get none
properly situated. We have in consequence purchased of the Governor’s nephew a
large house in the middle of the town for Rs.6000, or about £800; the rent in
four years would have amounted to the purchase. It consists of a spacious
verandah (portico) and hall, with two rooms on each side. Rather more to the
front are two other rooms separate, and on one side is a storehouse, separate
also, which will make a printing-office. It stands by the river-side upon a
pretty large piece of ground, walled round, with a garden at the bottom, and in
the middle a fine tank or pool of water. The price alarmed us, but we had no
alternative; and we hope this will form a comfortable missionary settlement.
Being near to Calcutta, it is of the utmost importance to our school, our
press, and our connection with England.”
“From
hence may the Gospel issue and pervade all India,” they wrote to Fuller. “We
intend to teach a school, and make what we can of our press. The paper is all
arrived, and the press, with the types, etc., complete. The Bible is wholly
translated, except a few chapters, so that we intend to begin printing
immediately, first the New and then the Old Testament. We love our work, and
will do all we can to lighten your expenses.”
This
house-chapel, with two acres of garden land and separate rooms on either side,
continued till 1875 to be the nucleus of the settlement afterwards celebrated
all over South Asia and Christendom. The chapel is still sacred to the worship
of God. The separate rooms to the left, fronting the Hoogli, became enlarged
into the stately residence of Mr. John Marshman, C.S.I., and his two successors
in the Friend of India, while beyond were the girl’s school, now
removed, the residence of Dr. Joshua Marshman before his death, and the boys’
school presented to the mission by the King of Denmark. The separate rooms to
the right grew into the press; farther down the river was the house of the Lady
Rumohr who became Carey’s second wife, with the great paper-mill behind; and,
still farther, the second park in which the Serampore College was built, with
the principal’s house in which Carey died, and a hostel for the Native
Christian students behind. The whole settlement finally formed a block of at
least five acres, with almost palatial buildings, on the right bank of the
Hoogli, which, with a breadth of half a mile when in flood, rolls between it
and the Governor-General’s summer house and English-like park of Barrackpore.
The original two acres became Carey’s Botanic Garden; the houses he surrounded
and connected by mahogany trees, which grew to be of umbrageous beauty. His
favourite promenade between the chapel and the mill, and ultimately the
college, was under an avenue of his own planting, long known as “Carey’s Walk.”
The
new colleagues who were to live with him in loving brotherhood till death
removed the last in 1837 were not long in attracting him. The two were worthy
to be associated with him, and so admirably supplemented his own deficiencies
that the
brotherhood became the most potent and permanent force in India. He thus wrote
to Fuller his first impressions of them, with a loving self-depreciation:--“Brother Ward is the very man we wanted: he enters into
the work with his whole soul. I have much pleasure in him, and expect much from
him. Brother Marshman is a prodigy of diligence and prudence, as is also his
wife in the latter: learning the language is mere play to him; he has already
acquired as much as I did in double the time.” After eight months of study and
evangelising work they are thus described:--“Our brother Marshman, who is a true
missionary, is able to talk a little; he goes out frequently, nay almost every
day, and assaults the fortress of Satan. Brother Brunsdon can talk a little,
though not like Marshman. Brother Ward is a great prize; he does not learn the
language so quickly, but he is so holy, so spiritual a man, and so useful among
the children.”
Thus
early did Carey note the value of Hannah Marshman, the first woman missionary
to India. Granddaughter of the Baptist minister of Crockerton in Wiltshire, she
proved to be for forty-six years at once a loving wife, and the equal of the
three missionaries of Christ and of civilisation whom she aided in the common
home, in the schools, in the congregation, in the Native Christian families,
and even, at that early time, in purely Hindoo circles. Without her the mission
must have been one-sided indeed. It gives us a pathetic interest to turn to her
household books, where we find entered with loving care and thoughtful thrift
all the daily details which at once form a valuable contribution to the history
of prices, and show how her “prudence” combined with the heroic self-denial of
all to make the Serampore mission the light of India. Ward’s journal supplies
this first sketch of the brotherhood, who realised, more than probably any in
Protestant, Romanist, or Greek hagiology, the life of the apostolic community
in Jerusalem:--
“January
18, 1800.--This week we have adopted a set of rules for the government of the
family. All preach and pray in turn; one superintends the affairs of the family
for a month, and then another; brother Carey is treasurer, and has the
regulation of the medicine chest; brother Fountain is librarian. Saturday
evening is devoted to adjusting differences, and pledging ourselves to love one
another. One of our resolutions is, that no one of us do engage in private
trade; but that all be done for the benefit of the mission...
“August
1.--Our labours for every day are now regularly arranged. About six o’clock we
rise; brother Carey to his garden; brother Marshman to his school at seven;
brother Brunsdon, Felix, and I, to the printing-office. At eight the bell rings
for family worship: we assemble in the hall; sing, read, and pray. Breakfast.
Afterwards, brother Carey goes to the translation, or reading proofs: brother
Marshman to school, and the rest to the printing-office. Our compositor having
left us, we do without: we print three half-sheets of 2000 each in a week; have
five pressmen, one folder, and one binder. At twelve o’clock we take a
luncheon; then most of us shave and bathe, read and sleep before dinner, which
we have at three. After dinner we deliver our thoughts on a text or question:
this we find to be very profitable. Brother and sister Marshman keep their
schools till after two. In the afternoon, if business be done in the office, I
read and try to talk Bengali with the bràmmhàn.
We drink tea about seven, and have little or no supper. We have Bengali
preaching once or twice in the week, and on Thursday evening we have an
experience meeting. On Saturday evening we meet to compose differences and
transact business, after prayer, which is always immediately after tea. Felix
is very useful in the office; William goes to school, and part of the day
learns to bind. We meet two hours before breakfast on the first Monday in the
month, and each one prays for the salvation of the Bengal heathen. At night we
unite our prayers for the universal spread of the Gospel.”
The
“Form of Agreement” which regulated the social economy and spiritual enterprise
of the brotherhood, and also its legal relations to the Baptist Society in
England, deserves study, in its divine disinterestedness, its lofty aims, and
its kindly common sense. Fuller had pledged the Society in 1798 to send out
£360 a year for the joint family of six missionaries, their wives, and
children. The house and land at Serampore cost the Society Rs.6000. On Grant’s
death, leaving a widow and two children, the five missionaries made the first
voluntary agreement, which “provided that no one should trade on his own
private account, and that the product of their labour should form a common fund
to be applied at the will of the majority, to the support of their respective
families, of the cause of God around them, and of the widow and family of such
as might be removed by death.” The first year the schools and the press enabled
the brotherhood to be more than self-supporting. In the second year Carey’s
salary from the College of Fort-William, and the growth of the schools and
press, gave them a surplus for mission extension. They not only paid for the
additional two houses and ground required by such extension, but they paid back
to the Society all that it had advanced for the first purchase in the course of
the next six years. They acquired all the property for the Serampore Mission,
duly informing
the home Committee from time to time, and they vested the whole right, up to
Fuller’s death in 1815, in the Society, “to prevent the premises being sold or
becoming private property in the families.” But “to secure their own quiet
occupation of them, and enable them to leave them in the hands of such as they
might associate with themselves in their work, they declared themselves
trustees instead of proprietors.”
The
agreement of 1800 was expanded into the “Form of Agreement” of 1805 when the
spiritual side of the mission had grown. Their own authoritative statement, as
given above, was lovingly recognised by Fuller. In 1817, and again in 1820, the
claims of aged and destitute relatives, and the duty of each brother making provision
for his own widow and orphans, and, occasionally, the calls of pity and
humanity, led the brotherhood to agree that “each shall regularly deduct a tenth
of the net product of his labour to form a fund in his own hands for these
purposes.” We know nothing in the history of missions, monastic or evangelical,
which at all approaches this in administrative perfectness as well is in
Christlike self-sacrifice. It prevents secularisation of spirit, stimulates
activity of all kinds, gives full scope to local ability and experience, calls
forth the maximum of local support and propagation, sets the church at home
free to enter incessantly on new fields, provides permanence as well as variety
of action and adaptation to new circumstances, and binds the whole in a holy
bond of prayerful co-operation and loving brotherhood. This Agreement worked
for seventeen years, with a success in England and India which we shall trace,
or as long as Fuller, Ryland, and Sutcliff lived “to hold the ropes,” while
Carey, Marshman, and Ward excavated the mine of Hindooism.
The
spiritual side of the Agreement we find in the form which the three drew up in
1805, to be read publicly at all their stations thrice every year, on the
Lord’s Day. It is the ripe fruit of the first eleven years of Carey’s daily
toil and consecrated genius, as written out by the fervent pen of Ward. In the
light of it the whole of Carey’s life must be read. In these concluding
sentences the writer sketches Carey himself:--“Let us often look at Brainerd in
the woods of America, pouring out his very soul before God for the perishing
heathen, without whose salvation nothing could make you happy. Prayer, secret,
fervent, believing prayer, lies at the root of all personal godliness. A
competent knowledge of the languages current where a missionary lives, a mild
and winning temper, and a heart given up to God in closet religion; these,
these are the attainments which more than all knowledge or all other gifts,
will fit us to become the instruments of God in the great work of human
redemption. Finally, let us give ourselves unreservedly to this glorious cause.
Let us never think that our time, our gifts, our strength, our families, or
even the clothes we wear are our own. Let us sanctify them all to God and His
cause. Oh! that He may sanctify us for His work. Let us for ever shut out the
idea of laying up a cowrie (mite) for ourselves or our children. If we give up
the resolution which was formed on the subject of private trade, when we first
united at Serampore, the mission is from that hour a lost cause. Let us
continually watch against a worldly spirit, and cultivate a Christian
indifference towards every indulgence. Rather let us bear hardness as good
soldiers of Jesus Christ. No private family ever enjoyed a greater portion of
happiness, even in the most prosperous gale of worldly prosperity, than we have
done since we resolved to have all things in common. If we are enabled to
persevere in the same principles, we may hope that multitudes of converted
souls will have reason to bless God to all eternity for sending His Gospel into
this country.”
Such
was the moral heroism, such the spiritual aim of the Serampore brotherhood; how
did it set to work?
CHAPTER
VI
THE
FIRST NATIVE CONVERTS AND CHRISTIAN SCHOOLS
1800-1810
A
carpenter the first Bengali convert--Krishna Pal’s confession--Caste broken for
the first time--Carey describes the baptism in the Hoogli--The first woman
convert--The first widow convert--The first convert of writer caste--The first
Christian Brahman--The first native chapel--A Bengali “experience”
meeting--Carey founding a new community as well as church--Marriage
difficulties solved--The first native Christian marriage feast in North
India--Hindoo Christian death and burial--The first Christian schools and
school-books in North India--The first native Sunday school--Boarding schools
for the higher education of country-born Christians--Carey on the mixed
Portuguese, Eurasians, and Armenians--The Benevolent Institution for destitute
children of all races--A hundred schools--English only postponed--Effect on
native opinion and action--The leaven of the Kingdom--The Mission breaks forth
into five at the close of 1810.
FOR
seven years Carey had daily preached Christ in Bengali without a convert. He
had produced the first edition of the New Testament. He had reduced the
language to literary form. He had laid the foundations in the darkness of the
pit of Hindooism, while the Northamptonshire pastors, by prayer and
self-sacrifice, held the ropes. The last disappointment was on 25th November
1800, when “the first Hindoo” catechumen, Fakeer, offered himself for baptism,
returned to his distant home for his child, and appeared no more, probably
“detained by force.” But on the last Sunday of that year Krishna Pal was
baptised in the Hoogli and his whole family soon followed him. He was
thirty-five years of age. Not only as the first native Christian of North India
of whom we have a reliable account, but as the first missionary to Calcutta and
Assam, and the first Bengali hymn-writer, this man deserves study.
Carey’s
first Hindoo convert was three years younger than himself, or about thirty-six,
at baptism. Krishna Pal, born in the neighbouring French settlement of
Chandernagore, had settled in the suburbs of Serampore, where he worked as a
carpenter. Sore sickness and a sense of sin led him to join the Kharta-bhojas,
one of the sects which, from the time of Gautama Buddha, and of Chaitanya, the
reformer of Nuddea, to that of Nanak, founder of the Sikh brotherhood have been
driven into dissent by the yoke of Brahmanism. Generally worshippers of some
form of Vishnoo, and occasionally, as in Kabeer’s case, influenced by the
monotheism of Islam, these sects begin by professing theism and opposition to
caste, though Hindooism is elastic enough to keep them always within its pale
and ultimately to absorb them again. For sixteen years Krishna Pal was himself
a gooroo of the Ghospara sect, of which from Carey’s to Duff’s earlier days the
missionaries had a hope which proved vain. He recovered from sickness, but
could not shake off the sense of the burden of sin, when this message came to
him, and, to his surprise, through the Europeans--“Jesus Christ came into the
world to save sinners.” At the same time he happened to dislocate his right arm
by falling down the slippery side of his tank when about to bathe. He sent two
of the children to the Mission House for Thomas, who immediately left the
breakfast table at which the brethren had just sat down, and soon reduced the luxation,
while the sufferer again heard the good news that Christ was waiting to heal
his soul, and he and his neighbour Gokool received a Bengali tract. He himself
thus told the story:--“In this paper I read that he who confesseth and
forsaketh his sins, and trusteth in the righteousness of Christ, obtains
salvation. The next morning Mr. Carey came to see me, and after inquiring how I
was, told me to come to his house, that he would give me some medicine, by
which, through the blessing of God, the pain in my arm would be removed. I went
and obtained the medicine, and through the mercy of God my arm was cured. From
this time I made a practice of calling at the mission house, where Mr. Ward and
Mr. Felix Carey used to read and expound the Holy Bible to me. One day Dr.
Thomas asked me whether I understood what I heard from Mr. Ward and Mr. Carey.
I said I understood that the Lord Jesus Christ gave his life up for the
salvation of sinners, and that I believed it, and so did my friend Gokool. Dr.
T. said, ‘Then I call you brother--come and let us eat together in love.’ At
this time the table was set for luncheon, and all the missionaries and their
wives, and I and Gokool, sat down and ate together.”
The
servants spread the news, most horrible to the people, that the two Hindoos had
“become Europeans,” and they were assaulted on their way home. Just thirty
years after, in Calcutta, the first public breach of caste by the young Brahman
students of Duff raised a still greater commotion, and resulted in the first converts
there. Krishna Pal and his wife, his wife’s sister and his four daughters; Gokool, his wife, and
a widow of forty who lived beside them, formed the first group of Christian
Hindoos of caste in India north of Madras. Two years after Krishna Pal sent to
the Society this confession of his faith. Literally translated, it is a record
of belief such as Paul himself might have written, illustrated by an apostolic
life of twenty-two years. The carpenter’s confession
and dedication has, in the original, an exquisite tenderness, reflected also in
the hymn11 which he wrote for family worship:--
“SERAMPORE,
12th Oct. 1802.
“To
the brethren of the church of our Saviour Jesus Christ, our souls’ beloved, my
affectionately embracing representation. The love of God, the gospel of Jesus
Christ, was made known by holy brother Thomas. In that day our minds were
filled with joy. Then judging, we understood that we were dwelling in darkness.
Through the door of manifestation we came to know that, sin confessing, sin
forsaking, Christ’s righteousness embracing, salvation would be obtained. By
light springing up in the heart, we knew that sinners becoming repentant,
through the sufferings of Christ, obtain salvation. In this rejoicing, and in
Christ’s love believing, I obtained mercy. Now it is in my mind continually to
dwell in the love of Christ: this is the desire of my soul. Do you, holy
people, pour down love upon us, that as the chatookee we may be
satisfied.12 I was the vilest of sinners: He hath saved me. Now this word I
will tell to the world. Going forth, I will proclaim the love of Christ with
rejoicing. To sinners I will say this word: Here sinner, brother! Without
Christ there is no help. Christ, the world to save, gave his own soul! Such
love was never heard: for enemies Christ gave his own soul! Such compassion,
where shall we get? For the sake of saving sinners he forsook the happiness of
heaven. I will constantly stay near him. Being awakened by this news, I will
constantly dwell in the town of joy. In the Holy Spirit I will live: yet in
Christ’s sorrow I will be sorrowful. I will dwell along with happiness,
continually meditating on this;--Christ will save the world! In Christ
not taking refuge, there is no other way of life. I was indeed a sinner, praise
not knowing.--This is the representation of Christ’s servant,
“KRISTNO.”
Such
is the first epistle of the Church of India. Thus the first medical missionary
had his reward; but the joy proved to be too much for him. When Carey led
Krishna and his own son Felix down into the water of baptism the ravings of
Thomas in the schoolhouse on the one side, and of Mrs. Carey on the other,
mingled with the strains of the Bengali hymn of praise. The Mission Journal,
written by Ward, tells with graphic simplicity how caste as well as
idol-worship was overcome not only by the men but the women representatives of
a race whom, thirty years after, Macaulay described as destitute of courage,
independence, and veracity, and bold only in deceit. Christ is changing all
that.
“Nov.
27.--Krishna, the man whose arm was set, overtook Felix and me, and said he
would come to our house daily for instruction; for that we had not only cured
his arm, but brought him the news of salvation...
“Dec.
5.--Yesterday evening Gokool and Krishna prayed in my room. This morning Gokool
called upon us, and told us that his wife and two or three more of his family
had left him on account of the gospel. He had eaten of Krishna’s rice, who
being of another caste, Gokool had lost his. Krishna says his wife and family
are all desirous of becoming Christians. They declare their willingness to join
us, and obey all our Saviour’s commands. Gokool and his wife had a long talk;
but she continued determined, and is gone to her relations.
“Dec.
6.--This morning brother Carey and I went to Krishna’s house. Everything was
made very clean. The women sat within the house, the children at the door, and
Krishna and Gokool with brother Carey and I in the court. The houses of the
poor are only calculated for sleeping in. Brother Carey talked; and the women
appeared to have learned more of the gospel than we expected. They declared for
Christ at once. This work was new, even to brother Carey. A whole family
desiring to hear the gospel, and declaring in favour of it! Krishna’s wife said
she had received great joy from it.
“Lord’s-day,
Dec. 7.--This morning brother Carey went to Krishna’s house, and spoke
to a yard full of people, who heard with great attention though trembling with
cold. Brother Brunsdon is very poorly. Krishna’s wife and her sister were to
have been with us in the evening; but the women have many scruples to sitting
in the company of Europeans. Some of them scarcely ever go out but to the
river; and if they meet a European run away. Sometimes when we have begun to
speak in a street, some one desires us to remove to a little distance; for the
women dare not come by us to fill their jars at the river. We always obey...
“Dec.
11.--Gokool, Krishna, and family continue to seek after the Word, and profess
their entire willingness to join us. The women seem to have learnt that sin is
a dreadful thing, and to have received joy in hearing of Jesus Christ. We see
them all every day almost. They live but half a mile from us. We think it right
to make many allowances for ignorance, and for a state of mind produced by a
corrupt superstition. We therefore cannot think of demanding from them,
previous to baptism, to more than a profession of dependence on Christ,
from a knowledge of their need of Him, and submission to Him in all things. We now begin to talk of
baptism. Yesterday we fixed upon the spot, before our gate, in the river. We
begin to talk also of many other things concerning the discipled natives. This
evening Felix and I went to Gokool’s house. Krishna and his wife and a bràmmhàn
were present. I said a little. Felix read the four last chapters of John to
them, and spoke also. We sat down upon a piece of mat in the front of the
house. (No chairs.) It was very pleasant. To have natives who feel a little as
we do ourselves, is so new and different. The country itself seems to wear a
new aspect to me...
“Dec.
13.--This evening Felix and I went to see our friends Gokool and Krishna. The
latter was out. Gokool gave a pleasing account of the state of his mind, and
also of that of Krishna and his family. While we were there, Gokool’s gooroo
(teacher) came for the first time since his losing caste. Gokool refused to
prostrate himself at his feet while he should put his foot on his head; for
which his gooroo was displeased...
“Dec.
22.--This day Gokool and Krishna came to eat tiffin (what in England is called
luncheon) with us, and thus publicly threw away their caste. Brethren Carey and
Thomas went to prayer with the two natives before they proceeded to this act.
All our servants were astonished: so many had said that nobody would ever mind
Christ or lose caste. Brother Thomas has waited fifteen years, and thrown away
much upon deceitful characters: brother Carey has waited till hope of his own
success has almost expired; and after all, God has done it with perfect ease!
Thus the door of faith is open to the gentiles; who shall shut it? The chain of
the caste is broken; who shall mend it?”
Carey
thus describes the baptism:--“Dec. 29.--Yesterday was a day of great
joy. I had the happiness to desecrate the Gunga, by baptising the first Hindoo,
viz. Krishna, and my son Felix: some circumstances turned up to delay the
baptism of Gokool and the two women. Krishna’s coming forward alone, however,
gave us very great pleasure, and his joy at both ordinances was very great. The
river runs just before our gate, in front of the house, and, I think, is as
wide as the Thames at Gravesend. We intended to have baptised at nine in the
morning; but, on account of the tide, were obliged to defer it till nearly one
o’clock, and it was administered just after the English preaching. The Governor
and a good number of Europeans were present. Brother Ward preached a sermon in
English, from John v. 39--‘Search the Scriptures.’ We then went to the
water-side, where I addressed the people in Bengali; after having sung a
Bengali translation of ‘Jesus, and shall it ever be?’ and engaging in prayer.
After the address I administered the ordinance, first to my son, then to
Krishna. At half-past four I administered the Lord’s Supper; and a time of real
refreshing it was...
“Thus,
you see, God is making way for us, and giving success to the word of His grace!
We have toiled long, and have met with many discouragements; but, at last, the
Lord has appeared for us. May we have the true spirit of nurses, to train them
up in the words of faith and sound doctrine! I have no fear of any one,
however, in this respect, but myself. I feel much concerned that they may act
worthy of their vocation, and also that they may be able to teach others. I
think it becomes us to make the most of every one whom the Lord gives us.”
Jeymooni,
Krishna’s wife’s sister, was the first Bengali woman to be baptised, and Rasoo,
his wife, soon followed; both were about thirty-five years old. The former said
she had found a treasure in Christ greater than anything in the world. The
latter, when she first heard the good news from her husband, said “there was no
such sinner as I, and I felt my heart immediately unite to Him. I wish to keep
all His commands so far as I know them.” Gokool was kept back for a time by his
wife, Komal, who fled to her father’s, but Krishna and his family brought in,
first the husband, then the wife, whose simplicity and frankness attracted the
missionaries. Unna, their widowed friend of forty, was also gathered in, the
first of that sad host of victims to Brahmanical cruelty, lust, and avarice, to
whom Christianity has ever since offered the only deliverance. Of 124,000,000
of women in India in 1881, no fewer than 21,000,000 were returned by the census
as widows, of whom 669,000 were under nineteen years, 286,000 were under
fifteen, and 79,000 were under nine, all figures undoubtedly within the
appalling truth. Jeymooni and Unna at once became active missionaries among
their country-women, not only in Serampore but in Chandernagore and the
surrounding country.
The
year 1800 did not close without fruit from the other and higher castes.
Petumber Singh, a man of fifty of the writer caste, had sought deliverance from
sin for thirty years at many a Hindoo shrine and in many a Brahmanical
scripture. One of the earliest tracts of the Serampore press fell into his
hands, and he at once walked forty miles to seek fuller instruction from its
author. His baptism gave Carey just what the mission wanted, a good
schoolmaster, and he soon proved to be, even before Krishna in time, the first
preacher to the people. Of the same writer caste were Syam Dass, Petumber
Mitter, and his wife Draupadi, who was as brave as her young husband. The despised soodras were
represented by Syam’s neighbour, Bharut, an old man, who said he went to Christ
because he was just falling into hell and saw no other way of safety. The first
Mohammedan convert was Peroo, another neighbour of Syam Dass. From the spot on
the Soondarbans where Carey first began his life of missionary farmer, there
came to him at the close of 1802, in Calcutta, the first Brahman who had bowed
his neck to the Gospel in all India up to this time, for we can hardly reckon
Kiernander’s case. Krishna Prosad, then nineteen, “gave up his friends and his
caste with much fortitude, and is the first Brahman who has been baptised. The
word of Christ’s death seems to have gone to his heart, and he continues to
receive the Word with meekness.” The poita or sevenfold thread which, as
worn over the naked body, betokened his caste, he trampled under foot, and
another was given to him, that when preaching Christ he might be a witness to
the Brahmans at once that Christ is irresistible and that an idol is nothing in
the world. This he voluntarily ceased to wear in a few years. Two more Brahmans
were brought in by Petumber Singhee in 1804, by the close of which year the
number of baptised converts was forty-eight, of whom forty
were native men and women. With the instinct of a true scholar and Christian
Carey kept to the apostolic practice, which has been too often departed
from--he consecrated the convert’s name as well as soul and body to Christ.
Beside the “Hermes” of Rome to whom Paul sent his salutation, he kept the
“Krishna” of Serampore and Calcutta.
The
first act of the first convert, Krishna Pal, was of his own accord to build a
house for God immediately opposite his own, the first native meeting-house in
Bengal. Carey preached the first sermon in it to twenty natives besides the
family. On the side of the high road, along which the car of Jagganath is
dragged every year, the missionaries purchased a site and built a preaching
place, a school, a house for Gokool, and a room for the old widow, at the cost
of Captain Wickes, who had rejoiced to witness their baptism. The Brahman who
owned the neighbouring land wished to sell it and leave the place, “so much do
these people abhor us.” This little purchase for £6 grew in time into the
extensive settlement of Jannagur, where about 1870 the last of Carey’s converts
passed away. From its native chapel, and in its village tank, many Hindoos have
since been led by their own ordained countrymen to put on Christ. In time the
church in the chapel on the Hoogli became chiefly European and Eurasian, but on
the first Sunday of the year, the members of both churches meet together for
solemn and joyful communion, when the services are alternately in Bengali and
English.
The
longing for converts now gave place to anxiety that they might continue to be
Christians indeed. As in the early Corinthian Church, all did not perceive at
once the solemnities of the Lord’s Supper. Krishna Pal, for instance, jealous
because the better educated Petumber had been ordained to preach before him,
made a schism by administering it, and so filled the missionaries with grief
and fear; but he soon became penitent. Associated with men who gave their all
to Christ, the native members could not but learn the lesson of self-support,
so essential for a self-propagating church, and so often neglected in the early
history of missions, and even still. On baptism Krishna received a new white
dress with six shillings; but such a gift, beautiful in itself, was soon
discontinued. A Mohammedan convert asked assistance to cultivate a little
ground and rear silkworms, but, writes Mr. Ward bowed down with missionary
cares, “We are desirous to avoid such a precedent.” Although these first
converts were necessarily missionaries rather than pastors for a time, each
preacher received no more than six rupees a month while in his own village, and
double that when itinerating. Carey and his colleagues were ever on the watch
to foster the spiritual life and growth of men and women born, and for thirty
or fifty years trained, in all the ideas and practices of a system which is the
very centre of opposition to teaching like theirs. This record of an
“experience meeting” of three men and five women may be taken as a type of
Bengali Christianity when it was but two years old, and as a contrast to that
which prevails a century after:--
“Gokool.
I have been the greatest of sinners, but I wish only to think of the death of
Christ. I rejoice that now people can no longer despise the Gospel, and call us
feringas; but they begin to judge for themselves.
“Krishna
Prosad. I have this week been thinking of the power of God, that he can do
all things; and of the necessity of minding all his commands. I have thought
also of my mother a great deal, who is now become old, and who is constantly
crying about me, thinking that I have dishonoured the family and am lost. Oh
that I could but once go and tell her of the good news, as well as my brothers
and sisters, and open their eyes to the way of salvation!
“Ram
Roteen. In my mind there is this: I see that all the debtahs (idols) are
nothing, and that Jesus Christ is the only Saviour. If I can believe in him,
and walk in his commandments, it may be well with me.
“Rasoo. I am a great
sinner; yet I wish continually to think of the death of Christ. I had much
comfort in the marriage of my daughter (Onunda to Krishna Prosad). The
neighbours talked much about it, and seemed to think that it was much better
that a man should choose his own wife, than that people should be betrothed in
their infancy by their parents. People begin to be able to judge a little now
about the Christian ways.
“Jeymooni.
In this country are many ways: the way of the debtahs; the way of Jagganath,
where all eat together; the way of Ghospara, etc. Yet all these are vain. Yesoo
Kreest’s death, and Yesoo Kreest’s commands--this is the way of life! I long to
see Kreest’s kingdom grow. This week I had much joy in talking to Gokool’s
mother, whose heart is inclined to judge about the way of Kreest. When I was
called to go and talk with her, on the way I thought within myself, but how can
I explain the way of Kreest? I am but a woman, and do not know much. Yet I
recollected that the blessing does not come from us: God can bless the weakest
words. Many Bengali women coming from the adjoining houses, sat down and heard
the word; and I was glad in hoping that the mercy of God might be found by this
old woman. [Gokool’s mother.]
“Komal.
I am a great sinner; yet I have been much rejoiced this week in Gokool’s mother
coming to inquire about the Gospel. I had great sorrow when Gokool was ill; and
at one time I thought he would have died; but God has graciously restored him.
We have worldly sorrow, but this lasts only for a time.
“Draupadi.
This week I have had much sorrow on account of Petumber. His mind is very bad:
he sits in the house, and refuses to work; and I know not what will become of
him: yet Kreest’s death is a true word.
“Golook.
I have had much joy in thinking of God’s goodness to our family. My sisters
Onunda and Kesaree wish to be baptised, and to come into the church. If I can
believe in Kreest’s death, and keep his commands till death, then I shall be
saved.”
Carey
was not only founding the Church of North India; he was creating a new society,
a community, which has its healthy roots in the Christian family. Krishna Pal
had come over with his household, like the Philippian, and at once became his
own and their gooroo or priest. But the marriage difficulty was early forced on
him and on the missionaries. The first shape which persecution took was an
assault on his eldest daughter, Golook, who was carried off to the house in
Calcutta of the Hindoo to whom in infancy she had been betrothed, or married according
to Hindoo law enforced by the Danish and British courts. As a Christian she
loathed a connection which was both idolatrous and polygamous. But she
submitted for a time, continuing, however, secretly to pray to Christ when
beaten by her husband for openly worshipping Him, and refusing to eat things
offered to the idol. At last it became intolerable. She fled to her father, was
baptised, and was after a time joined by her penitent husband. The subject of
what was to be done with converts whose wives would not join them occupied the
missionaries in discussion every Sunday during 1803, and they at last referred
it to Andrew Fuller and the committee. Practically they anticipated the Act in
which Sir Henry Maine gave relief after the Scriptural mode. They sent the
husband to use every endeavour to induce his heathen wife to join him; long
delay or refusal they counted a sufficient ground for divorce, and they allowed
him to marry again. The other case, which still troubles the native churches,
of the duty of a polygamous Christian, seems to have been solved according to
Dr. Doddridge’s advice, by keeping such out of office in the church, and
pressing on the conscience of all the teaching of our Lord in Matthew xix., and
of Paul in 1st Corinthians vii.
In
1802 Carey drew up a form of agreement and of service for native Christian
marriages not unlike that of the Church of England. The simple and pleasing
ceremony in the case of Syam Dass presented a contrast to the prolonged,
expensive, and obscene rites of the Hindoos, which attracted the people. When,
the year after, a Christian Brahman was united to a daughter of Krishna Pal, in
the presence of more than a hundred Hindoos, the unity of all in Christ Jesus
was still more marked:--
“Apr.
4, 1803.--This morning early we went to attend the wedding of Krishna Prosad
with Onunda, Krishna’s second daughter. Krishna gave him a piece of ground
adjoining his dwelling, to build him a house, and we lent Prosad fifty rupees
for that purpose, which he is to return monthly, out of his wages. We therefore
had a meeting for prayer in this new house, and many neighbours were present.
Five hymns were sung: brother Carey and Marshman prayed in Bengali. After this
we went under an open shed close to the house, where chairs and mats were
provided: here friends and neighbours sat all around. Brother Carey sat at a
table; and after a short introduction, in which he explained the nature of
marriage, and noticed the impropriety of the Hindoo customs in this respect, he
read 2 Cor. vi. 14-18, and also the account of the marriage at Cana. Then he
read the printed marriage agreement, at the close of which Krishna Prosad and
Onunda, with joined hands, one after the other, promised love, faithfulness,
obedience, etc. They then signed the agreement, and brethren Carey, Marshman,
Ward, Chamberlain, Ram Roteen, etc., signed as witnesses. The whole was closed
with prayer by brother Ward. Everything was conducted with the greatest
decorum, and it was almost impossible not to have been pleased. We returned
home to breakfast, and sent the new-married couple some sugar-candy, plantains,
and raisins; the first and last of these articles had been made a present of to
us, and the
plantains were the produce of the mission garden. In the evening we attended
the monthly prayer-meeting.
“Apr.
5.--This evening we all went to supper at Krishna’s, and sat under the shade
where the marriage ceremony had been performed. Tables, knives and forks,
glasses, etc., having been taken from our house, we had a number of Bengali
plain dishes, consisting of curry, fried fish, vegetables, etc., and I fancy
most of us ate heartily. This is the first instance of our eating at the house
of our native brethren. At this table we all sat with the greatest
cheerfulness, and some of the neighbours looked on with a kind of amazement. It
was a new and very singular sight in this land where clean and unclean is so
much regarded. We should have gone in the daytime, but were prevented by the
heat and want of leisure. We began this wedding supper with singing, and
concluded with prayer: between ten and eleven we returned home with joy. This
was a glorious triumph over the caste! A Brahman married to a soodra, in the
Christian way: Englishmen eating with the married couple and their friends, at
the same table, and at a native house. Allowing the Hindoo chronology to be
true, there has not been such a sight in Bengal these millions of years!”
In
the same year the approaching death of Gokool led the missionaries to purchase
the acre of ground, near the present railway station, in which lies the dust of
themselves and their converts, and of a child of the Judsons, till the
Resurrection. Often did Carey officiate at the burial of Europeans in the
Danish cemetery. Previous to his time the only service there consisted in the
Government secretary dropping a handful of earth on the coffin. In the native
God’s-acre, as in the Communion of the Lord’s Table, and in the simple rites
which accompanied the burial of the dead in Christ, the heathen saw the one
lofty platform of loving self-sacrifice to which the Cross raises all its
children:--
“Oct.
7.--Our dear friend Gokool is gone: he departed at two this morning. At twelve
he called the brethren around him to sing and pray; was perfectly sensible,
resigned, and tranquil. Some of the neighbours had been persuading him the day
before to employ a native doctor; he however refused, saying he would have no
physician but Jesus Christ. On their saying, How is it that you who have turned
to Christ should be thus afflicted? He replied, My affliction is on account of
my sins; my Lord does all things well! Observing Komal weep (who had been a
most affectionate wife), he said, Why do you weep for me? Only pray, etc. From
the beginning of his illness he had little hope of recovery; yet he never
murmured, nor appeared at all anxious for medicine. His answer constantly was,
“I am in my Lord’s hands, I want no other physician!’ His patience throughout
was astonishing: I never heard him say once that his pain was great. His
tranquil and happy end has made a deep impression on our friends: they say one
to another, ‘May my mind be as Gokool’s was!’ When we consider, too, that this
very man grew shy of us three years ago, because we opposed his notion that
believers would never die, the grace now bestowed upon him appears the more
remarkable. Knowing the horror the Hindoos have for a dead body, and how
unwilling they are to contribute any way to its interment, I had the coffin
made at our house the preceding day, by carpenters whom we employ. They would
not, however, carry it to the house. The difficulty now was, to carry him to
the grave. The usual mode of Europeans is to hire a set of men (Portuguese),
who live by it. But besides that our friends could never constantly sustain that
expense, I wished exceedingly to convince them of the propriety of doing that
last kind office for a brother themselves. But as Krishna had been ill again
the night before, and two of our brethren were absent with brother Ward, we
could only muster three persons. I evidently saw the only way to supply the
deficiency; and brother Carey being from home, I sounded Felix and William, and
we determined to make the trial; and at five in the afternoon repaired to the
house. Thither were assembled all our Hindoo brethren and sisters, with a crowd
of natives that filled the yard, and lined the street. We brought the remains
of our dear brother out, whose coffin Krishna had covered within and without
with white muslin at his own expense; then, in the midst of the silent and
astonished multitude, we improved the solemn moment by singing a hymn of
Krishna’s, the chorus of which is ‘Salvation by the death of Christ.’ Bhairub
the brahmàn, Peroo the mussulman, Felix and I took up the coffin; and, with the
assistance of Krishna and William, conveyed it to its long home: depositing it
in the grave, we sung two appropriate hymns. After this, as the crowd was
accumulating, I endeavoured to show the grounds of our joyful hope even in
death, referring to the deceased for a proof of its efficacy: told them that
indeed he had been a great sinner, as they all knew, and for that reason could
find no way of salvation among them; but when he heard of Jesus Christ, he
received him as a suitable and all-sufficient Saviour, put his trust in him,
and died full of tranquil hope. After begging them to consider their own state,
we prayed, sung Moorad’s hymn, and distributed papers. The concourse of people
was great, perhaps 500: they seemed much struck with the novelty of the scene,
and with the love and regard Christians manifest to each other, even in death;
so different from their throwing their friends, half dead and half living, into
the river; or burning their body, with perhaps a solitary attendant.”
Preaching,
teaching, and Bible translating were from the first Carey’s three missionary
methods, and in all he led the missionaries who have till the present followed
him with a success which he never hesitated to expect, as one of the “great
things” from God. His work for the education of the people of India, especially
in their own vernacular and classical languages, was second only to that which
gave them a literature sacred and pure. Up to 1794, when at Mudnabati he opened
the first primary
school worthy of the name in all India at his own cost, and daily superintended
it, there had been only one attempt to improve upon the indigenous schools,
which taught the children of the trading castes only to keep rude accounts, or
upon the tols in which the Brahmans instructed their disciples for one-half the year, while for the other half they lived by begging. That
attempt was made by Schwartz at Combaconum, the priestly Oxford of South India,
where the wars with Tipoo soon put an end to a scheme supported by both the
Raja of Tanjore and the British Government. When Carey moved to Serampore and
found associated with him teachers so accomplished and enthusiastic as Marshman
and his wife, education was not long in taking its place in the crusade which
was then fully organised for the conversion of Southern and Eastern Asia. At
Madras, too, Bell had stumbled upon the system of “mutual instruction” which he
had learned from the easy methods of the indigenous schoolmaster, and which he
and Lancaster taught England to apply to the clamant wants of the country, and
to improve into the monitorial, pupil-teacher and grant-in-aid systems. Carey
had all the native schools of the mission “conducted upon Lancaster’s plan.”
In
Serampore, and in every new station as it was formed, a free school was opened.
We have seen how the first educated convert, Petumber, was made schoolmaster.
So early as October 1800 we find Carey writing home:--“The children in our
Bengali free school, about fifty, are mostly very young. Yet we are
endeavouring to instil into their minds Divine truth, as fast as their
understandings ripen. Some natives have complained that we are poisoning the
minds even of their very children.” The first attempt to induce the boys to
write out the catechism in Bengali resulted, as did Duff’s to get them to read
aloud the Sermon on the Mount thirty years after, in a protest that their caste
was in danger. But the true principles of toleration and discipline were at
once explained--“that the children will never be compelled to do anything that
will make them lose caste; that though we abhor the caste we do not wish any to
lose it but by their own choice. After this we shall insist on the children
doing what they have been ordered.” A few of the oldest boys withdrew for a
time, declaring that they feared they would be sent on board ship to England,
and the baptism of each of the earlier converts caused a panic. But instruction
on honest methods soon worked out the true remedy. Two years after we find this
report:--“The first class, consisting of catechumens, are now learning in
Bengali the first principles of Christianity; and will hereafter be instructed
in the rudiments of history, geography, astronomy, etc. The second class, under
two other masters, learn to read and write Bengali and English. The third class,
consisting of the children of natives who have not lost caste, learn only
Bengali. This school is in a promising state, and is liberally supported by the
subscriptions of Europeans in this country.”
Carey’s
early success led Mr. Creighton of Malda to open at Goamalty several Bengali
free schools, and to draw up a scheme for extending such Christian nurseries
all over the country at a cost of £10 for the education of fifty children. Only
by the year 1806 was such a scheme practicable, because Carey had translated
the Scriptures, and, as Creighton noted, “a variety of introductory and
explanatory tracts and catechisms in the Bengali and Hindostani tongues have
already been circulated in some parts of the country, and any number may be had
gratis from the Mission House, Serampore.” As only a few of the Brahman
and writer castes could read, and not one woman, “a general perusal of the
Scriptures amongst natives will be impracticable till they are taught to read.”
But nothing was done, save by the missionaries, till 1835, when Lord William
Bentinck received Adam’s report on the educational destitution of Bengal.
Referring
to Creighton’s scheme, Mr. Ward’s journal thus chronicles the opening of the
first Sunday school in India in July 1803 by Carey’s sons:--
“Last
Lord’s day a kind of Sunday school was opened, which will be superintended
principally by our young friends Felix and William Carey, and John Fernandez.
It will chiefly be confined to teaching catechisms in Bengali and English, as
the children learn to read and write every day. I have received a letter from a
gentleman up the country, who writes very warmly respecting the general
establishment of Christian schools all over Bengal.”
Not
many years had passed since Raikes had begun Sunday schools in England. Their
use seems to have passed away with the three Serampore missionaries for a time,
and to have been again extended by the American missionaries about 1870. There
are now above 200,000 boys and girls at such schools in India, and
three-fourths of these are non-Christians.
As
from the first Carey drew converts from all classes, the Armenians, the
Portuguese, and the Eurasians, as well as the natives of India, he and Mr. and
Mrs. Marshman especially took care to provide schools for their children. The necessity,
indeed, of this was forced upon them by the facts that the brotherhood began with nine children, and that boarding-schools for
these classes would form an honourable source of revenue to the mission. Hence
this advertisement, which appeared in March 1800:--“Mission, House,
Serampore.--On Thursday, the 1st of May 1800, a school will be opened at this
house, which stands in a very healthy and pleasant situation by the side of the
river. Letters add to Mr. Carey will be immediately attended to.” The cost of
boarding and fees varied from £45 to £50 a year, according as “Latin, Greek,
Hebrew, Persian, or Sanskrit” lessons were included. “Particular attention will
be paid to the correct pronunciation of the English language” was added for
reasons which the mixed parentage of the pupils explains. Such was the first
sign of a care for the Eurasians not connected with the army, which, as
developed by Marshman and Mack, began in 1823 to take the form of the Doveton
College. The boys’ school was soon followed by a girls’ school, through which a
stream of Christian light radiated forth over resident Christian society, and
from which many a missionary came.
Carey’s
description of the mixed community is the best we have of its origin as well as
of the state of European society in India, alike when the Portuguese were
dominant, and at the beginning of the nineteenth century when the East India
Company were most afraid of Christianity:--“The Portuguese are a people who, in
the estimation of both Europeans and natives, are sunk below the Hindoos or
Mussulmans. However, I am of opinion that they are rated much too low. They are
chiefly descendants of the slaves of the Portuguese who first landed here, or
of the children of those Portuguese by their female slaves; and being born in
their house, were made Christians in their infancy by what is called baptism,
and had Portuguese names given them. It is no wonder that these people,
despised as they are by Europeans, and being consigned to the teachings of very
ignorant Popish priests, should be sunk into such a state of degradation. So
gross, indeed, are their superstitions, that I have seen a Hindoo image-maker
carrying home an image of Christ on the cross between two thieves, to the house
of a Portuguese. Many of them, however, can read and write English well and
understand Portuguese...
“Besides
these, there are many who are the children of Europeans by native women,
several of whom are well educated, and nearly all of them Protestants by
profession. These, whether children of English, French, Dutch, or Danes, by
native women, are called Portuguese. Concubinage here is so common, that few
unmarried Europeans are without a native woman, with whom they live as if
married; and I believe there are but few instances of separation, except in
case of marriage with European women, in which case the native woman is
dismissed with an allowance: but the children of these marriages are never
admitted to table with company, and are universally treated by the English as
an inferior species of beings. Hence they are often shame-faced yet proud and
conceited, and endeavour to assume that honour to themselves which is denied
them by others. This class may be regarded as forming a connecting link between
Europeans and natives. The Armenians are few in number, but chiefly rich. I
have several times conversed with them about religion: they hear with patience,
and wonder that any Englishman should make that a subject of
conversation.”
While
the Marshmans gave their time from seven in the morning till three in the
afternoon to these boarding-schools started by Carey in 1800 for the higher
education of the Eurasians, Carey himself, in Calcutta, early began to care for
the destitute. His efforts resulted in the establishment of the “Benevolent Institution
for the Instruction of Indigent Children,” which the contemporary Bengal
civilian, Charles Lushington, in his History extols as one of the
monuments of active and indefatigable benevolence due to Serampore. Here, on
the Lancaster system, and superintended by Carey, Mr. and Mrs. Penney had as
many as 300 boys and 100 girls under Christian instruction of all ages up to
twenty-four, and of every race:--“Europeans, native Portuguese, Armenians,
Mugs, Chinese, Hindoos, Mussulmans, natives of Sumatra, Mozambik, and
Abyssinia.” This official reporter states that thus more than a thousand youths
had been rescued from vice and ignorance and advanced in usefulness to society,
in a degree of opulence and respectability. The origin of this noble charity is
thus told to Dr. Ryland by Carey himself in a letter which unconsciously
reveals his own busy life, records the missionary influence of the higher
schools, and reports the existence of the mission over a wide area. He writes
from Calcutta on 24th May 1811:--
“A
year ago we opened a free school in Calcutta. This year we added to it a school
for girls. There are now in it about 140 boys and near 40 girls. One of our
deacons, Mr. Leonard, a most
valuable and active man, superintends the boys, and a very pious woman, a
member of the church, is over the girls. The Institution meets with
considerable encouragement, and is conducted upon Lancaster’s plan. We meditate
another for instruction of Hindoo youths in the Sanskrit language, designing,
however, to introduce the study of the Sanskrit Bible into it; indeed it is as
good as begun; it will be in Calcutta. By brother and sister Marshman’s
encouragement there are two schools in our own premises at Serampore for the
gratuitous instruction of youth of both sexes, supported and managed wholly by
the male and female scholars in our own school. These young persons appear to
enter with pleasure into the plan, contribute their money to its support, and
give instruction in turns to the children of these free schools. I trust we
shall be able to enlarge this plan, and to spread its influence far about the
country. Our brethren in the Isles of France and Bourbon seem to be doing good;
some of them are gone to Madagascar, and, as if to show that Divine Providence
watches over them, the ship on which they went was wrecked soon after they had
landed from it. A number of our members are now gone to Java; I trust their
going thither will not be in vain. Brother Chamberlain is, ere this, arrived at
Agra...We preach every week in the Fort and in the public prison, both in
English and Bengali.”
Carey
had not been six months at Serampore when he saw the importance of using the
English language as a missionary weapon, and he proposed this to Andrew Fuller.
The other pressing duties of a pioneer mission to the people of Bengal led him
to postpone immediate action in this direction; we shall have occasion to trace
the English influence of the press and the college hereafter. But meanwhile the
vernacular schools, which soon numbered a hundred altogether, were most
popular, and then as now proved most valuable feeders of the infant Church.
Without them, wrote the three missionaries to the Society, “the whole plan must
have been nipped in the bud, since, if the natives had not cheerfully sent their
children, everything else would have been useless. But the earnestness with
which they have sought these schools exceeds everything we had previously
expected. We are still constantly importuned for more schools, although we have
long gone beyond the extent of our funds.” It was well that thus early, in
schools, in books and tracts, and in providing the literary form and apparatus
of the vernacular languages, Carey laid the foundation of the new national or
imperial civilisation. When the time for English came, the foundations were at
least above the ground. Laid deep and strong in the very nature of the people,
the structure has thus far promised to be national rather than foreign, though
raised by foreign hands, while marked by the truth and the purity of its
Western architects.
The
manifestation of Christ to the Bengalees could not be made without rousing the
hate and the opposition of the vested interests of Brahmanism. So long as Carey
was an indigo planter as well as a proselytiser in Dinapoor and Malda he met
with no opposition, for he had no direct success. But when, from Serampore, he
and the others, by voice, by press, by school, by healing the sick and visiting
the poor, carried on the crusade day by day with the gentle persistency of a
law of nature, the cry began. And when, by the breaking of caste and the denial
of Krishna’s Christian daughter Golook to the Hindoo to whom she had been
betrothed from infancy, the Brahmans began dimly to apprehend that not only
their craft but the whole structure of society was menaced, the cry became
louder, and, as in Ephesus of old, an appeal was made to the magistrates
against the men who were turning the world upside down. At first the very boys
taunted the missionaries in the streets with the name of Jesus Christ. Then,
after Krishna and his family had broken caste, they were seized by a mob and
hurried before the Danish magistrate, who at first refused to hand over a
Christian girl to a heathen, and gave her father a guard to prevent her from
being murdered, until the Calcutta magistrate decided that she must join her
husband but would be protected in the exercise of her new faith. The commotion
spread over the whole densely-peopled district. But the people were not with
the Brahmans, and the excitement sent many a sin-laden inquirer to Serampore
from a great distance. “The fire is now already kindled for which our Redeemer
expressed his strong desire,” wrote Carey to Ryland in March 1801. A year later
he used this language to his old friend Morris at Clipstone village:--“I think
there is such a fermentation raised in Bengal by the little leaven, that there
is a hope of the whole lump by degrees being leavened. God is carrying on his
work; and though it goes forward, yet no one can say who is the instrument. Doubtless,
various means contribute towards it; but of late the printing and dispersing of
New Testaments and small tracts seem to have the greatest effect.”
In a
spirit the opposite of Jonah’s the whole brotherhood, then consisting of the
three, of Carey’s son Felix, and of a new missionary, Chamberlain, sent home
this review of their position at the close of 1804:--
“We
are still a happy, healthful, and highly favoured family. But though we would
feel incessant gratitude for these gourds, yet we would not feel content unless
Nineveh be brought to repentance. We did not come into this country to be
placed in what are called easy circumstances respecting this world; and
we trust that nothing but the salvation of souls will satisfy us. True, before
we set off, we thought we could die content if we should be permitted to see
the half of what we have already seen; yet now we seem almost as far from the
mark of our missionary high calling as ever. If three millions of men were
drowning, he must be a monster who should be content with saving one individual
only; though for the deliverance of that one he would find cause for perpetual
gratitude.”
In
1810 the parent mission at Serampore had so spread into numerous stations and
districts that a new organisation became necessary. There were 300 converts, of
whom 105 had been added in that year. “Did you expect to see this eighteen
years ago?” wrote Marshman to the Society. “But what may we not expect if God
continues to bless us in years to come?” Marshman forgot how Carey had, in
1792, told them on the inspired evangelical prophet’s authority to “expect
great things from God.” Henceforth the one mission became fivefold for a time.
CHAPTER
VII
CALCUTTA
AND THE MISSION CENTRES FROM DELHI TO AMBOYNA
1802-1817
The
East India Company an unwilling partner of Carey--Calcutta opened to the
Mission by his appointment as Government teacher of Bengali--Meeting of 1802
grows into the Lall Bazaar mission--Christ-like work among the poor, the sick,
the prisoners, the soldiers and sailors and the natives--Krishna Pal first
native missionary in Calcutta--Organisation of subordinate stations--Carey’s
“United Missions in India”--The missionary staff thirty strong--The native
missionaries--The Bengali church self-propagating--Carey the pioneer of other
missionaries--Benares--Burma and Indo-China--Felix Carey--Instructions to
missionaries--The missionary shrivelled into an ambassador--Adoniram and Ann
Judson--Jabez Carey--Mission to Amboyna--Remarkable letter from Carey to his third
son.
THE
short-sighted regulation of the East India Company, which dreamed that it could
keep Christianity out of Bengal by shutting up the missionaries within the
little territory of Danish Serampore, could not be enforced with the same ease
as the order of a jailer. Under Danish passports, and often without them,
missionary tours were made over Central Bengal, aided by its network of rivers.
Every printed Bengali leaf of Scripture or pure literature was a missionary.
Every new convert, even the women, became an apostle to their people, and such
could not be stopped. Gradually, as not only the innocency but the positive
political usefulness of the missionaries’ character and work came to be
recognised by the local authorities, they were let alone for a time. And soon,
by the same historic irony which has marked so many of the greatest
reforms--“He that sitteth in the heavens shall laugh”--the Government of India
became, though unwittingly, more of a missionary agency than the Baptist
Society itself. The only teacher of Bengal who could be found for Lord
Wellesley’s new College of Fort William was William Carey. The appointment,
made and accepted without the slightest prejudice to his aggressive spiritual
designs and work, at once opened Calcutta itself for the first time to the
English proselytising of natives, and supplied Carey with the only means yet lacking
for the translation of the Scriptures into all the languages of the farther
East. In spite of its own selfish fears the Company became a principal partner
in the Christianisation of India and China.
From
the middle of the year 1801 and for the next thirty years Carey spent as much
of his time in the metropolis as in Serampore. He was generally rowed down the
eighteen miles of the winding river to Calcutta at sunset on Monday evening and
returned on Friday night every week, working always by the way. At first he
personally influenced the Bengali traders and youths who knew English, and he
read with many such the English Bible. His chaplain friends, Brown and
Buchanan, with the catholicity born of their presbyterian and evangelical
training, shared his sympathy with the hundreds of poor mixed Christians for
whom St. John’s and even the Mission Church made no provision, and encouraged
him to care for them. In 1802 he began a weekly meeting for prayer and
conversation in the house of Mr. Rolt, and another for a more ignorant class in
the house of a Portuguese Christian. By 1803 he was able to write to Fuller:
“We have opened a place of worship in Calcutta, where we have preaching twice
on Lord’s day in English, on Wednesday evening in Bengali, and on Thursday
evening in English.” He took all the work during the week and the Sunday
service in rotation with his brethren. The first church was the hall of a well-known
undertaker, approached through lines of coffins and the trappings of woe. In
time most of the evangelical Christians in the city promised to relieve the
missionaries of the expense if they would build an unsectarian chapel more
worthy of the object. This was done in Lall Bazaar, a little withdrawn from
that thoroughfare to this day of the poor and abandoned Christians, of the
sailors and soldiers on leave, of the liquor-shops and the stews. There, as in
Serampore, at a time when the noble hospitals of Calcutta were not, and the
children of only the “services” were cared for, “Brother Carey gave them
medicine for their bodies and the best medicine for their poor souls,” as a
contemporary widow describes it. The site alone cost so much--a thousand pounds--that
only a mat chapel could be built. Marshman raised another £1100 in ten days,
and after delays caused by the police Government sanctioned the building which
Carey opened on Sunday, 1st January 1809. But he and his colleagues “not
episcopally ordained” were forbidden to preach to British soldiers and to the
Armenians and Portuguese. “Carey’s Baptist Chapel” is now its name. Here was
for nearly a whole generation a sublime spectacle--the Northamptonshire
shoemaker training the governing class of India in Sanskrit, Bengali, and
Marathi all day, and translating the Ramayana and the Veda, and then, when the
sun went down, returning to the society of “the maimed, the halt, and the
blind, and many with the leprosy,” to preach in several tongues the glad tidings
of the Kingdom to the heathen of England as well as of India, and all with a
loving tenderness and patient humility learned in the childlike school of Him
who said, “Wist ye not that I must be about my Father’s business?”
Street
preaching was added to the apostolic agencies, and for this prudence dictated
recourse to the Asiatic and Eurasian converts. We find the missionaries writing
to the Society at the beginning of 1807, after the mutiny at Vellore,
occasioned as certainly by the hatlike turban then ordered, as the mutiny of
Bengal half a century after was by the greased cartridges:--
“We
now return to Calcutta; not, however, without a sigh. How can we avoid
sighing when we think of the number of perishing souls which this city
contains, and recollect the multitudes who used of late to hang upon our lips;
standing in the thick-wedged crowd for hours together, in the heat of a Bengal
summer, listening to the word of life! We feel thankful, however, that nothing
has been found against us, except in the matters of our God. Conscious of the
most cordial attachment to the British Government, and of the liveliest
interest in its welfare, we might well endure reproach were it cast upon us;
but the tongue of calumny itself has not to our knowledge been suffered to
bring the slightest accusation against us. We still worship at Calcutta in a
private house, and our congregation rather increases. We are going on with the
chapel. A family of Armenians also, who found it pleasant to attend divine
worship in the Bengali language, have erected a small place on their premises
for the sake of the natives.”
Krishna
Pal became the first native missionary to Calcutta, where he in 1810 had
preached at fourteen different places every week, and visited forty-one
families, to evangelise the servants of the richer and bring in the members of
the poorer. Sebuk Ram was added to the staff. Carey himself thus sums up the
labours of the year 1811, when he was still the only pastor of the Christian
poor, and the only resident missionary to half a million of natives:--
“Calcutta
is three miles long and one broad, very populous; the environs are crowded with
people settled in large villages, resembling (for population, not elegance) the
environs of Birmingham.
The first is about a mile south of the city; at nearly the same distance are
the public jail and the general hospital. Brother Gordon, one of our deacons,
being the jailer we preach there in English every Lord’s day. We did preach in
the Fort; but of late a military order has stopped us. Krishna and Sebuk Ram,
however, preach once or twice a week in the Fort notwithstanding; also at the
jail; in the house of correction; at the village of Alipore, south of the jail;
at a large factory north of the city, where several hundreds are employed; and
at ten or twelve houses in different parts of the city itself. In several
instances Roman Catholics, having heard the word, have invited them to their
houses, and having collected their neighbours, the one or the other have
received the word with gladness.
“The
number of inquirers constantly coming forward, awakened by the instrumentality
of these brethren, fills me with joy. I do not know that I am of much use
myself, but I see a work which fills my soul with thankfulness. Not having time
to visit the people, I appropriate every Thursday evening to receiving the
visits of inquirers. Seldom fewer than twenty come; and the simple confessions
of their sinful state, the unvarnished declaration of their former ignorance,
the expressions of trust in Christ and gratitude to him, with the accounts of
their spiritual conflicts often attended with tears which almost choke their
utterance, presents a scene of which you can scarcely entertain an adequate
idea. At the same time, meetings for prayer and mutual edification are held
every night in the week; and some nights, for convenience, at several places at
the same time: so that the sacred leaven spreads its influence through the
mass.”
On
his voyage to India Carey had deliberately contemplated the time when the
Society he had founded would influence not only Asia, but Africa, and he would
supply the peoples of Asia with the Scriptures in their own tongues. The time
had come by 1804 for organising the onward movement, and he thus describes it
to Ryland:--
“14th
December 1803.--Another plan has lately occupied our attention. It
appears that our business is to provide materials for spreading the Gospel, and
to apply those materials. Translations, pamphlets, etc., are the materials. To
apply them we have thought of setting up a number of subordinate stations, in
each of which a brother shall be fixed. It will be necessary and useful to
carry on some worldly business. Let him be furnished from us with a sum of
money to begin and purchase cloth or whatever other article the part produces
in greatest perfection: the whole to belong to the mission, and no part even to
be private trade or private property. The gains may probably support the
station. Every brother in such a station to have one or two native brethren with
him, and to do all he can to preach, and spread Bibles, pamphlets, etc., and to
set up and encourage schools where the reading of the Scriptures shall be
introduced. At least four brethren shall always reside at Serampore, which must
be like the heart while the other stations are the members. Each one must
constantly send a monthly account of both spirituals and temporals to
Serampore, and the brethren at Serampore (who must have a power of control over
the stations) must send a monthly account likewise to each station, with
advice, etc., as shall be necessary. A plan of this sort appears to be more
formidable than it is in reality. To find proper persons will be the greatest
difficulty; but as it will prevent much of that abrasion which may arise from a
great number of persons living in one house, so it will give several brethren
an opportunity of being useful, whose temper may not be formed to live in a
common family, and at the same time connect them as much to the body as if they
all lived together. We have judged that about 2000 rupees will do to begin at
each place, and it is probable that God will enable us to find money
(especially if assisted in the translations and printing by our brethren in
England) as fast as you will be able to find men.
“This
plan may be extended through a circular surface of a thousand miles’ radius,
and a constant communication kept up between the whole, and in some particular
cases it may extend ever farther. We are also to hope that God may raise up
some missionaries in this country who may be more fitted for the work than any
from England can be. At present we have not concluded on anything, but when
Brother Ward comes down we hope to do so, and I think one station may be fixed
on immediately which Brother Chamberlain may occupy. A late favourable
providence will, I hope, enable us to begin, viz., the College have subscribed
for 100 copies of my Sanskrit Grammar, which will be 6400 rupees or 800 pounds
sterling. The motion was very generously made by H. Colebrooke, Esq., who is
engaged in a similar work, and seconded by Messrs. Brown and Buchanan; indeed
it met with no opposition. It will scarcely be printed off under twelve months
more, but it is probable that the greatest part of the money will he advanced.
The Maratha war
and the subjugation of the country of Cuttak to the English may be esteemed a
favourable event for the spreading of the Gospel, and will certainly contribute
much to the comfort of the inhabitants.”
Two
years later he thus anticipates the consent of the local Government, in spite
of the Company’s determined hostility in England, but the Vellore mutiny panic
led to further delay:--
“25th
December 1805.--It has long been a favourite object with me to fix
European brethren in different parts of the country at about two hundred miles
apart, so that each shall be able to visit a circle of a hundred miles’ radius,
and within each of the circuits to place native brethren at proper distances,
who will, till they are more established, be under the superintendence of the
European brethren situated in the centre. Our brethren concur with me in this
plan. In consequence of this, I thought it would be desirable to have leave of
Government for them to settle, and preach, without control, in any part of the
country. The Government look on us with a favourable eye; and owing to Sir G.
Barlow, the Governor-General, being up the country, Mr. Udny is Vice-President
and Deputy-Governor. I therefore went one morning, took a breakfast with him,
and told him what we were doing and what we wished to do. He, in a very
friendly manner, desired me to state to him in a private letter all that we
wished, and offered to communicate privately with Sir G. Barlow upon the
subject, and inform me of the result. I called on him again last week, when he
informed me that he had written upon the subject and was promised a speedy
reply. God grant that it may be favourable. I know that Government will allow
it if their powers are large enough.”
Not
till 1810 could Carey report that “permission was obtained of Government for
the forming of a new station at Agra, a large city in upper Hindostan, not far
from Delhi and the country of the Sikhs,” to which Chamberlain and an assistant
were sent. From that year the Bengal became only the first of “The United
Missions in India.” These were five in number, each under its own separate
brotherhood, on the same principles of self-denial as the original, each a
Lindisfarne sprung from the parent Iona. These five were the Bengal, the
Burman, the Orissa, the Bhootan, and the Hindostan Missions. The Bengal mission
was fourfold--Serampore and Calcutta reckoned as one station; the old Dinapoor
and Sadamahal which had taken the place of Mudnabati; Goamalty, near Malda;
Cutwa, an old town on the upper waters of the Hoogli; Jessor, the agricultural
capital of its lower delta; and afterwards Monghyr, Berhampore, Moorshedabad,
Dacca, Chittagong, and Assam. The Bhootan missionaries were plundered and
driven out. The Hindostan mission soon included Gaya, Patna, Deegah,
Ghazeepore, Benares, Allahabad, Cawnpore, Ajmer, and Delhi itself. From
Nagpoor, in the very centre of India, and Surat to the north of Bombay, Carey
sought to bring Marathas and Goojaratees under the yoke of Christ. China, where
the East India Company was still master, was cared for by the press, as we
shall see. Not content with the continent of Asia, Carey’s mission, at once
forced by the intolerance which refused to allow new missionaries to land in
India proper, and led by the invitations of Sir Stamford Raffles, extended to
Java and Amboyna, Penang, Ceylon, and even Mauritius. The elaborate review of
their position, signed by the three faithful men of Serampore, at the close of
1817, amazes the reader at once by the magnitude and variety of the operations,
the childlike modesty of the record, and the heroism of the toil which supplied
the means.
At
the time of the organisation into the Five United Missions the staff of workers
had grown to be thirty strong. From England there were nine surviving:--Carey,
Marshman, Ward, Chamberlain, Mardon, Moore, Chater, Rowe, and Robinson. Raised
up in India itself there were seven--the two sons of Carey, Felix and William;
Fernandez, his first convert at Dinapoor; Peacock and Cornish, and two
Armenians, Aratoon and Peters; two were on probation for the ministry, Leonard
and Forder. Besides seven Hindoo evangelists also on probation, there were five
survivors of the band of converts called from time to time to the
ministry--Krishna Pal, the first, who is entered on the list as “the beloved”;
Krishna Dass, Ram Mohun, Seeta Ram, and Seeta Dass. Carey’s third son Jabez was
soon to become the most advanced of the three brothers away in far Amboyna. His
father had long prayed, and besought others to pray, that he too might be a
missionary. For the last fifteen years of his life Jabez was his closest and
most valued correspondent.
But
only less dear than his own sons to the heart of the father, already in 1817
described in an official letter as “our aged brother Carey,” were the native
missionaries and pastors, his sons in the faith. He sent forth the educated
Petumber Singh, first in November 1802, to his countrymen at Sooksagar, and
“gave him a suitable and solemn charge: the opportunity was very pleasant.” In
May 1803 Krishna Pal was similarly set apart. At the same time the young Brahman, Krishna
Prosad, “delivered his first sermon in Bengali, much to the satisfaction of our
brethren.” Six months after, Ward reports of him in Dinapoor:--“The eyes of the people were fixed listening to Prosad; he is becoming
eloquent.” In 1804 their successful probation resulted in their formal
ordination by prayer and the laying on of the hands of the brethren, when Carey
addressed them from the divine words, “As my Father hath sent me so send I
you,” and all commemorated the Lord’s death till He come. Krishna Dass was
imprisoned unjustly, for a debt which he had paid, but “he did not cease to
declare to the native men in power that he was a Christian, when they gnashed
upon him with their teeth. He preached almost all night to the prisoners, who
heard the word with eagerness.” Two years after he was ordained, Carey charged
him as Paul had written to Timothy, “in the sight of God and of Christ Jesus,
who shall judge the quick and the dead,” to be instant in season and out of
season, to reprove, rebuke, exhort with all long-suffering and teaching. Ram
Mohun was a Brahman, the fruit of old Petumber’s ministry, and had his ability
as a student and preacher of the Scriptures consecrated to Christ on the death
of Krishna Prosad, while the missionaries thus saw again answered the
invocation they had sung, in rude strains, in the ship which brought them to
India:--
“Bid
Brahmans preach the heavenly word
Beneath the banian’s shade;
Oh let the Hindoo feel its power
And grace his soul pervade.”
So
early as 1806 the missionaries thus acknowledged the value of the work of their
native brethren, and made of all the native converts a Missionary Church. In
the delay and even failure to do this of their successors of all Churches we
see the one radical point in which the Church in India has as yet come short of
its duty and its privilege:--
“We
have availed ourselves of the help of native brethren ever since we had one who
dared to speak in the name of Christ, and their exertions have chiefly been the
immediate means by which our church has been increased. But we have lately been
revolving a plan for rendering their labours more extensively useful; namely,
that of sending them out, two and two, without any European brother. It
appeared also a most desirable object to interest in this work, as much as
possible, the whole of the native church among us: indeed, we have had
much in them of this nature to commend. In order, then, more effectually to
answer this purpose, we called an extraordinary meeting of all the brethren on
Friday evening, Aug. 8, 1806, and laid before them the following ideas:--
“1.
That the intention of the Saviour, in calling them out of darkness into
marvellous light, was that they should labour to the uttermost in advancing his
cause among their countrymen.
“2.
That it was therefore their indispensable duty, both collectively and
individually, to strive by every means to bring their countrymen to the
knowledge of the Saviour; that if we, who were strangers, thought it our duty
to come from a country so distant, for this purpose, much more was it incumbent
on them to labour for the same end. This was therefore the grand business of
our lives.
“3.
That if a brother in discharge of this duty went out forty or fifty miles, he
could not labour for his family; it therefore became the church to support
such, seeing they were hindered from supporting themselves, by giving
themselves wholly to that work in which it was equally the duty of all to take
a share.
“4.
We therefore proposed to unite the support of itinerant brethren with the care
of the poor, and to throw them both upon the church fund, as being both, at
least in a heathen land, equally the duty of a church.
“Every
one of these ideas our native brethren entered into with the greatest readiness
and the most cordial approbation.”
Carey’s
scheme so early as 1810 included not only the capital of the Great Mogul, Surat
far to the west, and Maratha Nagpoor to the south, but Lahore, where Ranjeet
Singh had consolidated the Sikh power, Kashmeer, and even Afghanistan to which
he had sent the Pushtoo Bible. To set Chamberlain free for this enterprise he
sent his second son William to relieve him as missionary in charge of Cutwa. “This
would secure the gradual perfection of the version of the Scriptures in the
Sikh language, would introduce the Gospel among the people, and would open a
way for introducing it into Kashmeer, and eventually to the Afghans under whose
dominion Kashmeer at present is.” Carey and his two colleagues took possession
for Christ of the principal centres of Hindoo and Mohammedan influence in India
only because they were unoccupied, and provided translations of the Bible into
the principal tongues, avowedly as a preparation for other missionary agencies.
All over India and the far East he thus pioneered the way of the Lord, as he
had written to Ryland when first he settled in Serampore:--“It is very probable
we may be only as pioneers to prepare the way for most successful missionaries,
who perhaps may not be at liberty to attend to those preparatory labours in
which we have been occupied--the translation and printing of the Scriptures,”
etc. His heart was enlarged like his Master’s on earth, and hence his humbleness
of mind. When the Church Missionary Society, for instance, occupied Agra as their first
station in India, he sent the Baptist missionary thence to Allahabad. To
Benares “Brother William Smith, called in Orissa under Brother John Peters,”
the Armenian, was sent owing to his acquaintance with the Hindi language; he
was the means of bringing to the door of the Kingdom that rich Brahman Raja Jay
Narain Ghosal, whom he encouraged to found in 1817 the Church Mission College
there which bears the name of this “almost Christian” Hindoo, who was
“exceedingly desirous of diffusing light among his own countrymen.”
The
most striking illustrations of this form of Carey’s self-sacrifice are,
however, to be found outside of India as it then was, in the career of his other
two sons in Burma and the Spice Islands. The East India Company’s panic on the
Vellore mutiny led Carey to plan a mission to Burma, just as he had been guided
to settle in Danish Serampore ten years before. The Government of India had
doubled his salary as Bengali, Marathi, and Sanskrit Professor, and thus had
unconsciously supplied the means. Since 1795 the port of Rangoon had been
opened to the British, although Colonel Symes had been insulted eight years
after, during his second embassy to Ava. Rangoon, wrote the accurate Carey to
Fuller in November 1806, is about ten days’ sail from Calcutta. “The Burman
empire is about eight hundred miles long, lying contiguous to Bengal on the
east; but is inaccessible by land, on account of the mountains covered with
thick forests which run between the two countries. The east side of this empire
borders upon China, Cochin China, and Tongking, and may afford us the
opportunity ultimately of introducing the Gospel into those countries. They are
quite within our reach, and the Bible in Chinese will be understood by them
equally as well as by the Chinese themselves. About twenty chapters of Matthew
are translated into that language, and three of our family have made
considerable progress in it.”
This
was the beginning of Reformed missions to Eastern Asia. A year was to pass
before Dr. Robert Morrison landed at Macao. From those politically aggressive
and therefore opposed Jesuit missions, which alone had worked in Anam up to
this time, a persecuted bishop was about to find an asylum at Serampore, and to
use its press and its purse for the publication of his Dictionarium
Anamitico-Latinum. The French have long sought to seize an empire there.
That, at its best, must prove far inferior to the marvellous province and
Christian Church of Burma, of which Carey laid the foundation. Judson, and the
Governors Durand, Phayre, Aitchison, and Bernard, Henry Lawrence’s nephew,
built well upon it.
On
24th January 1807 Mardon and Chater went forth, after Carey had charged them
from the words, “And thence sailed to Antioch from whence they had been
recommended to the grace of God, which they fulfilled.” Carey’s eldest son
Felix soon took the place of Mardon. The instructions, which bear the impress
of the sacred scholar’s pen, form a model still for all missionaries. These two
extracts give counsels never more needed than now:--
“4.
With respect to the Burman language, let this occupy your most precious time
and your most anxious solicitude. Do not be content with acquiring this
language superficially, but make it your own, root and branch. To become fluent
in it, you must attentivly listen, with prying curiosity, into the forms of
speech, the construction and accent of the natives. Here all the imitative
powers are wanted; yet these powers and this attention, without continued
effort to use all you acquire, and as fast as you acquire it, will be
comparatively of little use.
“5.
As soon as you shall feel your ground well in this language you may compose a
grammar, and also send us some Scripture tract, for printing; small and plain;
simple Christian instruction, and Gospel invitation, without any thing that can
irritate the most superstitious mind.
“6.
We would recommend you to begin the translation of the Gospel of Mark as soon
as possible, as one of the best and most certain ways of acquiring the
language. This translation will of course be revised again and again. In these
revisions you will be very careful respecting the idiom and construction, that
they be really Burman, and not English. Let your instructor be well acquainted
with the language, and try every word of importance, in every way you can,
before it be admitted...
“In
prosecuting this work, there are two things to which especially we would call
your very close attention, viz. the strictest and most rigid economy, and the
cultivation of brotherly love.
“Remember,
that the money which you will expend is neither ours nor yours, for it has been
consecrated to God; and every unnecessary expenditure will be robbing God, and
appropriating to unnecessary secular uses what is sacred, and consecrated to
Christ and his cause. In building, especially, remember that you are poor men,
and have chosen a life of poverty and self-denial, with Christ and his
missionary servants. If another person is profuse in expenditure, the
consequence is small, because his property would perhaps fall into hands where
it might be devoted to the purposes of iniquity; but missionary funds are in
their very circumstances the most sacred and important of any thing of this
nature on earth. We say not this, Brethren, because we suspect you, or any of
our partners in labour; but we perceive that when you have done all, the
Rangoon mission will lie heavy upon the Missionary Funds, and the field of
exertion is very wide.”
Felix Carey was a medical
missionary of great skill, a printer of the Oriental languages trained by Ward,
and a scholar, especially in Sanskrit and Pali, Bengali and Burman, not
unworthy of his father. He early commended himself to the goodwill of the
Rangoon Viceroy, and was of great use to Captain Canning in the successful
mission from the Governor-General in 1809. At his
intercession the Viceroy gave him the life of a malefactor who had hung for six
hours on the cross. Reporting the incident to Ryland, Dr. Carey wrote that
“crucifixion is not performed on separate crosses, elevated to a considerable
height, after the manner of the Romans; but several posts are erected which are
connected by a cross piece near the top, to which the hands are nailed, and by
another near the bottom, to which the feet are nailed in a horizontal
direction.” He prepared a folio dictionary of Burmese and Pali, translated
several of the Buddhist Sootras into English, and several books of Holy Scripture
into the vernacular. His medical and linguistic skill so commended him to the
king that he was loaded with honours and sent as Burmese ambassador to the
Governor-General in 1814, when he withdrew from the Christian mission. On his
way back up the Irawadi he alone was saved from the wreck of his boat, in which
his second wife and children and the MS. of his dictionary went down. Of this
his eldest son, who “procured His Majesty’s sanction for printing the
Scriptures in the Burman and adjacent languages, which step he highly
approved,” and at the same time “the orders of my rank, which consist of a red
umbrella with an ivory top, gold betel box, gold lefeek cup, and a sword of
state,” the father wrote lamenting to Ryland:--“Felix is shrivelled from a
missionary into an ambassador.” To his third son the sorrowing father
said:--“The honours he has received from the Burmese Government have not been
beneficial to his soul. Felix is certainly not so much esteemed since his visit
as he was before it. It is a very distressing thing to be forced to apologise
for those you love.” Mr. Chater had removed to Ceylon to begin a mission in
Colombo.
In
July 1813, when Felix Carey was in Ava, two young Americans, Adoniram Judson
and his wife Ann, tempest-tossed and fleeing before the persecution of the East
India Company, found shelter in the Mission House at Rangoon. Judson was one of
a band of divinity students of the Congregational Church of New England, whose
zeal had almost compelled the institution of the American Board of Foreign
Missions. He, his wife, and colleague Rice had become Baptists by conviction on
their way to Serampore, to the brotherhood of which they had been commended.
Carey and his colleagues made it “a point to guard against obtruding on
missionary brethren of different sentiments any conversation relative to
baptism;” but Judson himself sent a note to Carey requesting baptism by
immersion. The result was the foundation at Boston of the American Baptist
Missionary Society, which was to win such triumphs in Burma and among the
Karens. For a time, however, Judson was a missionary from Serampore, and
supported by the brotherhood. As such he wrote thus:--
“RANGOON,
Sept. 1, 1814.--Brother Ward wishes to have an idea of the probable
expense of each station; on which I take occasion to say that it would be more
gratifying to me, as presenting a less temptation, and as less dangerous to my
habits of economy and my spiritual welfare, to have a limited monthly
allowance. I fear that, if I am allowed as much as I want, my wants will
enlarge with their gratification, and finally embrace many things, which at
first I should have thought incompatible with economical management, as well as
with that character among the heathen which it becomes the professed followers
of Him who for our sakes became poor, even to sustain. It is better for a
missionary, especially a young man, to have rather too little than rather too
much. Your case, on coming out from England, was quite different from mine. You
had all that there was, and were obliged to make the most of it.
“If
these things meet the ideas of the brethren, I will be obliged to them to say,
what sum, in Sicca Rupees, payable in Bengal, they think sufficient for a small
family in Rangoon--sufficient to meet all common expenses, and indeed all that
will be incurred at present, except that of passages by sea. You have all the
accounts before you, especially of things purchased in Bengal, which I have
not; and from having seen the mission pass through various changes, will be more
competent to make an estimate of expense than I am. And while you are making
this estimate for one family, say also what will be sufficient for two small
families, so that if Brother Rice, or any other should soon join me, it may not
be necessary to bring the subject again under consideration. This sum I will
receive under the same regulations as other stations are subject to, and which
I heartily approve. And if, on experiment, it be found much too large, I shall
be as glad to diminish it, as to have you increase it, if it be found much too
small.
“Sept.
7.--Since writing the above, we have received the distressing intelligence,
that a few days after Mr. Carey left us, and soon after he had reached the brig
(which had previously gone into the great river) on the 31st of August, about
noon, she was overtaken by a squall of wind, upset, and instantly sunk. Those
who could swim, escaped with their lives merely, and those who could not,
perished. Among the saved, were Mr. Carey and most of the Bengalees. Mrs.
Carey, the two children, her women and girls, and several men--in all, ten
persons, perished. Every article of property had been transferred from the
boats to the vessel, and she had just left the place, where she had been long
waiting the arrival of Mr. Carey, and had been under sail about three hours.
Several boats were not far distant; the gold-boat was within sight, but so
instantaneous was the disaster, that not a single thing was saved. Some
attempts were made by the lascars to save Mrs. Carey and William, but they were
unsuccessful. Mr. Carey staid on the shore through the following night; a
neighbouring governor sent him clothes and money; and the next morning he took
the gold-boat, and proceeded up the river. A large boat, on which were several
servants, men and women, beside those that were in the vessel, followed the
gold-boat. The jolly boat has returned here, bringing the surviving lascars.
“The
dreadful situation to which our poor brother was thus reduced in a moment, from
the height of prosperity, fills our minds continually with the greatest
distress. We are utterly unable to afford him the least relief, and can only
pray that this awful dispensation may prove a paternal chastisement from his
Heavenly Father, and be sanctified to his soul.”
While
Judson wrote to Serampore, which he once again visited, leaving the dust of a
child in the mission burial-ground, “I am glad to hear you say that you will
not abandon this mission,” Carey pressed on to the “regions beyond.” Judson
lived till 1850 to found a church and to prepare a Burmese dictionary, grammar,
and translation of the Bible so perfect that revision has hardly been necessary
up to the present day. He and Hough, a printer who joined him, formed
themselves into a brotherhood on the same self-denying principles as that of
Serampore, whom they besought to send them frequent communications to counsel,
strengthen, and encourage them. On 28th September 1814 Judson again wrote to
Carey from Rangoon:--
“DEAR
BROTHER CAREY--If copies of Colebrooke’s Sungskrita Dictionary, and your
Sungskrita Grammar are not too scarce, I earnestly request a copy of each. I
find it will be absolutely necessary for me to pick up a little of the Pali,
chiefly on account of many theological terms, which have been incorporated from
that language into the Burman. I have found a dictionary, which I suppose is
the same as that which Mr. Colebrooke translated, adapted to the Burman system.
This I intend to read. I want also Leyden’s Vocabulary, and a copy or two of
your son’s grammar, when it is completed. I gave your son on his going up to
Ava, my copy of Campbell’s Gospels, together with several other books, all of
which are now lost. The former I chiefly regret, and know not whence I can
procure another copy.
“There
is a vessel now lying here, which is destined to take round an Ambassador from
this Government to Bengal. He expects to go in about a month, as he told me. He
is now waiting for final instructions from Ava. If Felix be really to be sent
to Bengal again, I think it most probable that he will be ordered to accompany
this ambassador.
“Mrs.
J. was on the point of taking passage with Captain Hitchins, to obtain some
medical advice in Bengal; but she has been a little better for a few days, and
has given up the plan for the present. This is a delightful climate. We have
now seen all the seasons, and can therefore judge. The hot weather in March and
April is the chief exception. Nature has done everything for this country; and
the Government is very indulgent to all foreigners. When we see how we are
distinguished above all around, even in point of worldly comforts, we feel that
we want gratitude. O that we may be faithful in the improvement of every mercy,
and patient under every trial which God may have in store for us. We know not
how the Gospel can ever be introduced here: everything, in this respect,
appears as dark as midnight.”
By
1816 Judson had prepared the Gospel of Matthew in Burmese, following up short
tracts “accommodated to the optics of a Burman.”
Carey’s
third son Jabez was clerk to a Calcutta attorney at the time, in 1812, when Dr.
Ryland preached in the Dutch Church, Austin Friars, the anniversary sermon on
the occasion of the removal of the headquarters of the Society to London.
Pausing in the midst of his discourse, after a reference to Carey, the preacher
called on the vast congregation silently to pray for the conversion of Jabez
Carey. The answer came next year in a letter from his father:--“My son Jabez,
who has been articled to an attorney, and has the fairest prospects as to this
world, is become decidedly religious, and prefers the work of the Lord to every
other.” Lord Minto’s expeditions of 1810 and 1811 had captured the islands
swept by the French privateers from Madagascar to Java, and there was soon an
end of the active hostility of the authorities to Christianity. Sir Stamford
Raffles governed Java in the spirit of a Christian statesman. The new
Governor-General, Lord Moira, afterwards Marquis of Hastings, proved to be the
most enlightened and powerful friend the mission had had. In these
circumstances, after the charter of 1813 had removed the legislative excuse for
intolerance, Dr. Carey was asked by the Lieutenant-Governor to send
missionaries and Malay Bibles to the fifty thousand natives of Amboyna. The
Governor-General repeated the request officially. Jabez Carey was baptised,
married, and despatched at the cost of the state before he could be ordained.
Amboyna, it will be perceived, was not in India, but far enough away to give
the still timid
Company little apprehension as to the influence of the missionaries there. The
father’s heart was very full when he sent forth the son:--
“24th
January 1814.--You are now engaging in a most important undertaking, in
which not only you will have our prayers for your success, but those of all who
love our Lord Jesus Christ, and who know of your engagement. I know that a few
hints for your future conduct from a parent who loves you very tenderly will be
acceptable, and I shall therefore now give you them, assured that they will not
be given in vain.
“1st.
Pay the utmost attention at all times to the state of your own mind both
towards God and man: cultivate an intimate acquaintance with your own heart;
labour to obtain a deep sense of your depravity and to trust always in Christ;
be pure in heart, and meditate much upon the pure and holy character of God;
live a life of prayer and devotedness to God; cherish every amiable and right
disposition towards men; be mild, gentle, and unassuming, yet firm and manly.
As soon as you perceive anything wrong in your spirit or behaviour set about
correcting it, and never suppose yourself so perfect as to need no correction.
“2nd.
You are now a married man, be not satisfied with conducting yourself towards
your wife with propriety, but let love to her be the spring of your conduct
towards her. Esteem her highly, and so act that she may be induced thereby to
esteem you highly. The first impressions of love arising from form and beauty
will soon wear off, but the esteem arising from excellency of disposition and
substance of character will endure and increase. Her honour is now yours, and
she cannot be insulted without your being degraded. I hope as soon as you get
on board, and are settled in your cabin, you will begin and end each day by
uniting together to pray and praise God. Let religion always have a place in
your house. If the Lord bless you with children, bring them up in the fear of
God, and be always an example to others of the power of godliness. This advice
I give also to Eliza, and if it is followed you will be happy.
“3rd.
Behave affably and genteelly to all, but not cringingly towards any. Feel that
you are a man, and always act with that dignified sincerity and truth which
will command the esteem of all. Seek not the society of worldly men, but when
called to be with them act and converse with propriety and dignity. To do this
labour to gain a good acquaintance with history, geography, men, and things. A
gentleman is the next best character after a Christian, and the latter includes
the former. Money never makes a gentleman, neither does a fine appearance, but
an enlarged understanding joined to engaging manners.
“4th.
On your arrival at Amboyna your first business must be to wait on Mr. Martin.
You should first send a note to inform him of your arrival, and to inquire when
it will suit him to receive you. Ask his advice upon every occasion of
importance, and communicate freely to him all the steps you take.
“5th.
As soon as you are settled begin your work. Get a Malay who can speak a little
English, and with him make a tour of the island, and visit every school.
Encourage all you see worthy of encouragement, and correct with mildness, yet
with firmness. Keep a journal of the transactions of the schools, and enter
each one under a distinct head therein. Take account of the number of scholars,
the names of the schoolmasters, compare their progress at stated periods, and,
in short, consider this as the work which the Lord has given you to do.
“6th.
Do not, however, consider yourself as a mere superintendent of schools;
consider yourself as the spiritual instructor of the people, and devote
yourself to their good. God has committed the spiritual interests of this
island--20,000 men or more--to you; a vast charge, but He can enable you to be
faithful to it. Revise the catechism, tracts, and school-books used among them,
and labour to introduce among them sound doctrine and genuine piety. Pray with
them as soon as you can, and labour after a gift to preach to them. I expect
you will have much to do with them respecting baptism. They all think infant
sprinkling right, and will apply to you to baptise their children; you must say
little till you know something of the language, and then prove to them from Scripture
what is the right mode of baptism and who are the proper persons to be
baptised. Form them into Gospel churches when you meet with a few who truly
fear God; and as soon as you see any fit to preach to others, call them to the
ministry and settle them with the churches. You must baptise and administer the
Lord’s Supper according to your own discretion when there is a proper occasion
for it. Avoid indolence and love of ease, and never attempt to act the part of
the great and gay in this world.
“7th.
Labour incessantly to become a perfect master of the Malay language. In order
to this, associate with the natives, walk out with them, ask the name of
everything you see, and note it down; visit their houses, especially when any
of them are
sick. Every night arrange the words you get in alphabetical order. Try to talk
as soon as you get a few words, and be as much as possible one of them. A
course of kind and attentive conduct will gain their esteem and confidence and
give you an opportunity of doing much good.
“8th.
You will soon learn from Mr. Martin the situation and disposition of the
Alfoors or aboriginal inhabitants, and will see what can be done for them. Do
not unnecessarily expose your life, but incessantly contrive some way of giving
them the word of life.
“9th.
I come now to things of inferior importance, but which I hope you will not
neglect. I wish you to learn correctly the number, size, and geography of the
islands; the number and description of inhabitants; their customs and manners,
and everything of note relative to them; and regularly communicate these things
to me.
“Your
great work, my dear Jabez, is that of a Christian minister. You would have been
solemnly set apart thereto if you could have stayed long enough to have
permitted it. The success of your labours does not depend upon an outward
ceremony, nor does your right to preach the Gospel or administer the ordinances
of the Gospel depend on any such thing, but only on the Divine call expressed
in the Word of God. The Church has, however, in their intentions and wishes
borne a testimony to the grace given to you, and will not cease to pray for you
that you may be successful. May you be kept from all temptations, supported
under every trial, made victorious in every conflict; and may our hearts be
mutually gladdened with accounts from each other of the triumphs of Divine
grace. God has conferred a great favour upon you in committing to you this
ministry. Take heed to it therefore in the Lord that thou fulfil it. We shall
often meet at the throne of grace. Write me by every opportunity, and tell
Eliza to write to your mother.
“Now,
my dear Jabez, I commit you both to God, and to the word of His grace, which is
able to make you perfect in the knowledge of His will. Let that word be near
your heart. I give you both up to God, and should I never more see you on earth
I trust we shall meet with joy before His throne of glory at last.”
Under
both the English and the Dutch for a time, to whom the island was restored,
Jabez Carey proved to be a successful missionary, while he supported the
mission by his official income as superintendent of schools and second member
of the College of Justice. The island contained 18,000 native Christians of the
Dutch compulsory type, such as we found in Ceylon on taking it over. Thus by
the labours of himself, his sons, his colleagues, and his children in the
faith, William Carey saw the Gospel, the press, and the influence of a divine philanthropy
extending among Mohammedans, Buddhists, and Hindoos, from the shores of the
Pacific Ocean west to the Arabian Sea.
CHAPTER
VIII
CAREY’S
FAMILY AND FRIENDS
1807-1812
The
type of a Christian gentleman--Carey and his first wife--His second marriage--The
Lady Rumohr--His picture of their married life--His nearly fatal illness when
forty-eight years old--His meditations and dreams--Aldeen House--Henry Martyn’s
pagoda--Carey, Marshman, and the Anglican chaplains in the pagoda--Corrie’s
account of the Serampore Brotherhood--Claudius Buchanan and his Anglican
establishment--Improvement in Anglo-Indian Society--Carey’s literary and
scientific friends--Desire in the West for a likeness of Carey--Home’s portrait
of him--Correspondence with his son William on missionary consecration,
Buonaparte, botany, the missionary a soldier, Felix and Burma, hunting, the
temporal power of the Pope, the duty of reconciliation--Carey’s descendants.
“A
GENTLEMAN is the next best character after a Christian, and the latter includes
the former,” were the father’s words to the son whom he was sending forth as a
Christian missionary and state superintendent of schools. Carey wrote from his
own experience, and he unwittingly painted his own character. The peasant
bearing of his early youth showed itself throughout his life in a certain
shyness, which gave a charm to his converse with old and young. Occasionally,
as in a letter which he wrote to his friend Pearce of Birmingham, at a time
when he did not know whether his distant correspondent was alive or dead, he
burst forth into an unrestrained enthusiasm of affection and service. But his
was rather the even tenor of domestic devotion and friendly duty, unbroken by
passion or coldness, and ever lighted up by a steady geniality. The colleagues
who were associated with him for the third of a century worshipped him in the
old English sense of the word. The younger committee-men and missionaries who
came to the front on the death of Fuller, Sutcliff, and Ryland, in all their
mistaken conflicts with these colleagues, always tried to separate Carey from
those they denounced, till even his saintly spirit burst forth into wrath at
the double wrong thus done to his coadjutors. His intercourse with the
chaplains and bishops of the Church of England, and with the missionaries of
other Churches and societies, was as loving in its degree as his relations to
his own people. With men of the world, from the successive Governor-Generals,
from Wellesley, Hastings, and Bentinck, down to the scholars, merchants, and
planters with whom he became associated for the public good, William Carey was
ever the saint and the gentleman whom it was a privilege to know.
In
nothing perhaps was Carey’s true Christian gentlemanliness so seen as in his
relations with his first wife, above whom grace and culture had immeasurably
raised him, while she never learned to share his aspirations or to understand
his ideals. Not only did she remain to the last a peasant woman, with a
reproachful tongue, but the early hardships of Calcutta and the fever and
dysentery of Mudnabati clouded the last twelve years of her life with madness.
Never did reproach or complaint escape his lips regarding either her or Thomas,
whose eccentric impulses and oft-darkened spirit were due to mania also. Of
both he was the tender nurse and guardian when, many a time, the ever-busy
scholar would fain have lingered at his desk or sought the scanty sleep which
his jealous devotion to his Master’s business allowed him. The brotherhood
arrangement, the common family, Ward’s influence over the boys, and Hannah
Marshman’s housekeeping relieved him of much that his wife’s illness had thrown
upon him at Mudnabati, so that a colleague describes him, when he was
forty-three years of age, as still looking young in spite of the few hairs on
his head, after eleven years in Lower Bengal of work such as never Englishman
had before him. But almost from the first day of his early married life he had
never known the delight of daily converse with a wife able to enter into his
scholarly pursuits, and ever to stimulate him in his heavenly quest. When the
eldest boy, Felix, had left for Burma in 1807 the faithful sorrowing husband
wrote to him:--“Your poor mother grew worse and worse from the time you left
us, and died on the 7th December about seven o’clock in the evening. During her
illness she was almost always asleep, and I suppose during the fourteen days
that she lay in a severe fever she was not more than twenty-four hours awake.
She was buried the next day in the missionary burying-ground.”
About
the same time that Carey himself settled in Serampore there arrived the Lady
Rumohr. She built a house on the Hoogli bank immediately below that of the
missionaries, whose society she sought, and by whom she was baptised. On the
9th May 1808 she became Carey’s wife; and in May 1821 she too was removed by death in
her sixty-first year, after thirteen years of unbroken happiness.
Charlotte
Emilia, born in the same year as Carey in the then Danish duchy of Schleswick,
was the only child of the Chevalier de Rumohr, who married the Countess of
Alfeldt, only representative of a historic family. Her wakefulness when a
sickly girl of fifteen saved the whole household from destruction by fire, but
she herself became so disabled that she could never walk up or down stairs. She
failed to find complete recovery in the south of Europe, and her father’s
friend, Mr. Anker, a director of the Danish East India Company, gave her
letters to his brother, then Governor of Tranquebar, in the hope that the
climate of India might cause her relief. The Danish ship brought her first to
Serampore, where Colonel Bie introduced her to the brotherhood, and there she
resolved to remain. She knew the principal languages of Europe; a copy of the Pensées of Pascal, given to her by Mr. Anker before she
sailed, for the first time quickened her conscience. She speedily learned
English, that she might join the missionaries in public worship. The barren
orthodoxy of the Lutheranism in which she had been brought up had made her a
sceptic. This soon gave way to the evangelical teaching of the same apostle who
had brought Luther himself to Christ. She became a keen student of the
Scriptures, then an ardent follower of Jesus Christ.
On
her marriage to Dr. Carey, in May 1808, she made over her house to the mission,
and when, long after, it became famous as the office of the weekly Friend of
India, the rent was sacredly devoted to the assistance of native preachers.
She learned Bengali that she might be as a mother to the native Christian
families. She was her husband’s counsellor in all that related to the extension
of the varied enterprise of the brethren. Especially did she make the education
of Hindoo girls her own charge, both at Serampore and Cutwa. Her leisure she gave
to the reading of French Protestant writers, such as Saurin and Du Moulin. She
admired, wrote Carey, “Massillon’s language, his deep knowledge of the human
heart, and his intrepidity in reproving sin; but felt the greatest
dissatisfaction with his total neglect of his Saviour, except when He is
introduced to give efficacy to works of human merit. These authors she read in
their native language, that being more familiar to her than English. She in
general enjoyed much of the consolations of religion. Though so much afflicted,
a pleasing cheerfulness generally pervaded her conversation. She indeed
possessed great activity of mind. She was constantly out with the dawn of the
morning when the weather permitted, in her little carriage drawn by one bearer;
and again in the evening, as soon as the sun was sufficiently low. She thus
spent daily nearly three hours in the open air. It was probably this vigorous
and regular course which, as the means, carried her beyond the age of
threescore years (twenty-one of them spent in India), notwithstanding the
weakness of her constitution.”
It
is a pretty picture, the delicate invalid lady, drawn along the mall morning
and evening, to enjoy the river breeze, on her way to and from the schools and
homes of the natives. But her highest service was, after all, to her husband,
who was doing a work for India and for humanity, equalled by few, if any. When,
on one occasion, they were separated for a time while she sought for health at
Monghyr, she wrote to him the tenderest yet most courtly love-letters.
“MY
DEAREST LOVE,--I felt very much in parting with thee, and feel much in being so
far from thee...I am sure thou wilt be happy and thankful on account of my
voice, which is daily getting better, and thy pleasure greatly adds to mine
own.
“I
hope you will not think I am writing too often; I rather trust you will be glad
to hear of me...Though my journey is very pleasant, and the good state of my
health, the freshness of the air, and the variety of objects enliven my
spirits, yet I cannot help longing for you. Pray, my love, take care of your
health that I may have the joy to find you well.
“I
thank thee most affectionately, my dearest love, for thy kind letter. Though
the journey is very useful to me, I cannot help feeling much to be so distant
from you, but I am much with you in my thoughts...The Lord be blessed for the
kind protection He has given to His cause in a time of need. May He still
protect and guide and bless His dear cause, and give us all hearts growing in
love and zeal...I felt very much affected in parting with thee. I see plainly
it would not do to go far from you; my heart cleaves to you. I need not say (for
I hope you know my heart is not insensible) how much I feel your kindness in
not minding any expense for the recovery of my health. You will rejoice to hear
me talk in my old way, and not in that whispering manner.
“I
find so much pleasure in writing to you, my love, that I cannot help doing it.
I was nearly disconcerted by Mrs.--laughing at my writing so often; but then, I
thought, I feel so much pleasure in receiving your letters that I may hope you do the same. I thank thee,
my love, for thy kind letter. I need not say that the serious part of it was
welcome to me, and the more as I am deprived of all religious intercourse...I
shall greatly rejoice, my love, in seeing thee again; but take care of your
health that I may find you well. I need not say how much you are in my thoughts
day and night.”
His
narrative of their intercourse, written after her death, lets in a flood of
light on his home life:--
“During
the thirteen years of her union with Dr. Carey, they had enjoyed the most
entire oneness of mind, never having a single circumstance which either of them
wished to conceal from the other. Her solicitude for her husband’s health and
comfort was unceasing. They prayed and conversed together on those things which
form the life of personal religion, without the least reserve; and enjoyed a
degree of conjugal happiness while thus continued to each other, which can only
arise from a union of mind grounded on real religion. On the whole, her lot in
India was altogether a scene of mercy. Here she was found of the Saviour,
gradually ripened for glory, and after having her life prolonged beyond the
expectation of herself and all who knew her, she was released from this mortal
state almost without the consciousness of pain, and, as we most assuredly
believe, had ‘an abundant entrance ministered unto her into the kingdom of our
Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ.’”
When,
on 24th June 1809, Carey announced at the dinner table that he had that morning
finished the Bengali translation of the whole Bible, and he was asked how much
more he thought of doing, he answered: “The work I have allotted to myself, in
translating, will take me about twenty years.” But he had kept the bow too long
and too tightly bent, and it threatened to snap. That evening he was seized
with bilious fever, and on the eighteenth day thereafter his life was despaired
of. “The goodness of God is eminently conspicuous in raising up our beloved
brother Carey,” wrote Marshman. “God has raised him up again and restored him
to his labours; may he live to accomplish all that is in his heart,” wrote
Rowe. He was at once at his desk again, in college and in his study. “I am this
day forty-eight years old,” he wrote to Ryland on the 17th August, and sent him
the following letters, every line of which reveals the inner soul of the
writer:--
“CALCUTTA,
16th August 1809.--I did not expect, about a month ago, ever to
write to you again. I was then ill of a severe fever, and for a week together
scarcely any hopes were entertained of my life. One or two days I was supposed
to be dying, but the Lord has graciously restored me; may it be that I may live
more than ever to His glory. Whilst I was ill I had scarcely any such thing as
thought belonging to me, but, excepting seasons of delirium, seemed to be
nearly stupid; perhaps some of this arose from the weak state to which I was
reduced, which was so great that Dr. Hare, one of the most eminent physicians
in Calcutta, who was consulted about it, apprehended more danger from that than
from the fever. I, however, had scarcely a thought of death or eternity, or of
life, or anything belonging thereto. In my delirium, greatest part of which I
perfectly remember, I was busily employed in carrying a commission from God to
all the princes and governments in the world, requiring them instantly to
abolish every political establishment of religion, and to sell the parish and
other churches to the first body of Christians that would purchase them. Also
to declare war infamous, to esteem all military officers as men who had sold
themselves to destroy the human race, to extend this to all those dead men
called heroes, defenders of their country, meritorious officers, etc.13 I was
attended by angels in all my excursions, and was universally successful. A few
princes in Germany were refractory, but my attendants struck them dead
instantly. I pronounced the doom of Rome to the Pope, and soon afterwards all
the territory about Rome, the March of Ancona, the great city and all its
riches sank into that vast bed of burning lava which heats Nero’s bath. These
two considerations were the delirious wanderings of the mind, but I hope to
feel their force, to pray and strive for their accomplishment to the end of my
life. But it is now time to attend to something not merely ideal.
“The
state of the world occupied my thoughts more and more; I mean as it relates to
the spread of the Gospel. The harvest truly is great, and labourers bear
scarcely any proportion thereto. I was forcibly struck this morning with
reading our Lord’s reply to His disciples, John iv. When He had told them that
He had meat to eat the world knew not of, and that His meat was to do the will
of His Father and to finish His work, He said, ‘Say not ye there are three
months and then cometh harvest?’ He by this plainly intended to call their attention to the conduct of
men when harvest was approaching, for that being the season upon which all the
hopes of men hang for temporal supplies, they provide men and measures in time
for securing it. Afterwards directing their attention to that which so occupied
His own as to be His meat and drink, He said, ‘Lift up your eyes and look upon
the fields (of souls to be gathered in), for they are white already to
harvest.’ After so many centuries have elapsed and so many fields full of this
harvest have been lost for want of labourers to gather it in, shall we not at
last reflect seriously on our duty? Hindostan requires ten thousand ministers
of the Gospel, at the lowest calculation, China as many, and you may easily
calculate for the rest of the world. I trust that many will eventually be
raised up here, but be that as it may the demands for missionaries are pressing
to a degree seldom realised. England has done much, but not the hundredth part
of what she is bound to do. In so great a want of ministers ought not every
church to turn its attention chiefly to the raising up and maturing of
spiritual gifts with the express design of sending them abroad? Should not this
be a specific matter of prayer, and is there not reason to labour hard to
infuse this spirit into the churches?
“A
mission into Siam would be comparatively easy of introduction and support on
account of its vicinity to Prince of Wales Island, from which vessels can often
go in a few hours. A mission to Pegu and another to Arakan would not be
difficult of introduction, they being both within the Burman dominions,
Missions to Assam and Nepal should be speedily tried. Brother Robinson is going
to Bhootan. I do not know anything about the facility with which missions could
be introduced into Cochin China, Cambodia, and Laos, but were the trial made I
believe difficulties would remove. It is also very desirable that the Burman
mission should be strengthened. There is no full liberty of conscience, and
several stations might be occupied; even the borders of China might be visited
from that country if an easier entrance into the heart of the country could not
be found. I have not mentioned Sumatra, Java, the Moluccas, the Philippines, or
Japan, but all these countries must be supplied with missionaries. This is a
very imperfect sketch of the wants of Asia only, without including the
Mahometan countries; but Africa and South America call as loudly for help, and
the greatest part of Europe must also be holpen by the Protestant churches,
being nearly as destitute of real godliness as any heathen country on the
earth. What a pressing call, then, is here for labourers in the spiritual
harvest, and what need that the attention of all the churches in England and
America should be drawn to this very object!”
Two
years after the establishment of the mission at Serampore, David Brown, the
senior chaplain and provost of Fort William College, took possession of Aldeen
House, which he occupied till the year of his death in 1812. The house is the
first in the settlement reached by boat from Calcutta. Aldeen is five minutes’
walk south of the Serampore Mission House, and a century ago there was only a
park between them. The garden slopes down to the noble river, and commands the
beautiful country seat of Barrackpore, which Lord Wellesley had just built. The
house itself is embosomed in trees, the mango, the teak, and the graceful
bamboo. Just below it, but outside of Serampore, are the deserted temple of
Bullubpoor and the Ghat of the same name, a fine flight of steps up which
thousands of pilgrims flock every June to the adjoining shrine and monstrous
car of Jagganath. David Brown had not been long in Aldeen when he secured the
deserted temple and converted it into a Christian oratory, ever since known as
Henry Martyn’s Pagoda. For ten years Aldeen and the pagoda became the
meeting-place of Carey and his Nonconformist friends, with Claudius Buchanan,
Martyn, Bishop Corrie, Thomason, and the little band of evangelical Anglicans
who, under the protection of Lords Wellesley and Hastings, sweetened
Anglo-Indian society, and made the names of “missionary” and of “chaplain”
synonymous. Here too there gathered, as also to the Mission House higher up,
many a civilian and officer who sought the charms of that Christian family life
which they had left behind. A young lieutenant commemorated these years when
Brown was removed, in a pleasing elegy, which Charles Simeon published in the Memorials
of his friend. Many a traveller from the far West still visits the spot, and
recalls the memories of William Carey and Henry Martyn, of Marshman and
Buchanan, of Ward and Corrie, which linger around the fair scene. When first we
saw it the now mutilated ruin was perfect, and under the wide-spreading banian
tree behind a Brahman was reciting, for a day and a night, the verses of the
Mahabharata epic to thousands of listening Hindoos.
“Long,
Hoogli, has thy sullen stream
Been doomed the cheerless shores to lave;
Long has the Suttee’s baneful gleam
Pale glimmered o’er thy midnight wave.
“Yet gladdened seemed to
flow thy tide
Where opens on the view--Aldeen;
For there to grace thy palmy side
Loved England’s purest joys were seen.
“Yon
dome, ‘neath which in former days
Grim idols marked the pagan shrine,
Has swelled the notes of pious praise,
Attuned to themes of love divine.”
We
find this allusion to the place in Carey’s correspondence with Dr. Ryland:--“20th
January 1807.--It would have done your heart good to have joined us at
our meetings at the pagoda. From that place we have successively recommended
Dr. Taylor to the work of the Lord at Bombay, Mr. Martyn to his at Dinapoor,
Mr. Corrie to his at Chunar, Mr. Parsons to his at Burhampore, Mr. Des Granges
to his at Vizagapatam, and our two brethren to theirs at Rangoon, and from
thence we soon expect to commend Mr. Thomason to his at Madras. In these
meetings the utmost harmony prevails and a union of hearts unknown between
persons of different denominations in England.” Dr. Taylor and Mr. Des Granges
were early missionaries of the London Society; the Rangoon brethren were
Baptists; the others were Church of England chaplains. Sacramentarianism and
sacerdotalism had not then begun to afflict the Church of India. There were
giants in those days, in Bengal, worthy of Carey and of the one work in which
all were the servants of one Master.
Let
us look a little more closely at Henry Martyn’s Pagoda. It is now a picturesque
ruin, which the peepul tree that is entwined among its fine brick masonry, and
the crumbling river-bank, may soon cause to disappear for ever. The exquisite
tracery of the moulded bricks may be seen, but not the few figures that are
left of the popular Hindoo idols just where the two still perfect arches begin
to spring. The side to the river has already fallen down, and with it the open
platform overhanging the bank on which the missionary sat in the cool of the
morning and evening, and where he knelt to pray for the people. We have
accompanied many a visitor there, from Dr. Duff to Bishop Cotton, and John
Lawrence, and have rarely seen one unmoved. This pagoda had been abandoned long
before by the priests of Radhabullub, because the river had encroached to a
point within 300 feet of it, the limit within which no Brahman is allowed to receive
a gift or take his food. The little black doll of an idol, which is famous
among Hindoos alike for its sanctity and as a work of art--for had it not been
miraculously wafted to this spot like the Santa Casa to Loretto?--was removed
with great pomp to a new temple after it had paid a visit to Clive’s moonshi,
the wealthy Raja Nobokissen in Calcutta, who sought to purchase it outright.
In
this cool old pagoda Henry Martyn, on one of his earliest visits to Aldeen
after his arrival as a chaplain in 1806, found an appropriate residence. Under
the vaulted roof of the shrine a place of prayer and praise was fitted up with
an organ, so that, as he wrote, “the place where once devils were worshipped
has now become a Christian oratory.” Here, too, he laid his plans for the
evangelisation of the people. When suffering from one of his moods of
depression as to his own state, he thus writes of this place:--“I began to pray
as on the verge of eternity; and the Lord was pleased to break my hard heart. I
lay in tears, interceding for the unfortunate natives of this country; thinking
within myself that the most despicable soodra of India was of as much value in
the sight of God as the King of Great Britain.” It was from such supplication
that he was once roused by the blaze of a Suttee’s funeral pyre, on which he
found that the living widow had been consumed with the dead before he could
interfere. He could hear the hideous drums and gongs and conch-shells of the
temple to which Radhabullub had been removed. There he often tried to turn his
fellow-creatures to the worship of the one God, from their prostrations “before
a black image placed in a pagoda, with lights burning around it,” whilst, he
says, he “shivered as if standing, as it were, in the neighbourhood of hell.” It
was in the deserted pagoda that Brown, Corrie, and Parsons met with him to
commend him to God before he set out for his new duties at Dinapoor. “My soul,”
he writes of this occasion, “never yet had such divine enjoyment. I felt a
desire to break from the body, and join the high praises of the saints above.
May I go ‘in the strength of this many days.’ Amen.” “I found my heaven begun
on earth. No work so sweet as that of praying and living wholly to the service
of God.” And as he passed by the Mission House on his upward voyage, with true
catholicity “Dr. Marshman could not resist joining the party: and after going a
little way, left them with prayer.” Do we wonder that these men have left their
mark on India?
As
years went by, the temple, thus consecrated as a Christian oratory, became
degraded in other hands. The brand “pagoda distillery” for a time came to be
known as marking the rum manufactured
there. The visits of so many Christian pilgrims to the spot, and above all, the
desire expressed by Lord Lawrence when Governor-General
to see it, led the Hindoo family who own the pagoda to leave it at least as a
simple ruin.
Corrie,
afterwards the first bishop of Madras, describes the marriage of Des Granges in
the oratory, and gives us a glimpse of life in the Serampore Mission House:--
“1806.--Calcutta
strikes me as the most magnificent city in the world; and I am made most happy
by the hope of being instrumental to the eternal good of many. A great
opposition, I find, is raised against Martyn and the principles he
preaches...Went up to Serampore yesterday, and in the evening was present at
the marriage of Mr. Des Granges. Mr. Brown entered into the concern with much
interest. The pagoda was fixed on, and lighted up for the celebration of the
wedding; at eight o’clock the parties came from the Mission House [at
Serampore], attended by most of the family. Mr. Brown commenced with the hymn,
‘Come, gracious Spirit, heavenly dove!’ A divine influence seemed to attend us,
and most delightful were my sensations. The circumstance of so many being
engaged in spreading the glad tidings of salvation,--the temple of an idol
converted to the purpose of Christian worship, and the Divine presence felt
among us,--filled me with joy unspeakable. After the marriage service of the
Church of England, Mr. Brown gave out ‘the Wedding Hymn’; and after signing
certificates of the marriage we adjourned to the house, where Mr. Brown had
provided supper. Two hymns given out by Mr. Marshman were felt very powerfully.
He is a most lively, sanguine missionary; his conversation made my heart burn
within me, and I find desires of spreading the Gospel growing stronger daily,
and my zeal in the cause more ardent...I went to the Mission House, and supped
at the same table with about fifty native converts. The triumph of the Cross
was most evident in breaking down their prejudices, and uniting them with those
who formerly were an abomination in their eyes. After supper they sang a
Bengali hymn, many of them with tears of joy; and they concluded with prayer in
Bengali, with evident earnestness and emotion. My own feelings were too big for
utterance. O may the time be hastened when every tongue shall confess Jesus
Christ, to the glory of God the Father!
“On
Friday evening [Oct. 10th], we had a meeting in the pagoda, at which almost all
the missionaries, some of their wives, and Captain Wickes attended, with a view
to commend Martyn to the favour and protection of God in his work. The Divine
presence was with us. I felt more than it would have been proper to express.
Mr. Brown commenced with a hymn and prayer, Mr. Des Granges succeeded him, with
much devotion and sweetness of expression: Mr. Marshman followed, and dwelt
particularly on the promising appearance of things; and, with much humility,
pleaded God’s promises for the enlargement of Zion; with many petitions for Mr.
Brown and his family. The service was concluded by Mr. Carey, who was earnest
in prayer for Mr. Brown: the petition that ‘having laboured for many years
without encouragement or support, in the evening it might be light,’ seemed
much to affect his own mind, and greatly impressed us all. Afterwards we supped
together at Mr. Brown’s...
“13th
Oct.--I came to Serampore to dinner. Had a pleasant sail up the river: the time
passed agreeably in conversation. In the evening a fire was kindled on the
opposite bank; and we soon perceived that it was a funeral pile, on which the
wife was burning with the dead body of her husband. It was too dark to
distinguish the miserable victim...On going out to walk with Martyn to the
pagoda, the noise so unnatural, and so little calculated to excite joy, raised
in my mind an awful sense of the presence and influence of evil spirits.”
Corrie
married the daughter of Mrs. Ellerton, who knew Serampore and Carey well. It
was Mr. Ellerton who, when an indigo-planter at Malda, opened the first Bengali
school, and made the first attempt at translating the Bible into that
vernacular. His young wife, early made a widow, witnessed accidentally the duel
in which Warren Hastings shot Philip Francis. She was an occasional visitor at
Aldeen, and took part in the pagoda services. Fifty years afterwards, not long
before her death at eighty-seven, Bishop Wilson, whose guest she was, wrote of
her: “She made me take her to Henry Martyn’s pagoda. She remembers the
neighbourhood, and Gharetty Ghat and House in Sir Eyre Coote’s time (1783). The
ancient Governor of Chinsurah and his fat Dutch wife are still in her mind.
When she visited him with her first husband (she was then sixteen) the old
Dutchman cried out, ‘Oh, if you would find me such a nice little wife I would
give you ten thousand rupees.’”
It
was in Martyn’s pagoda that Claudius Buchanan first broached his plan of an
ecclesiastical establishment for India, and invited the discussion of it by
Carey and his colleagues. Such a scheme came naturally from one who was the
grandson of a Presbyterian elder of the Church of Scotland, converted in the
Whitefield revival at Cambuslang. It had been suggested first by Bishop
Porteous when he reviewed the Company’s acquisitions in Asia. It was encouraged
by Lord Wellesley, who was scandalised on his arrival in India by the
godlessness of the civil servants and the absence of practically any provision
for the Christian worship and instruction of its officers and soldiers, who
were all their lives without religion, not a tenth of them ever returning home.
Carey thus wrote, at Ryland’s request, of the proposal, which resulted in the
arrival in Calcutta of
Bishop Middleton and Dr. Bryce in 1814:--“I
have no opinion of Dr. Buchanan’s scheme for a religious establishment here,
nor could I from memory point out what is exceptionable in his memoir. All his
representations must be taken with some grains of allowance.” When, in the
Aldeen discussions, Dr. Buchanan told Marshman that the temple lands would
eventually answer for the established churches and the Brahmans’ lands for the
chaplains, the stout Nonconformist replied with emphasis, “You will never
obtain them.” We may all accept the conversion of the idol shrine into a place
of prayer--as Gregory I. taught Augustine of Canterbury to transform heathen
temples into Christian churches--as presaging the time when the vast temple and
mosque endowments will be devoted by the people themselves to their own moral
if not spiritual good through education, both religious and secular.
The
change wrought in seventeen years by Carey and such associates as these on
society in Bengal, both rich and poor, became marked by the year 1810. We find
him writing of it thus:--“When I arrived I knew of no person who cared about
the Gospel except Mr. Brown, Mr. Udny, Mr. Creighton, Mr. Grant, and Mr. Brown
an indigo-planter, besides Brother Thomas and myself. There might be more, and
probably were, though unknown to me. There are now in India thirty-two
ministers of the Gospel. Indeed, the Lord is doing great things for Calcutta;
and though infidelity abounds, yet religion is the theme of conversation or
dispute in almost every house. A few weeks ago (October 1810), I called upon
one of the Judges to take breakfast with him, and going rather abruptly
upstairs, as I had been accustomed to do, I found the family just going to
engage in morning worship. I was of course asked to engage in prayer, which I
did. I afterwards told him that I had scarcely witnessed anything since I had
been in Calcutta which gave me more pleasure than what I had seen that morning.
The change in this family was an effect of Mr. Thomason’s ministry...About ten
days ago I had a conversation with one of the Judges of the Supreme Court, Sir
John Boyd, upon religious subjects. Indeed there is now scarcely a place where
you can pay a visit without having an opportunity of saying something about
true religion.”
Carey’s
friendly intercourse, by person and letter, was not confined to those who were
aggressively Christian or to Christian and ecclesiastical questions. As we
shall soon see, his literary and scientific pursuits led him to constant and
familiar converse with scholars like Colebrooke and Leyden, with savants like
Roxburgh, the astronomer Bentley, and Dr. Hare, with publicists like Sir James
Mackintosh and Robert Hall, with such travellers and administrators as Manning,
the friend of Charles Lamb, and Raffles.
In
Great Britain the name of William Carey had, by 1812, become familiar as a
household word in all evangelical circles. The men who had known him in the
days before 1793 were few and old, were soon to pass away for ever. The new
generation had fed their Christian zeal on his achievements, and had learned to
look on him, in spite of all his humility which only inflamed that zeal, as the
pioneer, the father, the founder of foreign missions, English, Scottish, and
American. They had never seen him; they were not likely to see him in the
flesh. The desire for a portrait of him became irresistible. The burning of the
press, to be hereafter described, which led even bitter enemies of the mission
like Major Scott Waring to subscribe for its restoration, gave the desired
sympathetic voice, so that Fuller wrote to the missionaries:--“The public is
now giving us their praises. Eight hundred guineas have been offered for Dr.
Carey’s likeness...When you pitched your tents at Serampore you said, ‘We will
not accumulate riches but devote all to God for the salvation of the heathen.’
God has given you what you desired and what you desired not. Blessed men, God
will bless you and make you a blessing. I and others of us may die, but God
will surely visit you...Expect to be highly applauded, bitterly reproached,
greatly moved, and much tried in every way. Oh that, having done all, you may
stand!”
Carey
was, fortunately for posterity, not rebellious in the matter of the portrait;
he was passive. As he sat in his room in the college of Fort William, his pen
in hand, his Sanskrit Bible before him, and his Brahman pundit at his left
hand, the saint and the scholar in the ripeness of his powers at fifty was
transferred to the canvas which has since adorned the walls of Regent’s Park
College. A line engraving of the portrait was published in England the year
after at a guinea, and widely purchased, the profit going to the mission. The
painter was Home, famous in his day as the artist whom Lord Cornwallis had
engaged during the first war with Tipoo to prepare those Select Views in
Mysore, the Country of Tipoo Sultaun, from Drawings taken on the Spot,
which appeared in 1794.
Of
his four sons, Felix, William, Jabez, and Jonathan, Carey’s correspondence was
most frequent at this period with William, who went forth in 1807 to Dinapoor to begin his
independent career as a missionary by the side of Fernandez.
“2nd
April 1807.--We have the greatest encouragement to go forward in the
work of our Lord Jesus, because we have every reason to conclude that it will
be successful at last. It is the cause which God has had in His mind from
eternity, the cause for which Christ shed His blood, that for which the Spirit
and word of God were given, that which is the subject of many great promises,
that for which the saints have been always praying, and which God Himself bears
an infinite regard to in His dispensations of Providence and Grace. The success
thereof is therefore certain. Be encouraged, therefore, my dear son, to devote
yourself entirely to it, and to pursue it as a matter of the very first
importance even to your dying day.
“Give
my love to Mr. and Mrs. Creighton and to Mr. Ellerton, Mr. Grant, or any other
who knows me about Malda, also to our native Brethren.”
“CALCUTTA,
29th September 1808.--A ship is just arrived which brings the
account that Buonaparte has taken possession of the whole kingdom of Spain, and
that the Royal family of that country are in prison at Bayonne. It is likely
that Turkey is fallen before now, and what will be the end of these wonders we
cannot tell. I see the wrath of God poured out on the nations which have so
long persecuted His Gospel, and prevented the spread of His truth. Buonaparte
is but the minister of the Divine vengeance, the public executioner now employed
to execute the sentence of God upon criminal men. He, however, has no end in
view but the gratifying his own ambition.”
“22nd
December 1808.--DEAR WILLIAM--Be steadfast...Walk worthy of your high
calling, and so as to be a pattern to others who may engage in similar
undertakings. Much depends upon us who go first to the work of the Lord in this
country; and we have reason to believe that succeeding Ministers of the Gospel
in this country will be more or less influenced by our example...All, even the
best of men, are more likely to be influenced by evil example than benefited by
good: let it, therefore, be your business and mine to live and act for God in
all things and at all times.
“I
am very glad you wrote to Jabez and Jonathan. O that I could see them
converted!”
“30th
May 1809.--When you come down take a little pains to bring down a few
plants of some sort. There is one grows plentifully about Sadamahal which grows
about as high as one’s knee, and produces a large red flower. Put half a dozen
plants in pots (with a hole in the bottom). There is at Sadamahal (for I found
it there) a plant which produces a flower like Bhayt, of a pale bluish colour,
almost white; and indeed several other things there. Try and bring something.
Can’t you bring the grasshopper which has a saddle on its back, or the bird
which has a large crest which he opens when he settles on the ground? I want to
give you a little taste for natural objects. Felix is very good indeed in this
respect.”
“26th
April 1809.--You, my dear William, are situated in a post which is very
dear to my remembrance because the first years of my residence in India were
spent in that neighbourhood. I therefore greatly rejoice in any exertions which
you are enabled to make for the cause of our Redeemer...Should you, after many
years’ labour, be instrumental in the conversion of only one soul, it would be
worth the work of a whole life...I am not sure that I have been of real use to
any one person since I have been in this country, yet I dare not give up the
work in which I am engaged. Indeed, notwithstanding all the discouragements
which I feel from my own unfitness for any part of it, I prefer it to
everything else, and consider that in the work of my Redeemer I have a rich
reward. If you are enabled to persevere you will feel the same, and will say
with the great Apostle--‘I count not my life dear to me that I may fulfil the
ministry which I have received of the Lord.’ ‘Unto me is this grace (favour)
given that I should preach among the Gentiles the unsearchable riches of
Christ.’ Hold on, therefore, be steady in your work, and leave the result with
God.
“I
have been thinking of a mission to the Ten Tribes of Israel, I mean the
Afghans, who inhabit Cabul...I leave the other side for your mother to write a
few lines to Mary, to whom give my love.”
“CALCUTTA,
1st November 1809.--Yesterday was the day for the Chinese
examination, at which Jabez acquitted himself with much honour. I wish his
heart were truly set on God. One of the greatest blessings which I am now
anxious to see before my death is the conversion of him and Jonathan, and their
being employed in the work of the Lord.
“Now,
dear William, what do we live for but to promote the cause of our dear Redeemer
in the world? If that be carried on we need not wish for anything more; and if
our poor labours are at all blessed to the promotion of that desirable end, our
lives will not be in vain. Let this, therefore, be the great object of your life, and if you should
be made the instrument of turning only one soul from darkness to marvellous
light, who can say how many more may be converted by his instrumentality, and
what a tribute of glory may arise to God from that one conversion. Indeed, were
you never to be blessed to the conversion of one soul, still the pleasure of
labouring in the work of the Lord is greater than that of any other undertaking
in the world, and is of itself sufficient to make it the work of our choice. I
hope Sebuk Ram is arrived before now, and that you will find him to be a blessing
to you in your work. Try your utmost to make him well acquainted with the
Bible, labour to correct his mistakes, and to establish him in the knowledge of
the truth.
“You
may always enclose a pinch of seeds in a letter.”
“17th
January 1810.--Felix went with Captain Canning, the English ambassador
to the Burman Empire, to the city of Pegu. On his way thither he observed to
Captain Canning that he should be greatly gratified in accompanying the
Minister to the mountains of Martaban and the country beyond them. Captain
Canning at his next interview with the Minister mentioned this to him, which he
was much pleased with, and immediately ordered several buffalo-carts to be made
ready, and gave him a war-boat to return to Rangoon to bring his baggage, medicines,
etc. He had no time to consult Brother Chater before he determined on the
journey, and wrote to me when at Rangoon, where he stayed only one night, and
returned to Pegu the next morning. He says the Minister has now nearly the
whole dominion over the Empire, and is going to war. He will accompany the army
to Martaban, when he expects to stay with the Minister there. He goes in great
spirits to explore those countries where no European has been before him, and
where he goes with advantages and accommodations such as a traveller seldom can
obtain. Brother and Sister Chater do not approve of his undertaking, perhaps
through fear for his safety. I feel as much for that as any one can do, yet I,
and indeed Brethren Marshman, Ward, and Rowe, rejoice that he has undertaken
the journey. It will assist him in acquiring the language; it will gratify the
Minister, it will serve the interests of literature, and perhaps answer many
other important purposes, as it respects the mission; and as much of the way
will be through uninhabited forests, it could not have been safely undertaken
except with an army. He expects to be absent three months. I shall feel a great
desire to hear from him when he returns, and I doubt not but you will join me
in prayer for his safety both of mind and body...
“One
or two words about natural history. Can you not get me a male and female
khokora--I mean the great bird like a kite, which makes so great a noise, and
often carries off a duck or a kid? I believe it is an eagle, and want to examine
it. Send me also all the sorts of ducks and waterfowls you can get, and, in
short, every sort of bird you can obtain which is not common here. Send their
Bengali names. Collect me all the sorts of insects, and serpents, and lizards
you can get which are not common here. Put all the insects together into a
bottle of rum, except butterflies, which you may dry between two papers, and
the serpents and lizards the same. I will send you a small quantity of rum for
that purpose. Send all the country names. Let me have the birds alive; and when
you have got a good boat-load send a small boat down with them under charge of
a careful person, and I will pay the expenses. Spare no pains to get me seeds
and roots, and get Brother Robinson to procure what he can from Bhootan or
other parts.
“Remember
me affectionately to Sebuk Ram and his wife, and to all the native brethren and
sisters.”
“5th
February 1810.--Were you hunting the buffalo, or did it charge you
without provocation? I advise you to abstain from hunting buffaloes or other
animals, because, though I think it lawful to kill noxious animals, or to kill
animals for food, yet the unnecessary killing of animals, and especially the
spending much time in the pursuit of them, is wrong, and your life is too valuable
to be thrown away by exposing it to such furious animals as buffaloes and
tigers. If you can kill them without running any risk ‘tis very well, but it is
wrong to expose yourself to danger for an end so much below that to which you
are devoted...
“I believe
the cause of our Redeemer increases in the earth, and look forward to more
decided appearances of divine power. The destruction of the temporal power of
the Pope is a glorious circumstance, and an answer to the prayers of the Church
for centuries past...
“I
send you a small cask of rum to preserve curiosities in, and a few bottles; but
your best way will be to draw off a couple of gallons of the rum, which you may
keep for your own use, and then put the snakes, frogs, toads, lizards, etc.,
into the cask, and send them down. I can easily put them into proper bottles,
etc., afterwards. You may, however, send one or two of the bottles filled with beetles,
grasshoppers, and other insects.”
In
the absence of Mr. Fernandez, the pastor, William had excluded two members of
the Church.
“4th
April 1810.--A very little knowledge of human nature will convince you
that this would have been thought an affront in five instances out of six. You
would have done better to have advised them, or even to have required them to
have kept from the Lord’s table till Mr. Fernandez’s return, and to have left
it to him to preside over the discipline of the church. You, no doubt, did it
without thinking of the consequences, and in the simplicity of your heart, and
I think Mr. Fernandez is wrong in treating you with coolness, when a little
conversation might have put everything to rights. Of that, however, I shall say
no more to you, but one of us shall write to him upon the subject as soon as we
can.
“The
great thing to be done now is the effecting of a reconciliation between you,
and whether you leave Sadamahal, or stay there, this is absolutely necessary.
In order to this you both must be willing to make some sacrifice of your
feelings; and as those feelings, which prevent either of you from making
concessions where you have acted amiss, are wrong, the sooner they are
sacrificed the better. I advise you to write to Mr. Fernandez immediately, and
acknowledge that you did wrong in proceeding to the exclusion of the members
without having first consulted with him, and state that you had no intention of
hurting his feelings, but acted from what you thought the urgency of the case,
and request of him a cordial reconciliation. I should like much to see a copy
of the letter you send to him. I have no object in view but the good of the
Church, and would therefore rather see you stoop as low as you can to effect a
reconciliation, than avoid it through any little punctilio of honour or feeling
of pride. You will never repent of having humbled yourself to the dust that
peace may be restored, nothing will be a more instructive example to the
heathen around you, nothing will so completely subdue Brother Fernandez’s
dissatisfaction, and nothing will make you more respected in the Church of God.
“It
is highly probable that you will some time or other be removed to another
situation, but it cannot be done till you are perfectly reconciled to each
other, nor can it possibly be done till some time after your reconciliation, as
such a step would be considered by all as an effect of resentment or
dissatisfaction, and would be condemned by every thinking person. We shall keep
our minds steadily on the object, and look out for a proper station; but both
we and you must act with great caution and tenderness in this affair. For this
reason also I entreat you not to withdraw yourself from the church, or from any
part of your labours, but go on steadily in the path of duty, suppress and pray
against every feeling of resentment, and bear anything rather than be accessory
to a misunderstanding, or the perpetuating of one. ‘Let that mind be in you
which was also in Christ, who made himself of no reputation.’ I hope what I
have said will induce you to set in earnest about a reconciliation with Brother
Fernandez, and to spare no pains or concession (consistent with truth) to
effect it.”
William
had applied to be transferred to Serampore.
“3rd
August 1811.--The necessities of the mission must be consulted before
every other consideration. Native brethren can itinerate, but Europeans must be
employed to open new missions and found new stations. For were we to go upon
the plan of sending Europeans where natives could possibly be employed, no
subscriptions or profits could support them. We intend to commence a new station
at Dacca, and if you prefer that to Cutwa you may go thither. One of the first
things to be done there will be to open a charity school, and to overlook it.
Dacca itself is a very large place, where you may often communicate religious
instructions without leaving the town. There are also a number of Europeans
there, so that Mary would not be so much alone, and at any rate help would be
near. We can obtain the permission of Government for you to settle there.
“I
ought, however, to say that I think there is much guilt in your fears. You and
Mary will be a thousand times more safe in committing yourselves to God in the
way of duty than in neglecting obvious duty to take care of yourselves. You see
what hardships and dangers a soldier meets in the wicked trade of war. They are
forced to leave home and expose themselves to a thousand dangers, yet they
never think of objecting, and in this the officers are in the same situation as
the men. I will engage to say that no military officer would ever refuse to go
any whither on service because his family must be exposed to danger in his
absence; and yet I doubt not but many of them are men who have great tenderness
for their wives and families. However, they must be men and their wives must be
women. Your undertaking is infinitely superior to theirs in importance. They go to kill men, you to
save them. If they leave their families to chance for the sake of war, surely
you can leave yours to the God of providence while you go about His work. I
speak thus because I am much distressed to see you thus waste away the flower
of your life in inactivity, and only plead for it what would not excuse a
child. Were you in any secular employment you must go out quite as much as we
expect you to do in the Mission. I did so when at Mudnabati, which was as
lonesome a place as could have been thought of, and when I well knew that many
of our own ryots were dakoits (robbers).”
William
finally settled at Cutwa, higher up the Hoogli than Serampore, and did good
service there.
“1st
December 1813.--I have now an assistant at College, notwithstanding
which my duties are quite as heavy as they ever were, for we are to receive a
number of military students--I suppose thirty at least. The translation, and
printing also, is now so much enlarged that I am scarcely able to get through
the necessary labour of correcting proofs and learning the necessary languages.
All these things are causes of rejoicing more than of regret, for they are the
very things for which I came into the country, and to which I wish to devote my
latest breath...Jabez has offered himself to the Mission, a circumstance which
gives me more pleasure than if he had been appointed Chief Judge of the Supreme
Court...Your mother has long been confined to her couch, I believe about six
months.”
The
following was written evidently in reply to loving letters on the death of his
wife, Charlotte Emilia:--
“4th
June 1821.--MY DEAR JONATHAN--I feel your affectionate care for me very
tenderly. I have just received very affectionate letters from William and
Brother Sutton (Orissa). Lord and Lady Hastings wrote to Brother Marshman,
thinking it would oppress my feelings to write to me directly, to offer their
kind condolence to me through him. Will you have the goodness to send five
rupees to William for the Cutwa school, which your dear mother supported. I
will repay you soon, but am now very short of money.--I am your very
affectionate father, W. CAREY.”
Of
the many descendants of Dr. Carey, one great grandson is now an ordained
missionary in Bengal, another a medical missionary in Delhi, and a third is a
member of the Civil Service, who has distinguished himself by travels in
Northern Tibet and Chinese Turkestan, which promise to unveil much of the
unexplored regions of Asia to the scholar and the missionary.
Thus
far we have confined our study of William Carey to his purely missionary
career, and that in its earlier half. We have now to see him as the scholar,
the Bible translator, the philanthropist, the agriculturist, and the founder of
a University.
CHAPTER
IX
PROFESSOR
OF SANSKRIT, BENGALI, AND MARATHI
1801-1830
Carey
the only Sanskrit scholar in India besides Colebrooke--The motive of the
missionary scholar--Plans translation of the sacred books of the
East--Comparative philology from Leibniz to Carey--Hindoo and Mohammedan codes
and colleges of Warren Hastings--The Marquis Wellesley--The College of Fort
William founded--Character of the Company’s civil and military
servants--Curriculum of study, professors and teachers--The vernacular
languages--Carey’s account of the college and his appointment--How he studied
Sanskrit--College Disputation Day in the new Government House--Carey’s Sanskrit
speech--Lord Wellesley’s eulogy--Sir James Mackintosh--Carey’s pundits--He
projects the Bibliotheca Asiatica--On the Committee of the Bengal
Asiatic Society--Edition and translation of the Ramayana epic--The Hitopadesa--His
Universal Dictionary--Influence of Carey on the civil and
military services--W. B. Bayley; B. H. Hodgson; R. Jenkins; R. M. and W. Bird;
John Lawrence.
WHEN,
in the opening days of the nineteenth century, William Carey was driven to
settle in Danish Serampore, he was the only member of the governing race in
North India who knew the language of the people so as to teach it; the only
scholar, with the exception of Colebrooke, who could speak Sanskrit as fluently
as the Brahmans. The Bengali language he had made the vehicle of the teaching
of Christ, of the thought of Paul, of the revelation of John. Of the Sanskrit,
hitherto concealed from alien eyes or diluted only through the Persian, he had
prepared a grammar and begun a dictionary, while he had continually used its
great epics in preaching to the Brahmans, as Paul had quoted the Greek poets on
the Areopagus. And all this he had done as the missionary of Christ and the
scholar afterwards. Reporting to Ryland, in August 1800, the publication of the
Gospels and of “several small pieces” in Bengali, he excused his irregularity
in keeping a journal, “for in the printing I have to look over the copy and
correct the press, which is much more laborious than it would be in England,
because spelling, writing, printing, etc., in Bengali is almost a new thing,
and we have in a manner to fix the orthography.” A little later, in a letter to
Sutcliff, he used language regarding the sacred books of the Hindoos which
finds a parallel more than eighty years after in Professor Max Müller’s
preface to his series of the sacred books of the East, the translation of which
Carey was the first to plan and to begin from the highest of all motives. Mr.
Max Müller calls attention to the “real mischief that has been and is still
being done by the enthusiasm of those pioneers who have opened the first
avenues through the bewildering forests of the sacred literature of the East.”
He declares that “Eastern nations themselves would not tolerate, in any of
their classical literary compositions, such violations of the simplest rules of
taste as they have accustomed themselves to tolerate, if not to admire, in
their sacred books.” And he is compelled to leave untranslated, while he
apologises for them, the frequent allusions to the sexual aspects of nature,
“particularly in religious books.” The revelations of the Maharaj trial in
Bombay are the practical fruit of all this.
“CALCUTTA,
17th March 1802.--I have been much astonished lately at the
malignity of some of the infidel opposers of the Gospel, to see how ready they
are to pick every flaw they can in the inspired writings, and even to distort
the meaning, that they may make it appear inconsistent; while these very
persons will labour to reconcile the grossest contradictions in the writings
accounted sacred by the Hindoos, and will stoop to the meanest artifices in
order to apologise for the numerous glaring falsehoods and horrid violations of
all decency and decorum, which abound in almost every page. Any thing, it
seems, will do with these men but the word of God. They ridicule the figurative
language of Scripture, but will run allegory-mad in support of the most
worthless productions that ever were published. I should think it time lost to
translate any of them; and only a sense of duty excites me to read them. An
idea, however, of the advantage which the friends of Christianity may obtain by
having these mysterious sacred nothings (which have maintained their celebrity
so long merely by being kept from the inspection of any but interested
Brahmans) exposed to view, has induced me, among other things, to write the
Sanskrit grammar, and to begin a dictionary of that language. I sincerely pity
the poor people, who are held by the chains of an implicit faith in the
grossest of lies; and can scarcely help despising the wretched infidel who
pleads in their favour and tries to vindicate them. I have long wished to
obtain a copy of the Veda; and am now in hopes I shall be able to
procure all that are extant. A Brahman this morning offered to get them for me
for the sake of
money. If I succeed, I shall be strongly tempted to publish them with a
translation, pro bono publico.”
It
was not surprising that the Governor-General, even if he had been less
enlightened than Lord Wellesley, found in this missionary interloper, as the
East India Company officially termed the class to which he belonged, the only
man fit to be Professor of Bengali, Sanskrit, and Marathi in the College of
Fort William, and also translator of the laws and regulations of the
Government.
In a
memoir read before the Berlin Academy of Sciences, which he had founded in the
first year of the eighteenth century, Leibniz first sowed the seed of the twin
sciences of comparative philology and ethnology, to which we owe the fruitful
results of the historical and critical school. That century was passed in the
necessary collection of facts, of data. Carey introduced the second period, so
far as the learned and vernacular languages of North India are concerned--of
developing from the body of facts which his industry enormously extended, the
principles upon which these languages were constructed, besides applying these
principles, in the shape of grammars, dictionaries, and translations, to the
instruction and Christian civilisation alike of the learned and of the millions
of the people. To the last, as at the first, he was undoubtedly only what he
called himself, a pioneer to prepare the way for more successful civilisers and
scholars. But his pioneering was acknowledged by contemporary14 and later
Orientalists, like Colebrooke and H. H. Wilson, to be of unexampled value in
the history of scientific research and industry, while the succeeding pages
will show that in its practical results the pioneering came as nearly to
victory as is possible, until native India lives its own national Christian
life.
When
India first became a united British Empire under one Governor-General and the
Regulating Act of Parliament of 1773, Warren Hastings had at once carried out
the provision he himself had suggested for using the moulavies and pundits in
the administration of Mussulman and Hindoo law. Besides colleges in Calcutta
and Benares to train such, he caused those codes of Mohammedan and Brahmanical
law to be prepared which afterwards appeared as The Hedaya and The
Code of Gentoo Laws. The last was compiled in Sanskrit by pundits summoned
from all Bengal and maintained in Calcutta at the public cost, each at a rupee
a day. It was translated through the Persian, the language of the courts, by
the elder Halhed into English in 1776. That was the first step in English
Orientalism. The second was taken by Sir William Jones, a predecessor worthy of
Carey, but cut off all too soon while still a young man of thirty-four, when he
founded the Bengal Asiatic Society in 1784 on the model of Boyle’s Royal Society.
The code of Warren Hastings had to be arranged and supplemented into a reliable
digest of the original texts, and the translation of this work, as done by
pundit Jaganatha, was left, by the death of Jones, to Colebrooke, who completed
it in 1797. Charles Wilkins had made the first direct translation from the
Sanskrit into English in 1785, when he published in London The
Bhagavat-Geeta or Dialogue of Krishna and Arjoon, and his is the
imperishable honour thus chronicled by a contemporary poetaster:--
“But he performed a yet more noble part,
He gave to Asia typographic art.”
In
Bengali Halhed had printed at Hoogli in 1783, with types cut by Wilkins, the
first grammar, but it had become obsolete and was imperfect. Such had been the
tentative efforts of the civilians and officials of the Company when Carey
began anew the work from the only secure foundation, the level of daily
sympathetic intercourse with the people and their Brahmans, with the young as
well as the old.
The
Marquis Wellesley was of nearly the same age as Carey, whom he soon learned to
appreciate and to use for the highest good of the empire. Of the same name and
original English descent as John and Charles Wesley, the Governor-General was
the eldest and not the least brilliant of the Irish family which, besides him,
gave to the country the Duke of Wellington and Lord Cowley. While Carey was
cobbling shoes in an unknown hamlet of the Midlands and was aspiring to convert
the world, young Wellesley was at Eton and Christ Church, Oxford, acquiring the
classical scholarship which, as we find its fruits in his Primitiœ et Reliquiœ, extorted the praise of De Quincey. When Carey was starving in Calcutta
unknown the young lord was making his mark in the House of Commons by a speech
against the Jacobins of France in the style of Burke. The friend of Pitt, he
served his apprenticeship to Indian affairs in the Board of Control, where he learned to
fight the directors of the East India Company, and he landed at Calcutta in
1798, just in time to save the nascent empire from ruin by the second Mysore
war and the fall of Tipoo at Seringapatam. Like that other marquis who most
closely resembled him half a century after, the Scottish Dalhousie, his hands
were no sooner freed from the uncongenial bonds of war than he became even more
illustrious by his devotion to the progress which peace makes possible. He
created the College of Fort William, dating the foundation of what was fitted
and intended to be the greatest seat of learning in the East from the first
anniversary of the victory of Seringapatam. So splendidly did he plan, so
wisely did he organise, and with such lofty aims did he select the teachers of
the college, that long after his death he won from De Quincey the impartial
eulogy, that of his three services to his country and India this was the
“first, to pave the way for the propagation of Christianity--mighty service, stretching to the clouds, and which in the hour of death
must have given him consolation.”
When
Wellesley arrived at Calcutta he had been shocked by the sensual ignorance of
the Company’s servants. Sunday was universally given up to horse-racing and
gambling. Boys of sixteen were removed from the English public schools where
they had hardly mastered the rudiments of education to become the magistrates,
judges, revenue collectors, and governors of millions of natives recently
brought under British sway. At a time when the passions most need regulation
and the conscience training, these lads found themselves in India with large
incomes, flattered by native subordinates, encouraged by their superiors to
lead lives of dissipation, and without the moral control even of the weakest
public opinion. The Eton boy and Oxford man was himself still young, and he
knew the world, but he saw that all this meant ruin to both the civil and
military services, and to the Company’s system. The directors addressed in a
public letter, dated 25th May 1798, “an objurgation on the character and
conduct” of their servants. They re-echoed the words of the new
Governor-General in their condemnation of a state of things, “highly
discreditable to our Government, and totally incompatible with the religion we
profess.” Such a service as this, preceding the creation of the college, led
Pitt’s other friend, Wilberforce, in the discussions on the charter of 1813, to
ascribe to Lord Wellesley, when summoning him to confirm and revise it, the
system of diffusing useful knowledge of all sorts as the true foe not only of
ignorance but of vice and of political and social decay.
Called
upon to prevent the evils he had been the first to denounce officially, Lord
Wellesley wrote his magnificent state paper of 1800, which he simply termed Notes
on the necessity of a special collegiate training of Civil Servants. The
Company’s factories had grown into the Indian Empire of Great Britain. The
tradesmen and clerks, whom the Company still called “writer,” “factor,” and
“merchant,” in their several grades, had, since Clive obtained a military
commission in disgust at such duties, become the judges and rulers of millions,
responsible to Parliament. They must be educated in India itself, and trained
to be equal to the responsibilities and temptations of their position. If
appointed by patronage at home when still at school, they must be tested after
training in India so that promotion shall depend on degrees of merit. Lord
Wellesley anticipated the modified system of competition which Macaulay offered
to the Company in 1853, and the refusal of which led to the unrestricted system
which has prevailed with varying results since that time. Nor was the college
only for the young civilians as they arrived. Those already at work were to be
encouraged to study. Military officers were to he invited to take advantage of
an institution which was intended to be “the university of Calcutta,” “a light
amid the darkness of Asia,” and that at a time when in all England there was
not a military college. Finally, the college was designed to be a centre of
Western learning in an Eastern dress for the natives of India and Southern
Asia, alike as students and teachers. A noble site was marked out for it on the
stately sweep of Garden Reach, where every East Indiaman first dropped its
anchor, and the building was to be worthy of the founder who erected Government
House.
The
curriculum of study included Arabic, Persian, and Sanskrit; Bengali, Marathi,
Hindostani (Hindi), Telugoo, Tamil, and Kanarese; English, the Company’s,
Mohammedan and Hindoo law, civil jurisprudence, and the law of nations; ethics;
political economy, history, geography, and mathematics; the Greek, Latin, and
English classics, and the modern languages of Europe; the history and
antiquities of India; natural history, botany, chemistry, and astronomy. The
discipline was that of the English universities as they then were, under the
Governor-General himself, his colleagues, and the appellate judges. The senior
chaplain, the Rev. David Brown, was provost in charge of the discipline; and Dr.
Claudius Buchanan was vice-provost in charge of the
studies, as well as professor of Greek, Latin, and English. Dr. Gilchrist was
professor of Hindostani, in teaching which he had already made a fortune;
Lieutenant J. Baillie of Arabic; and Mr. H. B. Edmonstone of Persian. Sir George
Barlow expounded the laws or regulations of the British Government in India.
The Church of England constitution of the college at first, to which Buchanan
had applied the English Test Act, and his own modesty, led Carey to accept of
his appointment, which was thus gazetted:--“The Rev. William Carey, teacher of
the Bengali and Sanskrit languages.”
The
first notice of the new college which we find in Carey’s correspondence is
this, in a letter to Sutcliff dated 27th November 1800:--“There is a college erected
at Fort William, of which the Rev. D. Brown is appointed provost, and C.
Buchanan classical tutor: all the Eastern languages are to be taught in it.”
“All” the languages of India were to be taught, the vernacular as well as the
classical and purely official. This was a reform not less radical and
beneficial in its far-reaching influence, and not less honourable to the
scholarly foresight of Lord Wellesley, than Lord William Bentinck’s new era of
the English language thirty-five years after. The rulers and administrators of
the new empire were to begin their career by a three years’ study of the mother
tongue of the people, to whom justice was administered in a language foreign
alike to them and their governors, and of the Persian language of their foreign
Mohammedan conquerors. That the peoples of India, “every man in his own
language,” might hear and read the story of what the one true and living God
had done for us men and our salvation, Carey had nine years before given
himself to acquire Bengali and the Sanskrit of which it is one of a numerous
family of daughters, as the tongues of the Latin nations of Europe and South
America are of the offspring of the speech of Caesar and Cicero. Now, following
the missionary pioneer, as educational, scientific, and even political progress
has ever since done in the India which would have kept him out, Lord Wellesley
decreed that, like the missionary, the administrator and the military officer
shall master the language of the people. The five great vernaculars of India
were accordingly named, and the greatest of all, the Hindi, which was not
scientifically elaborated till long after, was provided for under the mixed
dialect or lingua franca known as Hindostani.
When
Carey and his colleagues were congratulating themselves on a reform which has
already proved as fruitful of results as the first century of the Renascence of
Europe, he little thought, in his modesty, that he would be recognised as the
only man who was fit to carry it out. Having guarded the college, as they
thought, by a test, Brown and Buchanan urged Carey to take charge of the
Bengali and Sanskrit classes as “teacher” on Rs. 500 a month or £700 a year.
Such an office was entirely in the line of the constitution of the missionary
brotherhood. But would the Government which had banished it to Serampore
recognise the aggressively missionary character of Carey, who would not degrade
his high calling by even the suspicion of a compromise? To be called and paid
as a teacher rather than as the professor whose double work he was asked to do,
was nothing to the modesty of the scholar who pleaded his sense of unfitness
for the duties. His Master, not himself, was ever Carey’s first thought, and
the full professorship, rising to £1800 a year, was soon conferred on the man
who proved himself to be almost as much the college in his own person as were
the other professors put together. A month after his appointment he thus told
the story to Dr. Ryland in the course of a long letter devoted chiefly to the
first native converts:--
“SERAMPORE,
15th June 1801...We sent you some time ago a box full of gods and
butterflies, etc., and another box containing a hundred copies of the New
Testament in Bengali...Mr. Lang is studying Bengali, under me, in the college.
What I have last mentioned requires some explanation, though you will probably
hear of it before this reaches you. You must know, then, that a college was
founded last year in Fort William, for the instruction of the junior civil
servants of the Company, who are obliged to study in it three years after their
arrival. I always highly approved of the institution, but never entertained a
thought that I should be called to fill a station in it. To my great surprise I
was asked to undertake the Bengali professorship. One morning a letter from Mr.
Brown came, inviting me to cross the water, to have some conversation with him
upon this subject. I had but just time to call our brethren together, who were
of opinion that, for several reasons, I ought to accept it, provided it did not
interfere with the work of the mission. I also knew myself to be incapable of
filling such a station with reputation and propriety. I, however, went over,
and honestly proposed all my fears and objections. Both Mr. Brown and Mr.
Buchanan were of opinion that the cause of the mission would be furthered by
it; and I was
not able to reply to their arguments. I was convinced that it might. As to my
ability, they could not satisfy me; but they insisted upon it that they must be
the judges of that. I therefore consented, with fear and trembling. They
proposed me that day, or the next, to the Governor-General,
who is patron and visitor of the college. They told him that I had been a
missionary in the country for seven years or more; and as a missionary I was appointed
to the office. A clause had been inserted in the statutes to accommodate those
who are not of the Church of England (for all professors are to take certain
oaths, and make declarations); but, for the accommodation of such, two other
names were inserted, viz., lecturers and teachers, who are not included under
that obligation. When I was proposed, his lordship asked if I was well affected
to the state, and capable of fulfilling the duties of the station; to which Mr.
B. replied that he should never have proposed me if he had had the smallest
doubt on those heads. I wonder how people can have such favourable ideas of me.
I certainly am not disaffected to the state; but the other is not clear to me.
“When
the appointment was made, I saw that I had a very important charge committed to
me, and no books or helps of any kind to assist me. I therefore set about
compiling a grammar, which is now half printed. I got Ram Basu to compose a
history of one of their kings, the first prose book ever written in the Bengali
language; which we are also printing. Our pundit has also nearly translated the
Sanskrit fables, one or two of which Brother Thomas sent you, which we are also
going to publish, These, with Mr. Foster’s vocabulary, will prepare the way to
reading their poetical books; so that I hope this difficulty will be gotten
through. But my ignorance of the way of conducting collegiate exercises is a
great weight upon my mind. I have thirteen students in my class; I lecture
twice a week, and have nearly gone through one term, not quite two months. It
began 4th May. Most of the students have gotten through the accidents, and some
have begun to translate Bengali into English. The examination begins this week.
I am also appointed teacher of the Sanskrit language; and though no students
have yet entered in that class, yet I must prepare for it. I am, therefore,
writing a grammar of that language, which I must also print, if I should be
able to get through with it, and perhaps a dictionary, which I began some years
ago. I say all this, my dear brother, to induce you to give me your advice
about the best manner of conducting myself in this station, and to induce you
to pray much for me, that God may, in all things, be glorified by me. We
presented a copy of the Bengali New Testament to Lord Wellesley, after the
appointment, through the medium of the Rev. D. Brown, which was graciously
received. We also presented Governor Bie with one.
“Serampore
is now in the hands of the English. It was taken while we were in bed and asleep;
you may therefore suppose that it was done without bloodshed. You may be
perfectly easy about us: we are equally secure under the English or Danish
Government, and I am sure well disposed to both.”
For
seven years, since his first settlement in the Dinapoor district, Carey had
given one-third of his long working day to the study of Sanskrit. In 1796 he
reported:--“I am now learning the Sanskrit language, that I may be able to read
their Shasters for myself; and I have acquired so much of the Hindi or
Hindostani as to converse in it and speak for some time intelligibly...Even the
language of Ceylon has so much affinity with that of Bengal that out of twelve
words, with the little Sanskrit that I know, I can understand five or six.” In
1798 he wrote:--“I constantly employ the forenoon in temporal affairs; the
afternoon in reading, writing, learning Sanskrit, etc.; and the evening by
candle light in translating the Scriptures...Except I go out to preach, which
is often the case, I never deviate from this rule.” Three years before that he
had been able to confute the Brahmans from their own writings; in 1798 he
quoted and translated the Rig Veda and the Purana in reply to a request for an
account of the beliefs of the priesthood, apologising, however, with his usual
self-depreciation:--“I am just beginning to see for myself by reading the
original Shasters.” In 1799 we find him reading the Mahabharata epic
with the hope of finding some allusion or fact which might enable him to equate
Hindoo chronology with reliable history, as Dr. John Wilson of Bombay and James
Prinsep did a generation later, by the discovery of the name of Antiochus the
Great in two of the edicts of Asoka, written on the Girnar rock.
By
September 1804 Carey had completed the first three years’ course of collegiate
training in Sanskrit. The Governor-General summoned a brilliant assembly to
listen to the disputations and declamations of the students who were passing
out, and of their professors, in the various Oriental languages. The new Government
House, as it was still called, having been completed only the year before at a
cost of £140,000, was the scene, in “the southern room on the marble floor,” where,
ever since, all through the century, the Sovereign’s Viceroys have received the
homage of the tributary kings of our Indian empire. There, from Dalhousie and
Canning to Lawrence and Mayo, and their still surviving successors, we have
seen pageants and durbars more splendid, and representing a wider extent of
territory, from Yarkand to Bangkok, than even the Sultanised Englishman as Sir
James Mackintosh called Wellesley, ever dreamed of in his most imperial
aspirations. There councils have ever since been held, and laws have been
passed affecting the weal of from two to three hundred millions of our fellow-subjects. There, too, we have stood with Duff and Cotton, Ritchie and
Outram, representing the later University of Calcutta which Wellesley would
have anticipated. But we question if, ever since, the marble hall of the
Governor-General’s palace has witnessed a sight more profoundly significant
than that of William Carey addressing the Marquis Wellesley in Sanskrit, and in
the presence of the future Duke of Wellington, in such words as follow.
The
seventy students, their governors, officers, and professors, rose to their
feet, when, at ten o’clock on Thursday the 20th of September 1804, His
Excellency the Visitor entered the room, accompanied, as the official gazette
duly chronicles, by “the Honourable the Chief Justice, the judges of the Supreme
Court, the members of the Supreme Council, the members of the Council of the
College, Major-General Cameron, Major-General the Honourable Arthur Wellesley,
Major-General Dowdeswell, and Solyman Aga, the envoy from Baghdad. All the
principal civil and military officers at the Presidency, and many of the
British inhabitants, were present on this occasion; and also many learned
natives.”
After
Romer had defended, in Hindostani, the thesis that the Sanskrit is the parent
language in India, and Swinton, in Persian, that the poems of Hafiz are to be
understood in a figurative or mystical sense, there came a Bengali declamation
by Tod senior on the position that the translations of the best works extant in
the Sanskrit with the popular languages of India would promote the extension of
science and civilisation, opposed by Hayes; then Carey, as moderator, made an
appropriate Bengali speech. A similar disputation in Arabic and a Sanskrit
declamation followed, when Carey was called on to conclude with a speech in
Sanskrit. Two days after, at a second assemblage of the same kind, followed by
a state dinner. Lord Wellesley presented the best students with degrees of
merit inscribed on vellum in Oriental characters, and delivered an oration, in
which he specially complimented the Sanskrit classes, urged more general
attention to the Bengali language, and expressed satisfaction that a successful
beginning had been made in the study of Marathi.
It
was considered a dangerous experiment for a missionary, speaking in Sanskrit,
to avow himself such not only before the Governor-General in official state but
before the Hindoo and Mohammedan nobles who surrounded him. We may be sure that
Carey would not show less of his Master’s charity and wisdom than he had always
striven to do. But the necessity was the more laid on him that he should openly
confess his great calling, for he had told Fuller on Lord Wellesley’s arrival
he would do so if it were possible. Buchanan, being quite as anxious to bring
the mission forward on this occasion, added much to the English draft--“the
whole of the flattery is his,” wrote Carey to Fuller--and sent it on to Lord
Wellesley with apprehension. This answer came back from the great
Proconsul:--“I am much pleased with Mr. Carey’s truly original and excellent
speech. I would not wish to have a word altered. I esteem such a testimony from
such a man a greater honour than the applause of Courts and Parliaments.”
“MY
LORD, it is just that the language which has been first cultivated under your
auspices should primarily be employed in gratefully acknowledging the benefit,
and in speaking your praise. This ancient language, which refused to disclose
itself to the former Governors of India, unlocks its treasures at your command,
and enriches the world with the history, learning, and science of a distant
age. The rising importance of our collegiate institution has never been more
clearly demonstrated than on the present occasion; and thousands of the learned
in distant nations will exult in this triumph of literature.
“What
a singular exhibition has been this day presented to us! In presence of the
supreme Governor of India, and of its most learned and illustrious characters,
Asiatic and European, an assembly is convened, in which no word of our native
tongue is spoken, but public discourse is maintained on interesting subjects in
the languages of Asia. The colloquial Hindostani, the classic Persian, the
commercial Bengali, the learned Arabic, and the primæval
Sanskrit are spoken fluently, after having been studied grammatically, by
English youth. Did ever any university in Europe, or any literary institution
in any other age or country, exhibit a scene so interesting as this? And what are
the circumstances of these youth? They are not students who prosecute a dead
language with uncertain purpose, impelled only by natural genius or love of
fame. But having been appointed to the important offices of administering the
government of the country in which these languages are spoken, they apply their
acquisitions immediately to useful purpose; in distributing justice to the
inhabitants; in transacting the business of the state, revenual and commercial;
and in maintaining official intercourse with the people, in their own tongue,
and not, as hitherto, by an interpreter. The acquisitions of our
students may be appreciated by their affording to the suppliant native
immediate access to his principal; and by their elucidating the spirit of the
regulations of our Government by oral communication, and by written
explanations, varied according to the circumstances and capacities of the
people.
“The
acquisitions of our students are appreciated at this moment by those
learned Asiatics now present in this assembly, some of them strangers from
distant provinces; who wonder every man to hear in his own tongue important
subjects discussed, and new and noble principles asserted, by the youth of a
foreign land. The literary proceedings of this day amply repay all the
solicitude, labour, and expense that have been bestowed on this institution. If
the expense had been a thousand times greater, it would not have equalled the
immensity of the advantage, moral and political, that will ensue.
“I,
now an old man, have lived for a long series of years among the Hindoos. I have
been in the habit of preaching to multitudes daily, of discoursing with the
Brahmans on every subject, and of superintending schools for the instruction of
the Hindoo youth. Their language is nearly as familiar to me as my own. This
close intercourse with the natives for so long a period, and in different parts
of our empire, has afforded me opportunities of information not inferior to
those which have hitherto been presented to any other person. I may say indeed
that their manners, customs, habits, and sentiments are as obvious to me as if
I was myself a native. And knowing them as I do, and hearing as I do their
daily observations on our government, character, and principles, I am warranted
to say (and I deem it my duty to embrace the public opportunity now afforded me
of saying it) that the institution of this college was wanting to complete the
happiness of the natives under our dominion; for this institution will break
down that barrier (our ignorance of their language) which has ever opposed the
influence of our laws and principles, and has despoiled our administration of
its energy and effect.
“Were
the institution to cease from this moment, its salutary effects would yet
remain. Good has been done, which cannot be undone. Sources of useful
knowledge, moral instruction, and political utility have been opened to the
natives of India which can never be closed; and their civil improvement, like
the gradual civilisation of our own country, will advance in progression for
ages to come.
“One
hundred original volumes in the Oriental languages and literature will preserve
for ever in Asia the name of the founder of this institution. Nor are the
examples frequent of a renown, possessing such utility for its basis, or
pervading such a vast portion of the habitable globe. My lord, you have raised
a monument of fame which no length of time or reverse of fortune is able to
destroy; not chiefly because it is inscribed with Maratha and Mysore, with the
trophies of war and the emblems of victory, but because there are inscribed on
it the names of those learned youth who have obtained degrees of honour for
high proficiency in the Oriental tongues.
“These
youth will rise in regular succession to the Government of this country. They
will extend the domain of British civilisation, security, and happiness, by
enlarging the bounds of Oriental literature and thereby diffusing the spirit of
Christian principles throughout the nations of Asia. These youth, who have
lived so long amongst us, whose unwearied application to their studies we have
all witnessed, whose moral and exemplary conduct has, in so solemn a manner,
been publicly declared before this august assembly, on this day; and who, at
the moment of entering on the public service, enjoy the fame of possessing
qualities (rarely combined) constituting a reputation of threefold strength for
public men, genius, industry, and virtue;--these illustrious scholars, my lord,
the pride of their country, and the pillars of this empire, will record your
name in many a language and secure your fame for ever. Your fame is already
recorded in their hearts. The whole body of youth of this service hail you as
their father and their friend. Your honour will ever be safe in their hands. No
revolution of opinion or change of circumstances can rob you of the solid glory
derived from the humane, just, liberal, and magnanimous principles which have
been embodied by your administration.
“To
whatever situation the course of future events may call you, the youth of this
service will ever remain the pledges of the wisdom and purity of your
government. Your evening of life will be constantly cheered with new
testimonies of their reverence and affection, with new proofs of the advantages
of the education you have afforded them, and with a demonstration of the
numerous benefits, moral, religious, and political, resulting from this
institution;--benefits which will consolidate the happiness of millions of
Asia, with the glory and welfare of our country.”
The
Court of Directors had never liked Lord Wellesley, and he had, in common with
Colebrooke, keenly wounded them by proposing a free trade movement against
their monopoly. They ordered that his favourite college should be immediately
abolished. He took good care so to protract the operation as to give him time
to call in the aid of the Board of Control, which saved the institution, but
confined it to the teaching of languages to the civilians of the Bengal
Presidency only. The Directors, when thus overruled chiefly by Pitt, created a
similar college at Haileybury, which continued till the open competitive system
of 1854 swept that also away; and the Company itself soon followed, as the
march of events had made it an anachronism.
The
first law professor at Haileybury was James Mackintosh, an Aberdeen student who
had leaped into the front rank of publicists and scholars by his answer to Burke, in
the Vindiciœ Gallicœ, and his famous defence of M. Peltier accused of a
libel on Napoleon Buonaparte. Knighted and sent out to Bombay as its first
recorder, Sir James Mackintosh became the centre of scholarly society in
Western India, as Sir William Jones had been in Bengal. He was the friend of
Robert Hall, the younger, who was filling Carey’s pulpit in Leicester, and he
soon became the admiring correspondent of Carey himself. His first act during
his seven years’ residence in Bombay was to establish the “Literary Society.”
He drew up a “Plan of a comparative vocabulary of Indian languages,” to be
filled up by the officials of every district, like that which Carey had long
been elaborating for his own use as a philologist and Bible translator. In his
first address to the Literary Society he thus eulogised the College of Fort
William, though fresh from a chair in its English rival, Haileybury:--“The original plan was the most magnificent attempt ever made for the
promotion of learning in the East...Even in its present mutilated state we have
seen, at the last public exhibition, Sanskrit declamation by English youth, a
circumstance so extraordinary, that if it be followed by suitable advances it
will mark an epoch in the history of learning.”
Carey
continued till 1831 to be the most notable figure in the College of Fort
William. He was the centre of the learned natives whom it attracted, as pundits
and moonshees, as inquirers and visitors. His own special pundit was the chief
one, Mrityunjaya Vidyalankar, whom Home has immortalised in Carey’s portrait.
In the college for more than half the week, as in his study at Serampore, Carey
exhausted three pundits daily. His college-room was the centre of incessant
literary work, as his Serampore study was of Bible translation. When he
declared that the college staff had sent forth one hundred original volumes in
the Oriental languages and literature, he referred to the grammars and
dictionaries, the reading-books, compilations, and editions prepared for the
students by the professors and their native assistants. But he contributed the
largest share, and of all his contributions the most laborious and valuable was
this project of the Bibliotheca Asiatica.
“24th
July, 1805.--By the enclosed Gazette you will see that the
Asiatic Society and the College have agreed to allow us a yearly stipend for
translating Sanskrit works: this will maintain three missionary stations, and
we intend to apply it to that purpose. An augmentation of my salary has been
warmly recommended by the College Council, but has not yet taken place, and as
Lord Cornwallis is now arrived and Lord Wellesley going away, it may not take
place. If it should, it will be a further assistance. The business of the
translation of Sanskrit works is as follows: About two years ago I presented
proposals (to the Council of the College) to print the Sanskrit books at a
fixed price, with a certain indemnity for 100 copies. The plan was thought too
extensive by some, and was therefore laid by. A few months ago Dr. Francis
Buchanan came to me, by desire of Marquis Wellesley, about the translation of
his manuscripts. In the course of conversation I mentioned the proposal I had
made, of which he much approved, and immediately communicated the matter to Sir
John Anstruther, who is president of the Asiatic Society. Sir John had then
been drawing out a proposal to Lord Wellesley to form a catalogue raisonnè of
the ancient Hindoo books, which he sent to me, and entering warmly into my
plan, desired that I would send in a set of proposals. After some amendments it
was agreed that the College of Fort William and the Asiatic Society should subscribe
in equal shares 300 rupees a month to defray the current expenses, that we
should undertake any work approved of by them, and print the original with an
English translation on such paper and with such a type as they shall approve;
the copy to be ours. They have agreed to recommend the work to all the learned
bodies in Europe. I have recommended the Ramayana to begin with, it
being one of the most popular of all the Hindoo books accounted sacred. The
Veda are so excessively insipid that, had we begun with them, we should have
sickened the public at the outset. The Ramayana will furnish the best
account of Hindoo mythology that any one book will, and has extravagancy enough
to excite a wish to read it through.”
In
1807 Carey became one of the most active members of the Bengal Asiatic Society.
His name at once appears as one of the Committee of Papers. In the ninth volume
of the Asiatic Researches for that year, scholars were invited to
communicate translations and descriptive accounts of Asiatic books. Carey’s
edition of The Ramayana of Valmeeki, in the original Sanskrit, with a prose
translation and explanatory notes, appeared from the Serampore press in
three successive quartos from 1806 to 1810. The translation was done by “Dr.
Carey and Joshua Marshman.” Until Gorresio published his edition and Italian
translation of the whole poem this was the first and only attempt to open the
seal of the second great Sankrit epic to the European world. In 1802 Carey had
encouraged the publication at his own press of translations of both the Mahabharata
and the Ramayana into Bengali. Carey’s Ramayana excited a keen
interest not only among the learned of Europe, but among poetical students.
Southey eagerly turned to it for materials for his Curse of Kehama, in
the notes to which he makes long quotations from “the excellent and learned
Baptist missionaries of Serampore.” Dean Milman, when professor of poetry in
Oxford, drew from the same storehouse many of the notes with which he enriched
his verse translations from both epics. A. W. von Schlegel, the death of whose
eldest brother at Madras early led him to Oriental studies, published two books
with a Latin translation. Mr. Ralph T. H. Griffith most pleasantly opened the
treasures of this epic to English readers in his verse translations published
since 1868. Carey’s translation has always been the more rare that the edition
despatched for sale in England was lost at sea, and only a few presentation
copies are extant, one of which is in the British Museum.
Carey’s
contributions to Sanskrit scholarship were not confined to what he published or
to what appeared under his own name. We are told by H. H. Wilson that he had
prepared for the press translations of treatises on the metaphysical system
called Sankhya. “It was not in Dr. Carey’s nature to volunteer a display of his
erudition, and the literary labours already adverted to arose in a great
measure out of his connection with the college of Calcutta, or were suggested
to him by those whose authority he respected, and to whose wishes he thought it
incumbent upon him to attend. It may be added that Dr. Carey spoke Sanskrit
with fluency and correctness.”
He
edited for the college the Sanskrit text of the Hitopadesa, from six
MSS. recensions of this the first revelation to Europe of the fountain of Aryan
folk-tales, of the original of Pilpay’s Fables.15 H. H. Wilson remarks
that the errors are not more than might have been expected from the variations
and defects of the manuscripts and the novelty of the task, for this was the
first Sanskrit book ever printed in the Devanagari character. To this famous
work Carey added an abridgment of the prose Adventures of Ten Princes
(the Dasa Kumara Carita), and of Bhartri-hari’s Apophthegms. Colebrooke
records his debt to Carey for carrying through the Serampore press the Sanskrit
dictionary of Amara Sinha, the oldest native lexicographer, with an English
interpretation and annotations. But the magnum opus of Carey was what in
1811 he described as A Universal Dictionary of the Oriental Languages,
derived from the Sanskrit, of which that language is to be the groundwork.
The object for which he had been long collecting the materials of this mighty
work was the assisting of “Biblical students to correct the translation of the
Bible in the Oriental languages after we are dead.”
Through
the College of Fort William during thirty long years Carey influenced the
ablest men in the Bengal Civil Service, and not a few in Madras and Bombay.
“The college must stand or the empire must fall,” its founder had written to
his friends in the Government, so convinced was he that only thus could proper
men be trained for the public service and the welfare of our native subjects be
secured. How right he was Carey’s experience proved. The young civilians turned
out after the first three years’ course introduced that new era in the
administration of India which has converted traders into statesmen and
filibusters into soldier-politicals, so that the East Indian services stand
alone in the history of the administration of imperial dependencies for
spotless integrity and high average ability. Contrast with the work of these
men, from the days of Wellesley, the first Minto, and Dalhousie, from the time
of Canning to Lawrence and the second Minto, the provincial administration of
imperial Rome, of Spain and Portugal at their best, of even the Netherlands and
France. For a whole generation of thirty years the civilians who studied
Sanskrit, Bengali, and Marathi came daily under the gentle spell of Carey, who,
though he had failed to keep the village school of Moulton in order, manifested
the learning and the modesty, the efficiency and the geniality, which won the
affectionate admiration of his students in Calcutta.
A
glance at the register of the college for its first five years reveals such men
as these among his best students. The first Bengali prizeman of Carey was W.
Butterworth Bayley, whose long career of blameless uprightness and marked
ability culminated
in the temporary seat of Governor-General, and who was
followed in the service by a son worthy of him. The second was that Brian H.
Hodgson who, when Resident of Nepal, of all his contemporaries won for himself
the greatest reputation as a scholar, who fought side by side with the Serampore
brotherhood the battle of the vernaculars of the people. Charles, afterwards
Lord Metcalfe, had been the first student to enter the college. He was on its
Persian side, and he learned while still under its discipline that “humility,
patience, and obedience to the divine will” which unostentatiously marked his
brilliant life and soothed his spirit in the agonies of a fatal disease. He and
Bayley were inseparable. Of the first set, too, were Richard Jenkins, who was
to leave his mark on history as Nagpoor Resident and author of the Report of
1826; and Romer, who rose to be Governor of Bombay for a time. In those early
years the two Birds passed through the classes--Robert Mertins Bird, who was to
found the great land revenue school of Hindostan; and Wilberforce Bird, who
governed India while Lord Ellenborough played at soldiers, and to whom the
legal suppression of slavery in Southern Asia is due. Names of men second to
those, such as Elliot and Thackeray, Hamilton and Martin, the Shakespeares and
Plowdens, the Moneys, the Rosses and Keenes, crowd the honour lists. One of the
last to enjoy the advantages of the college before its abolition was John
Lawrence, who used to confess that he was never good at languages, but whose
vigorous Hindostani made many an ill-doing Raja tremble, while his homely
conversation, interspersed with jokes, encouraged the toiling ryot.
These,
and men like these, sat at the feet of Carey, where they learned not only to be
scholars but to treat the natives kindly, and--some of them--even as brethren
in Christ. Then from teaching the future rulers of the East, the
missionary-professor turned to his Bengali preaching and his Benevolent
Institution, to his visits to the prisoners and his intercourse with the
British soldiers in Fort William. And when the four days’ work in Calcutta was
over, the early tide bore him swiftly up the Hoogli to the study where, for the
rest of the week, he gave himself to the translation of the Bible into the
languages of the people and of their leaders.
CHAPTER
X
THE
WYCLIF OF THE EAST--BIBLE TRANSLATION
1801-1832
The
Bible Carey’s missionary weapon--Other vernacular translators--Carey’s modest
but just description of his labours--His philological key--Type-cutting and
type-casting by a Hindoo blacksmith--The first manufacture of paper and
steam-engines in the East--Carey takes stock of the translation work at the
opening of 1808--In his workshop--A seminary of Bible translators--William
Yates, shoemaker, the Coverdale of the Bengali Bible--Wenger--A Bengali Luther
wanted--Carey’s Bengali Bible--How the New Testament was printed--The first
copy offered to God--Reception of the volume by Lord Spencer and George
III.--Self-evidencing power of the first edition--The Bible in Ooriya--In
Maghadi, Assamese, Khasi, and Manipoori--Marathi, Konkani, and Goojarati
versions--The translation into Hindi and its many dialects--The Dravidian
translations--Tale of the Pushtoo Bible--The Sikhs and the Bible--The first
Burman version and press--The British and Foreign Bible Society--Deaths,
earthquake, and fire in 1812--Destruction of the press--Thomason’s description
of the smoking ruins--Carey’s heroism as to his manuscripts--Enthusiastic
sympathy of India and Christendom--The phœnix and its feathers.
EVERY
great reform in the world has been, in the first instance, the work of one man,
who, however much he may have been the product of his time, has conceived and
begun to execute the movement which transforms society. This is true alike of
the moral and the physical forces of history, of contemporaries so apparently
opposite in character and aims as Carey and Clarkson on the one side and
Napoleon and Wellington on the other. Carey stood alone in his persistent
determination that the Church should evangelise the world. He was no less
singular in the means which he insisted on as the first essential condition of
its evangelisation--the vernacular translation of the Bible. From the
Scriptures alone, while yet a journeyman shoemaker of eighteen, “he had formed
his own system,” and had been filled with the divine missionary idea. That was
a year before the first Bible Society was formed in 1780 to circulate the
English Bible among soldiers and sailors; and, a quarter of a century before
his own success led to the formation in 1804 of the British and Foreign Bible
Society. From the time of his youth, when he realised the self-evidencing
power of the Bible, Carey’s unbroken habit was to begin every morning by
reading one chapter of the Bible, first in English, and then in each of the languages,
soon, numbering six, which he had himself learned.
Hence
the translation of the Bible into all the languages and principal dialects of
India and Eastern Asia was the work above all others to which Carey set himself
from the time, in 1793, when he acquired the Bengali. He preached, he taught,
he “discipled” in every form then reasonable and possible, and in the fullest
sense of his Master’s missionary charge. But the one form of most pressing and
abiding importance, the condition without which neither true faith, nor true
science, nor true civilisation could exist or be propagated outside of the
narrow circle to be reached by the one herald’s voice, was the publishing of
the divine message in the mother tongues of the millions of Asiatic men and women,
boys and girls, and in the learned tongues also of their leaders and priests.
Wyclif had first done this for the English-reading races of all time,
translating from the Latin, and so had begun the Reformation, religious and
political, not only in Britain but in Western Christendom. Erasmus and Luther
had followed him--the former in his Greek and Latin New Testament and in his
Paraphrase of the Word for “women and cobblers, clowns, mechanics, and even the
Turks”; the latter in his great vernacular translation of the edition of
Erasmus, who had never ceased to urge his contemporaries to translate the
Scriptures “into all tongues.” Tyndale had first given England the Bible from
the Hebrew and the Greek. And now one of these cobblers was prompted and enabled
by the Spirit who is the author of the truth in the Scriptures, to give to
South and Eastern Asia the sacred books which its Syrian sons, from Moses and
Ezra to Paul and John, had been inspired to write for all races and all ages.
Emphatically, Carey and his later coadjutors deserve the language of the
British and Foreign Bible Society, when, in 1827, it made to Serampore a last
grant of money for translation--“Future generations will apply to them the
words of the translators of the English Bible--‘Therefore blessed be they and
most honoured their names that break the ice and give the onset in that which
helped them forward to the saving of souls. Now what can be more available
thereto than to deliver God’s book unto God’s people in a tongue which they understand?’”
Carey might tolerate interruption when engaged in other work, but for forty
years he never allowed anything to shorten the time allotted to the Bible work.
“You, madam,” he wrote in 1797 to a lady as to many a correspondent, “will
excuse my brevity when I inform you that all my time for writting letters is
stolen from the work of transcribing the Scriptures into the Bengali language.”
From
no mere humility, but with an accurate judgment in the state of scholarship and
criticism at the opening of last century, Carey always insisted that he was a
forerunner, breaking up the way for successors like Yates, Wenger, and Rouse,
who, in their turn, must be superseded by purely native Tyndales and Luthers in
the Church of India. He more than once deprecated the talk of his having
translated the Bible into forty languages and dialects.16 As we proceed that
will be a apparent which
he did with his own hand, that which his colleagues accomplished, that which he
revised and edited both of their work and of the pundits’, and that which he
corrected and printed for others at the Serampore press under the care of Ward.
It is to these four lines of work, which centred in him, as most of them
originally proceeded from his conception and advocacy, that the assertion as to
the forty translations is strictly applicable. The Bengali, Hindi, Marathi, and
Sanskrit translations were his own. The Chinese was similarly the work of
Marshman. The Hindi versions, in their many dialects, and the Ooriya, were
blocked out by his colleagues and the pundits. He saw through the press the
Hindostani, Persian, Malay, Tamil, and other versions of the whole or portions
of the Scriptures. He ceased not, night and day, if by any means, with a loving
catholicity, the Word of God might be given to the millions.
Writing
in 1904 on the centenary of the British and Foreign Bible Society, Mr. George
A. Grierson, C.I.E., Ph.D., D.Litt., the head of the Linguistic Survey of
India, sums up authoritatively the work of Carey and his assistants. “The great-hearted
band of Serampore missionaries issued translations of the Bible or of the New
Testament in more than forty languages. Before them the number of Protestant
versions of the Bible in the speeches of India could be counted on the fingers
of one hand. The Dutch of Ceylon undertook a Tamil New Testament in 1688, which
was followed in 1715 by another version from the pen of Ziegenbalg. The famous
missionary, Schultze, between 1727 and 1732 made a Telugu version which was
never printed, and later, between 1745 and 1758, he published at Halle a
Hindostani translation of the New Testament and of a portion of Genesis. A
manuscript version of portions of the Bible in Bengali was made by Thomas in
1791; and then the great Serampore series began with Carey’s Bengali New
Testament published in 1801. Most of these Serampore versions were, it is true,
first attempts and have been superseded by more accurate versions, but the
first step is always the most important one, and this was taken by Carey and
his brethren.”
Carey’s
correspondent in this and purely scholarly subjects was Dr. Ryland, an
accomplished Hebraist and Biblical critic for that day, at the head of the
Bristol College. Carey’s letters, plentifully sprinkled with Hebrew and Greek,
show the jealousy with which he sought to convey the divine message accurately,
and the unwearied sense of responsibility under which he worked. Biblical
criticism, alike as to the original text and to the exegesis of the sacred
writings, is so very modern a science, that these letters have now only a
historical interest. But this communication to Ryland shows how he worked from
the first:--
“CALCUTTA,
14th Dec. 1803.--We some time ago engaged in an undertaking, of
which we intended to say nothing until it was accomplished; but an unforeseen
providence made it necessary for us to disclose it. It is as follows: About a
year and a half ago, some attempts were made to engage Mr. Gilchrist in the
translation of the Scriptures into the Hindostani language. By something or
other it was put by. The Persian was also at the same time much talked of, but
given up, or rather not engaged in. At this time several considerations prevailed
on us to set ourselves silently upon a translation into these languages. We
accordingly hired two moonshees to assist us in it, and each of us took our
share; Brother Marshman took Matthew and Luke; Brother Ward, Mark and John; and
myself the remaining part of the New Testament into Hindostani. I undertook no
part of the Persian; but, instead thereof, engaged in translating it into
Maharastra, commonly called the Mahratta language, the person who assists me in
the Hindostani being a Mahratta. Brother Marshman has finished Matthew, and,
instead of Luke, has begun the Acts. Brother Ward has done part of John, and I
have done the Epistles, and about six chapters of the Revelation; and have
proceeded as far as the second epistle of the Corinthians in the revisal: they
have done a few chapters into Persian, and I a few into Mahratta. Thus the
matter stood, till a few days ago Mr. Buchanan informed me that a military
gentleman had translated the Gospels into Hindostani and Persian, and had made a present of
them to the College, and that the College Council had voted the printing of
them. This made it necessary for me to say what we had been about; and had it
not been for this circumstance we should not have said anything till we had got
the New Testament at least pretty forward in printing. I am very glad that
Major Colebrooke has done it. We will gladly do what others do not do, and wish
all speed to those who do anything in this way. We have it in our power, if our
means would do for it, in the space of about fifteen years to have the word of
God translated and printed in all the languages of the East. Our situation is
such as to furnish us with the best assistance from natives of the different
countries. We can have types of all the different characters cast here; and
about 700 rupees per month, part of which I hope we shall be able to furnish,
would complete the work. The languages are the Hindostani (Hindi), Maharastra,
Ooriya, Telinga, Bhotan, Burman, Chinese, Cochin Chinese, Tongkinese, and
Malay. On this great work we have fixed our eyes. Whether God will enable us to
accomplish it, or any considerable part of it, is uncertain.”
But
all these advantages, his own genius for languages, his unconquerable plodding
directed by a divine motive, his colleagues’ co-operation, the encouragement of
learned societies and the public, and the number of pundits and moonshees
increased by the College of Fort William, would have failed to open the door of
the East to the sacred Scriptures had the philological key of the Sanskrit been
wanting or undiscovered. In the preface to his Sanskrit grammar, quoted by the Quarterly
Review with high approbation, Carey wrote that it gave him the meaning of
four out of every five words of the principal languages of the whole people of
India:--“The peculiar grammar of any one of these may be acquired in a couple
of months, and then the language lies open to the student. The knowledge of
four words in five enables him to read with pleasure, and renders the
acquisition of the few new words, as well as the idiomatic expressions, a
matter of delight rather than of labour. Thus the Ooriya, though possessing a
separate grammar and character, is so much like the Bengali in the very
expression that a Bengali pundit is almost equal to the correction of an Orissa
proof sheet; and the first time that I read a page of Goojarati the meaning
appeared so obvious as to render it unnecessary to ask the pundit questions.”
The
mechanical apparatus of types, paper, and printing seem to have been provided
by the same providential foresight as the intellectual and the spiritual. We
have seen how, when he was far enough advanced in his translation, Carey amid
the swamps of Dinapoor looked to England for press, type, paper, and printer.
He got the last, William Ward, a man of his own selection, worthy to be his
colleague. But he had hardly despatched his letter when he found or made all
the rest in Bengal itself. It was from the old press bought in Calcutta, set up
in Mudnabati, and removed to Serampore, that the first edition of the Bengali
New Testament was printed. The few rare and venerable copies have now a
peculiar bibliographic interest; the type and the paper alike are coarse and
blurred.
Sir
Charles Wilkins, the Caxton of India, had with his own hands cut the punches
and cast the types from which Halhed’s Bengali grammar was printed at Hoogli in
1778. He taught the art to a native blacksmith, Panchanan, who went to
Serampore in search of work just when Carey was in despair for a fount of the
sacred Devanagari type for his Sanskirt grammar, and for founts of the other
languages besides Bengali which had never been printed. They thus tell the
story in a Memoir Relative to the Translations, published in 1807:--
“It
will be obvious that in the present state of things in India it was in many
instances necessary to cast new founts of types in several of these languages.
Happily for us and India at large Wilkins had led the way in this department;
and by persevering industry, the value of which can scarcely be appreciated,
under the greatest disadvantages with respect to materials and workmen, had
brought the Bengali to a high degree of perfection. Soon after our settling at
Serampore the providence of God brought to us the very artist who had wrought
with Wilkins in that work, and in a great measure imbibed his ideas. By his
assistance we erected a letter-foundry; and although he is now dead, he had so
fully communicated his art to a number of others, that they carry forward the
work of type-casting, and even of cutting the matrices, with a degree of
accuracy which would not disgrace European artists. These have cast for us two
or three founts of Bengali; and we are now employing them in casting a fount on
a construction which bids fair to diminish the expense of paper, and the size
of the book at least one-fourth, without affecting the legibility of the
character. Of the Devanagari character we have also cast an entire new fount,
which is esteemed the most beautiful of the kind in India. It consists of
nearly 1000 different combinations of characters, so that the expense of
cutting the patterns only amounted to 1500 rupees, exclusive of metal and
casting.
“In
the Orissa we have been compelled also to cast a new fount of types, as none
before existed in that character. The fount consists of about 300 separate
combinations, and the whole expense of cutting and casting has amounted to at least 1000
rupees. The character, though distinct, is of a moderate size, and will
comprise the whole New Testament in about 700 pages octavo, which is about a
fourth less than the Bengali. Although in the Mahratta country the Devanagari
character is well known to men of education, yet a character is current among
the men of business which is much smaller, and varies considerably in form from
the Nagari, though the number and power of the letters nearly correspond. We
have cast a fount in this character, in which we have begun to print the
Mahratta New Testament, as well as a Mahratta dictionary. This character is
moderate in size, distinct and beautiful. It will comprise the New Testament in
perhaps a less number of pages than the Orissa. The expense of casting, etc.,
has been much the same. We stand in need of three more founts; one in the
Burman, another in the Telinga and Kernata, and a third in the Seek’s
character. These, with the Chinese characters, will enable us to go through the
work. An excellent and extensive fount of Persian we received from you, dear
brethren, last year.”
Panchanan’s
apprentice, Monohur, continued to make elegant founts of type in all Eastern
languages for the mission and for sale to others for more than forty years,
becoming a benefactor not only to literature but to Christian civilisation to
an extent of which he was unconscious, for he remained a Hindoo of the blacksmith
caste. In 1839, when he first went to India as a young missionary, the Rev.
James Kennedy17 saw him, as the present writer has often since seen his
successor, cutting the matrices or casting the type for the Bibles, while he
squatted below his favourite idol, under the auspices of which alone he would
work. Serampore continued down till 1860 to be the principal Oriental
typefoundry of the East.18
Hardly
less service did the mission come to render to the manufacture of paper in
course of time, giving the name of Serampore to a variety known all over India.
At first Carey was compelled to print his Bengali Testament on a dingy, porous,
rough substance called Patna paper. Then he began to depend on supplies from
England, which in those days reached the press at irregular times, often
impeding the work, and was most costly. This was not all. Native paper, whether
mill or hand-made, being sized with rice paste, attracted the bookworm and
white ant, so that the first sheets of a work which lingered in the press were
sometimes devoured by these insects before the last sheets were printed off.
Carey used to preserve his most valuable manuscripts by writing on arsenicated
paper, which became of a hideous yellow colour, though it is to this alone we
owe the preservation in the library of Serampore College of five colossal
volumes of his polyglot dictionary prepared for the Bible translation work.
Many and long were the experiments of the missionaries to solve the paper
difficulty, ending in the erection of a tread-mill on which relays of forty
natives reduced the raw material in the paper-engine, until one was
accidentally killed.
The
enterprise of Mr. William Jones, who first worked the Raneegunj coal-field,
suggested the remedy in the employment of a steam-engine. One of twelve-horse
power was ordered from Messrs. Thwaites and Rothwell of Bolton. This was the
first ever erected in India, and it was a purely missionary locomotive. The
“machine of fire,” as they called it, brought crowds of natives to the mission,
whose curiosity tried the patience of the engineman imported to work it; while
many a European who had never seen machinery driven by steam came to study and
to copy it. The date was the 27th of March 1820, when “the engine went in
reality this day.” From that time till 1865 Serampore became the one source of
supply for local as distinguished from imported and purely native hand-made
paper. Even the cartridges of Mutiny notoriety in 1857 were from this factory,
though it had long ceased to be connected with the mission.
Dr.
Carey thus took stock of the translating enterprise in a letter to Dr.
Ryland:--
“22nd
January 1808.--Last year may be reckoned among the most important which
this mission has seen--not for the numbers converted among the natives, for
they have been fewer than in some preceding years, but for the gracious care
which God has exercised towards us. We have been enabled to carry on the
translation and printing of the Word of God in several languages. The printing
is now going on in six and the translation into six more. The Bengali is all
printed except from Judges vii. to the end of Esther; Sanskrit New Testament to
Acts xxvii.; Orissa to John xxi.; Mahratta, second edition, to the end of
Matthew; Hindostani (new version) to Mark v., and Matthew is begun in
Goojarati. The translation is nearly carried on to the end of John in Chinese,
Telinga Kurnata, and the
language of the Seeks. It is carried on to a pretty large extent in Persian and
begun in Burman. The whole Bible was printed in Malay at Batavia some years
ago. The whole is printed in Tamil, and the Syrian Bishop at Travancore is now
superintending a translation from Syriac into Malayala. I learnt this week that
the language of Kashmeer is a distinct language.
“I
have this day been to visit the most learned Hindoo now living; he speaks only
Sanskrit, is more than eighty years old, is acquainted with the writings and
has studied the sentiments of all their schools of philosophy (usually called
the Darshunas of the Veda). He tells me that this is the sixteenth time that he
has travelled from Rameshwaram to Harhu (viz. from the extreme cape of the
Peninsula to Benares). He was, he says, near Madras when the English first took
possession of it. This man has given his opinion against the burning of women.”
Four
years later, in another letter to Ryland, he takes us into his confidence more
fully, showing us not only his sacred workshop, but ingenuously revealing his
own humility and self-sacrifice:--“10th December 1811.--I have of
late been much impressed with the vast importance of laying a foundation for
Biblical criticism in the East, by preparing grammars of the different
languages into which we have translated or may translate the Bible. Without
some such step, they who follow us will have to wade through the same labour
that I have, in order to stand merely upon the same ground that I now stand
upon. If, however, elementary books are provided, the labour will be greatly
contracted; and a person will be able in a short time to acquire that which has
cost me years of study and toil.
“The
necessity which lies upon me of acquiring so many languages, obliges me to
study and write out the grammar of each of them, and to attend closely to their
irregularities and peculiarities. I have therefore already published grammars
of three of them; namely, the Sanskrit, the Bengali, and the Mahratta. To these
I have resolved to add grammars of the Telinga, Kurnata, Orissa, Punjabi,
Kashmeeri, Goojarati, Nepalese, and Assam languages. Two of these are now in
the press, and I hope to have two or three more of them out by the end of the
next year.
“This
may not only be useful in the way I have stated, but may serve to furnish an
answer to a question which has been more than once repeated, ‘How can these men
translate into so great a number of languages?’ Few people know what may be
done till they try, and persevere in what they undertake.
“I
am now printing a dictionary of the Bengali, which will be pretty large, for I
have got to page 256, quarto, and am not near through the first letter. That
letter, however, begins more words than any two others.
“To
secure the gradual perfection of the translations, I have also in my mind, and
indeed have been long collecting materials for, An Universal Dictionary of
the Oriental languages derived from the Sanskrit. I mean to take the
Sanskrit, of course, as the groundwork, and to give the different acceptations
of every word, with examples of their application, in the manner of Johnson,
and then to give the synonyms in the different languages derived from the
Sanskrit, with the Hebrew and Greek terms answering thereto; always putting the
word derived from the Sanskrit term first, and then those derived from other
sources. I intend always to give the etymology of the Sanskrit term, so that
that of the terms deduced from it in the cognate languages will be evident.
This work will be great, and it is doubtful whether I shall live to complete
it; but I mean to begin to arrange the materials, which I have been some years
collecting for this purpose, as soon as my Bengali dictionary is finished.
Should I live to accomplish this, and the translations in hand, I think I can
then say, ‘Lord, now lettest thou thy servant depart in peace.’”
The
ardent scholar had twenty-three years of toil before him in this happy work.
But he did not know this, while each year the labour increased, and the
apprehension grew that he and his colleagues might at any time be removed
without leaving a trained successor. They naturally looked first to the sons of
the mission for translators as they had already done for preachers.
To
Dr. Carey personally, however, the education of a young missionary specially
fitted to be his successor, as translator and editor of the translations, was
even more important. Such a man was found in William Yates, born in 1792, and
in the county, Leicestershire, in which Carey brought the Baptist mission to the
birth. Yates was in his early years also a shoemaker, and member of Carey’s old
church in Harvey Lane, when under the great Robert Hall, who said to the
youth’s father, “Your son, sir, will be a great scholar and a good preacher,
and he is a holy young man.” In 1814 he became the last of the young
missionaries devoted to the cause by Fuller, soon to pass away, Ryland, and
Hall. Yates had not been many months at Serampore when, with the approval of his brethren,
Carey wrote to Fuller, on 17th May 1815:--“I
am much inclined to associate him with myself in the translations. My labour is
greater than at any former period. We have now translations of the Bible going
forward in twenty-seven languages, all of which are in the press except two or
three. The labour of correcting and revising all of them lies on me.” By
September we find Yates writing:--“Dr. Carey sends all the Bengali proofs to me
to review. I read them over, and if there is anything I do not understand, or
think to be wrong, I mark it. We then converse over it, and if it is wrong, he
alters it; but if not, he shows me the reason why it is right, and thus will
initiate me into the languages as fast as I can learn them. He wishes me to
begin the Hindi very soon. Since I have been here I have read three volumes in
Bengali, and they have but six of consequence in prose. There are abundance in
Sanskrit.” “Dr. Carey has treated me with the greatest affection and kindness,
and told me he will give me every information he can, and do anything in his
power to promote my happiness.” What Baruch was to the prophet Jeremiah, that
Yates might have been to Carey, who went so far in urging him to remain for
life in Serampore as to say, “if he did not accept the service it would be, in
his judgment, acting against Providence, and the blessing of God was not to be
expected.” Yates threw in his lot with the younger men who, in Calcutta after
Fuller’s death, began the Society’s as distinct from the Serampore mission. If
Carey was the Wyclif and Tyndale, Yates was the Coverdale of the Bengali and
Sanskrit Bible. Wenger, their successor, was worthy of both. Bengal still waits
for the first native revision of the great work which these successive pioneers
have gradually improved. When shall Bengal see its own Luther?
The
Bengali Bible was the first as it was the most important of the translations.
The province, or lieutenant-governorship then had the same area as France, and
contained more than double its population, or eighty millions. Of the three
principal vernaculars, Bengali is spoken by forty-five millions of Hindoos and
Mohammedans. It was for all the natives of Bengal and of India north of the
Dekhan (“south”) tableland, but especially for the Bengali-speaking people,
that William Carey created a literary language a century ago.
The
first Bengali version of the whole New Testament Carey translated from the
original Greek before the close of 1796. The only English commentary used was
the Family Expositor of Doddridge, published in 1738, and then the most
critical in the language. Four times he revised the manuscript, with a Greek
concordance in his hand, and he used it not only with Ram Basu by his side, the
most accomplished of early Bengali scholars, but with the natives around him of
all classes. By 1800 Ward had arrived as printer, the press was perfected at
Serampore, and the result of seven years of toil appeared in February 1801, in
the first edition of 2000 copies, costing £612. The printing occupied nine
months. The type was set up by Ward and Carey’s son Felix with their own hands;
“for about a month at first we had a Brahman compositor, but we were quite
weary of him. We kept four pressmen constantly employed.” A public subscription
had been opened for the whole Bengali Bible at Rs. 32, or £4 a copy as exchange
then was, and nearly fifty copies had been at once subscribed for. It was this
edition which immediately led to Carey’s appointment to the College of Fort
William, and it was that appointment which placed Carey in a position,
philological and financial, to give the Bible to the peoples of the farther
East in their own tongue.
Some
loving memories cluster round the first Bengali version of the New Testament
which it is well to collect. On Tuesday, 18th March 1800, Ward’s journal19
records: “Brother Carey took an impression at the press of the first page in
Matthew.” The translator was himself the pressman. As soon as the whole of this
Gospel was ready, 500 copies of it were struck off for immediate circulation,
“which we considered of importance as containing a complete life of the
Redeemer.” Four days after an advertisement in the official Calcutta Gazette,
announcing that the missionaries had established a press at Serampore and were
printing the Bible in Bengali, roused Lord Wellesley, who had fettered the
press in British India. Mr. Brown was able to inform the Governor-General that
this very Serampore press had refused to print a political attack on the
English Government, and that it was intended for the spiritual instruction only
of the natives. This called forth the assurance from that liberal statesman
that he was personally favourable to the conversion of the heathen. When he was
further told that such an Oriental press would be invaluable to the College of
Fort William, he not only withdrew his opposition but made Carey first teacher
of Bengali. It
was on the 7th February 1801 that the last sheet with the final corrections was
put into Carey’s hands. When a volume had been bound it was reverently offered
to God by being placed on the Communion-table
of the chapel, and the mission families and the new-made converts gathered
around it with solemn thanksgiving to God led by Krishna Pal. Carey preached
from the words (Col. iii. 11) “Let the Word of Christ dwell in you richly in
all wisdom.” The centenary was celebrated in Calcutta in 1901, under Dr. Rouse,
whose fine scholarship had just revised the translation.
When
the first copies reached England, Andrew Fuller sent one to the second Earl
Spencer, the peer who had used the wealth of Sarah, Duchess of Marlborough, to
collect the great library at Althorp. Carey had been a poor tenant of his,
though the Earl knew it not. When the Bengali New Testament reached him, with
its story, he sent a cheque for £50 to help to translate the Old Testament, and
he took care that a copy should be presented to George III., as by his own
request. Mr. Bowyer was received one morning at Windsor, and along with the
volume presented an address expressing the desire that His Majesty might live
to see its principles universally prevail throughout his Eastern dominions. On
this the lord in waiting whispered a doubt whether the book had come through
the proper channel. At once the king replied that the Board of Control had
nothing to do with it, and turning to Mr. Bowyer said, “I am greatly pleased to
find that any of my subjects are employed in this manner.”
This
now rare volume, to be found on the shelves of the Serampore College Library,
where it leads the host of the Carey translations, is coarse and unattractive
in appearance compared with its latest successors. In truth the second edition,
which appeared in 1806, was almost a new version. The criticism of his
colleagues and others, especially of a ripe Grecian like Dr. Marshman, the
growth of the native church, and his own experience as a Professor of Sanskrit
and Marathi as well as Bengali, gave Carey new power in adapting the language
to the divine ideas of which he made it the medium. But the first edition was
not without its self-evidencing power. Seventeen years after, when the mission
extended to the old capital of Dacca, there were found several villages of
Hindoo-born peasants who had given up idol-worship, were renowned for their
truthfulness, and, as searching for a true teacher come from God, called
themselves “Satya-gooroos.” They traced their new faith to a much-worn book
kept in a wooden box in one of their villages. No one could say whence it had
come; all they knew was that they had possessed it for many years. It was
Carey’s first Bengali version of the New Testament of our Lord and Saviour
Jesus Christ. In the wide and elastic bounds of Hindooism, and even, as we
shall see, amid fanatical Mussulmans beyond the frontier, the Bible, dimly
understood without a teacher, has led to puritan sects like this, as to earnest
inquirers like the chamberlain of Queen Candace.
The
third edition of the Bengali Testament was published in 1811 in folio for the
use of the native congregations by that time formed. The fourth, consisting of
5000 copies, appeared in 1816, and the eighth in 1832. The venerable scholar,
like Columba at Iona over the thirty-fourth psalm, and Baeda at Jarrow over the
sixth chapter of John’s Gospel, said as he corrected the last sheet--the last
after forty years’ faithful and delighted toil: “My work is done; I have
nothing more to do but to wait the will of the Lord.” The Old Testament from
the Hebrew appeared in portions from 1802 to 1809. Such was the ardour of the
translator, that he had finished the correction of his version of the first
chapter of Genesis in January 1794. When he read it to two pundits from Nuddea,
he told Fuller in his journal of that month they seemed much pleased with the
account of the creation, but they objected to the omission of patala,
their imaginary place beneath the earth, which they thought should have been
mentioned. At this early period Carey saw the weakness of Hindooism as a
pretended revelation, from its identification with false physics, just as Duff
was to see and use it afterwards with tremendous effect, and wrote:--“There is
a necessity of explaining to them several circumstances relative to geography
and chronology, as they have many superstitious opinions on those subjects
which are closely connected with their systems of idolatry.” The Bengali Bible
was the result of fifteen years’ sweet toil, in which Marshman read the Greek
and Carey the Bengali; every one of their colleagues examined the proof sheets,
and Carey finally wrote with his own pen the whole of the five octavo volumes.
In the forty years of his missionary career Carey prepared and saw through the
press five editions of the Old Testament and eight editions of the New in
Bengali.
The
Sanskrit version was translated from the original, and written out by the
toiling scholar himself. Sir William Jones is said to have been able to secure
his first pundit’s help only by paying him Rs. 500 a month, or £700 a year. Carey engaged and trained his many pundits at a twentieth
of that sum. He well knew that the Brahmans would scorn a book in the language
of the common people. “What,” said one who was offered the Hindi version, “even
if the books should contain divine knowledge, they are nothing to us. The
knowledge of God contained in them is to us as milk in a vessel of dog’s skin,
utterly polluted.” But, writes the annalist of Biblical Translations in India,
Carey’s Sanskrit version was cordially received by the Brahmans. Destroyed in
the fire in 1812, the Old Testament historical books were again translated, and
appeared in 1815. In 1827 the aged saint had strength to bring out the first
volume of a thorough revision, and to leave the manuscript of the second
volume, on his death, as a legacy to his successors, Yates and Wenger. Against
Vedas and Upanishads, Brahmanas and Epics, he set the Sanskrit Bible.
The
whole number of completely translated and published versions of the sacred
Scriptures which Carey sent forth was twenty-eight. Of these seven included the
whole Bible, and twenty-one contained the books of the New Testament. Each
translation has a history, a spiritual romance of its own. Each became almost
immediately a silent but effectual missionary to the peoples of Asia, as well
as the scholarly and literary pioneer of those later editions and versions from
which the native churches of farther Asia derive the materials of their lively
growth.
The
Ooriya version was almost the first to be undertaken after the Bengali, to
which language it bears the same relation as rural Scotch to English, though it
has a written character of its own. What is now the Orissa division of Bengal,
separating it from Madras to the south-west, was added to the empire in 1803.
This circumstance, and the fact that its Pooree district, after centuries of
sun-worship and then shiva-worship, had become the high-place of the vaishnava
cult of Jaganath and his car, which attracted and often slew hundreds of
thousands of pilgrims every year, led Carey to prepare at once for the press
the Ooriya Bible. The chief pundit, Mritunjaya, skilled in both dialects, first
adapted the Bengali version to the language of the Ooriyas, which was his own.
Carey then took the manuscript, compared it with the original Greek, and
corrected it verse by verse. The New Testament was ready in 1809, and the Old
Testament in 1815, the whole in four volumes. Large editions were quickly
bought up and circulated. These led to the establishment of the General Baptist
Society’s missionaries at Cuttak, the capital.
In
1814 the Serampore Bible translation college, as we may call it, began the
preparation of the New Testament in Maghadi, another of the languages allied to
the Bengali, and derived from the Sanskrit through the Pali, because that was
the vernacular of Buddhism in its original seat; an edition of 1000 copies
appeared in 1824. It was intended to publish a version in the Maithili language
of Bihar, which has a literature stretching back to the fourteenth century,
that every class might have the Word of God in their own dialect. But Carey’s
literary enthusiasm and scholarship had by this time done so much to develop and
extend the power of Bengali proper, that it had begun to supersede all such
dialects, except Ooriya and the northern vernaculars of the valley of the
Brahmapootra. In 1810 the Serampore press added the Assamese New Testament to
its achievements. In 1819 the first edition appeared, in 1826 the province
became British, and in 1832 Carey had the satisfaction of issuing the Old
Testament, and setting apart Mr. Rae, a Scottish soldier, who had settled
there, as the first missionary at Gowhatti. To these must be added, as in the
Bengali character though non-Aryan languages, versions in Khasi and Manipoori,
the former for the democratic tribes of the Khasia hills among whom the Welsh
Calvinists have since worked, and the latter for the curious Hindoo snake-people
on the border of Burma, who have taught Europe the game of polo.
Another
immediate successor of the Bengali translation was the Marathi, of which also
Carey was professor in the College of Fort William. By 1804 he was himself hard
at work on this version, by 1811 the first edition of the New Testament
appeared, and by 1820 the Old Testament left the press. It was in a dialect
peculiar to Nagpoor, and was at first largely circulated by Lieutenant Moxon in
the army there. In 1812 Carey sent the missionary Aratoon to Bombay and Surat
just after Henry Martyn had written that the only Christian in the city who
understood his evangelical sermon was a ropemaker just arrived from England. At
the same time he was busy with a version in the dialect of the Konkan, the
densely-peopled coast district to the south of Bombay city, inhabited chiefly
by the ablest Brahmanical race in India. In 1819 the New Testament appeared in
this translation, having been under preparation at Serampore for eleven years.
Thus Carey sought to turn to Christ the twelve millions of Hindoos who, from
Western India above and below the great coast-range known as the Sahyadri or
“delectable” mountains, had nearly wrested the whole peninsula from the
Mohammedans, and had almost anticipated the life-giving rule of the British,
first at Panipat and then as Assye. Meanwhile new missionaries had been taking possession
of those western districts where the men of Serampore had sowed the first seed
and reaped the first fruits. The charter of 1813 made it possible for the
American Missionaries to land there, and for the local Bible Society to spring
into existence. Dr. John Wilson and his Scottish colleagues followed them.
Carey and his brethren welcomed these and retired from that field, confining
themselves to providing, during the next seven years, a Goojarati version for
the millions of Northern Bombay, including the hopeful Parsees, and resigning
that, too, to the London Missionary Society after issuing the New Testament in
1820.
Mr.
Christopher Anderson justly remarks, in his Annals of the English Bible,
published half a century ago:--“Time will show, and in a very singular manner,
that every version, without exception, which came from Carey’s hands, has a
value affixed to it which the present generation, living as it were too near an
object, is not yet able to estimate or descry. Fifty years hence the character
of this extraordinary and humble man will be more correctly appreciated.”
In
none of the classes of languages derived from the Sanskrit was the zeal of
Carey and his associates so remarkable as in the Hindi. So early as 1796 he
wrote of this the most widely extended offspring of the Sanskrit:--“I have
acquired so much of the Hindi as to converse in it and preach for some time
intelligibly...It is the current language of all the west from Rajmahal to
Delhi, and perhaps farther. With this I can be understood nearly all over
Hindostan.” By the time that he issued the sixth memoir of the translations
Chamberlain’s experiences in North-Western India led Carey to write that he had
ascertained the existence of twenty dialects of Hindi, with the same vocabulary
but different sets of terminations. The Bruj or Brijbhasa Gospels were finished
in 1813, two years after Chamberlain had settled in Agra, and the New Testament
was completed nine years after. This version of the Gospels led the Brahman
priest, Anand Masih, to Christ. In their eagerness for a copy of the Old
Testament, which appeared in 1818, many Sepoys brought testimonials from their
commanding officers, and in one year it led eighteen converts to Christ. The
other Hindi dialects, in which the whole New Testament or the Gospels appeared,
will be found at page 177 {see footnote number 16}. The parent Hindi
translation was made by Carey with his own hand from the original languages
between 1802 and 1807, and ran through many large editions till Mr. Chamberlain’s
was preferred by Carey himself in 1819.
We
may pass over the story of the Dravidian versions, the Telugoo20 New Testament
and Pentateuch, and the Kanarese. Nor need we do more than refer to the
Singhalese, “derived from the previous labours of Dr. Carey” by Tolfrey, the
Persian, Malayalam, and other versions made by others, but edited or carefully
carried through the press by Carey. The wonderful tale of his Bible work is
well illustrated by a man who, next to the Lawrences, was the greatest
Englishman who has governed the Punjab frontier, the hero of Mr. Ruskin’s book,
A Knight’s Faith. In that portion of his career which Sir Herbert
Edwardes gave to the world under the title of A Year on the Punjab Frontier
in 1848-49, and in which he describes his bloodless conquest of the wild
valley of Bunnoo, we find this gem embedded. The writer was at the time in the
Gundapoor country, of which Kulachi is the trade-centre between the Afghan pass
of Ghwalari and Dera Ismail Kan, where the dust of Sir Henry Durand now lies:--
“A
highly interesting circumstance connected with the Indian trade came under my
notice. Ali Khan, Gundapoor, the uncle of the present chief, Gooldâd
Khan, told me he could remember well, as a youth, being sent by his father and
elder brother with a string of Cabul horses to the fair of Hurdwâr,
on the Ganges. He also showed me a Pushtoo version of the Bible, printed at
Serampore in 1818, which he said had been given him thirty years before at
Hurdwâr by an English gentleman, who told him to ‘take care of it, and neither
fling it into the fire nor the river; but hoard it up against the day when the
British should be rulers of his country!’ Ali Khan said little to anybody of
his possessing this book, but put it carefully by in a linen cover, and produced
it with great mystery when I came to settle the revenue of his nephew’s
country, ‘thinking that the time predicted by the Englishman had arrived!’ The
only person, I believe, to whom he had shown the volume was a Moolluh, who read
several passages in the Old Testament, and told Ali Khan ‘it was a true story, and was all
about their own Muhommudan prophets, Father Moses and Father Noah.’
“I
examined the book with great interest. It was not printed in the Persian
character, but the common Pushtoo language of Afghanistan; and was the only
specimen I had ever seen of Pushtoo reduced to writing. The accomplishment of
such a translation was a highly honourable proof of the zeal and industry of
the Serampore mission; and should these pages ever meet the eye of Mr. John
Marshman, of Serampore,21 whose own pen is consistently guided by a love of
civil order and religious truth, he may probably be able to identify ‘the
English gentleman’ who, thirty-two years ago on the banks of the Ganges, at the
then frontier of British India, gave to a young Afghan chief, from beyond the
distant Indus, a Bible in his own barbarous tongue, and foresaw the day when
the followers of the ‘Son of David’ should extend their dominion to the ‘Throne
of Solomon.’”
Hurdwâr,
as the spot at which the Ganges debouches into the plains, is the scene of the
greatest pilgrim gathering in India, especially every twelfth year. Then three
millions of people used to assemble, and too often carried, all over Asia,
cholera which extended to Europe. The missionaries made this, like most pilgrim
resorts, a centre of preaching and Bible circulation, and doubtless it was from
Thompson, Carey’s Missionary at Delhi, that this copy of the Pushtoo Bible was
received. It was begun by Dr. Leyden, and continued for seven years by the same
Afghan maulavee under Carey, in the Arabic character. The Punjabi Bible, nearly
complete, issued first in 1815, had become so popular by 1820 as to lead Carey
to report of the Sikhs that no one of the nations of India had discovered a
stronger desire for the Scriptures than this hardy race. At Amritsar and Lahore
“the book of Jesus is spoken of, is read, and has caused a considerable stir in
the minds of the people.” A Thug, asked how he could have committed so many
murders, pointed to it and said, “If I had had this book I could not have done
it.” A fakeer, forty miles from Lodiana, read the book, founded the community
of worshippers of the Sachi Pitè Isa, and suffered much persecution in a native State.
When
Felix Carey returned to Serampore in 1812 to print his Burmese version of the
Gospel of Matthew and his Burmese grammar, his father determined to send the
press at which they were completed to Rangoon. The three missionaries
despatched with it a letter to the king of Ava, commending to his care “their
beloved brethren, who from love to his majesty’s subjects had voluntarily gone
to place themselves under his protection, while they translated the Bible, the
Book of Heaven, which was received and revered” by all the countries of Europe
and America as “the source whence all the knowledge of virtue and religion was
drawn.” The king at once ordered from Serampore a printing-press, like that at
Rangoon, for his own palace at Ava, with workmen to use it. In this Carey saw
the beginning of a mission in the Burman capital, but God had other designs
which the sons and daughters of America, following Judson first of all, are
still splendidly developing, from Rangoon to Kareng-nee, Siam, and China. The
ship containing the press sank in the Rangoon river, and the first Burmese war
soon followed.
Three
months after the complete and magnificent plan of translating the Bible into
all the languages of the far East, which the assistance of his two colleagues
and the college of Fort William led Carey to form, had been laid before Fuller
in Northamptonshire, the British and Foreign Bible Society was founded in
London. Joseph Hughes, the Nonconformist who was its first secretary, had been
moved by the need of the Welsh for the Bible in their own tongue. But the
ex-Governor-General, Lord Teignmouth, became its first president, and the
Serampore translators at once turned for assistance to the new organisation
whose work Carey had individually been doing for ten years at the cost of his
two associates and himself. The catholic Bible Society at once asked Carey’s
old friend, Mr. Udny, then a member of the Government in Calcutta, to form a
corresponding committee there of the three missionaries--their chaplain
friends, Brown and Buchanan, and himself. The chaplains delayed the formation
of the committee till 1809, but liberally helped meanwhile in the circulation
of the other appeals issued from Serampore, and even made the proposal which
resulted in Dr. Marshman’s wonderful version of the Bible in Chinese and Ward’s
improvements in Chinese printing. To the principal tributary sovereigns of
India Dr. Buchanan sent copies of the vernacular Scriptures already published.
From
1809 till 1830, or practically through the rest of Carey’s life, the
co-operation of Serampore and the Bible Society was honourable to both. Carey
loyally clung to it when in 1811, under the spell of Henry Martyn’s sermon on
Christian India, the
chaplains established the Calcutta Auxiliary Bible Society in order to
supersede its corresponding committee. In the
Serampore press the new auxiliary, like the parent Society, found the cheapest
and best means of publishing editions of the New Testament in Singhalese,
Malayalam, and Tamil. The press issued also the Persian New Testament, first of
the Romanist missionary, Sebastiani--“though it be not wholly free from
imperfections, it will doubtless do much good,” wrote Dr. Marshman to
Fuller--and then of Henry Martyn, whose assistant, Sabat, was trained at
Serampore. Those three of Serampore had a Christ-like tolerance, which sprang
from the divine charity of their determination to live only that the Word of
God might sound out through Asia. When in 1830 this auxiliary--which had at
first sought to keep all missionaries out of its executive in order to
conciliate men like Sydney Smith’s brother, the Advocate-General of
Bengal--refused to use the translations of Carey and Yates, and inclined to an
earlier version of Ellerton, because of the translation or transliteration of
the Greek words for “baptism,” these two scholars acted thus, as described by
the Bible Society’s annalist--they, “with a liberality which does them honour,
permitted the use of their respective versions of the Bengali Scriptures, with
such alterations as were deemed needful in the disputed word for ‘baptism,’
they being considered in no way parties to such alterations.” From first to
last the British and Foreign Bible Society, to use its own language, “had the
privilege of aiding the Serampore brethren by grants, amounting to not less
than £13,500.” Of this £1475 had been raised by Mr. William Hey, F.R.S., a
surgeon at Leeds, who had been so moved by the translation memoir of 1816 as to
offer £500 for the publication of a thousand copies of every approved first
translation of the New Testament into any dialect of India. It was with this
assistance that most of the Hindi and the Pushtoo and Punjabi versions were
produced.
The
cold season of 1811-12 was one ever to be remembered. Death entered the home of
each of the staff of seven missionaries and carried off wife or children. An
earthquake of unusual violence alarmed the natives. Dr. Carey had buried a
grandson, and was at his weekly work in the college at Calcutta. The sun had
just set on the evening of the 11th March 1812, and the native typefounders,
compositors, pressmen, binders, and writers had gone. Ward alone lingered in
the waning light at his desk settling an account with a few servants. His two
rooms formed the north end of the long printing-office. The south rooms were filled with paper and
printed materials. Close beyond was the paper-mill. The Bible-publishing
enterprise was at its height. Fourteen founts of Oriental types, new supplies
of Hebrew, Greek, and English types, a vast stock of paper from the Bible
Society, presses, priceless manuscripts of dictionaries, grammars, and
translations, and, above all, the steel punches of the Eastern letters--all
were there, with the deeds and account-books of the property, and the iron safe
containing notes and rupees. Suffocating smoke burst from the long type-room
into the office. Rushing through it to observe the source of the fire, he was
arrested at the southern rooms by the paper store. Returning with difficulty
and joined by Marshman and the natives, he had every door and window closed,
and then mounting the south roof, he had water poured through it upon the
burning mass for four hours, with the most hopeful prospect of arresting the
ruin. While he was busy with Marshman in removing the papers in the north end
some one opened a window, when the air set the entire building on flame. By
midnight the roof fell in along its whole length, and the column of fire leapt
up towards heaven. With “solemn serenity” the members of the mission family
remained seated in front of the desolation.
The
ruins were still smoking when next evening Dr. Carey arrived from Calcutta,
which was ringing with the sad news. The venerable scholar had suffered most,
for his were the manuscripts; the steel punches were found uninjured. The Sikh
and Telugoo grammars and ten Bible versions in the press were gone. Second
editions of Confucius. A Dissertation on the Chinese Language, and of
Ward on the Hindoos, and smaller works were destroyed. The translation of
the Ramayana, on which he and Marshman had been busy for a year, was
stopped for ever; fifty years after the present writer came upon some charred
sheets of the fourth volume, which had been on the press and rescued. The Circular
Letter for April 1812 is printed on paper scorched at the edge. Worst of all
was the loss of that polyglot dictionary of all the languages derived from the
Sanskrit which, if Carey had felt any of this world’s ambition, would have
perpetuated his name in the first rank of philologists.
With
the delicacy which always marked him Dr. Marshman had himself gone down to
Calcutta next morning to break the news to Carey, who received it with choking
utterance. The two then called on the friendly chaplain, Thomason, who burst
into tears. When the afternoon tide enabled the three to reach Serampore, after a two
hours’ hard pull at the flood, they found Ward rejoicing. He had been all day
clearing away the rubbish, and had just discovered the punches and matrices
unharmed. The five presses too were untouched. He had already opened out a long
warehouse nearer the river-shore, the lease of which
had fallen in to them, and he had already planned the occupation of that
uninviting place in which the famous press of Serampore and, at the last, the Friend
of India weekly newspaper found a home till 1875. The description of the
scene and of its effect on Carey by an eye-witness like Thomason has a value of
its own:--
“The
year 1812 was ushered in by an earthquake which was preceded by a loud noise;
the house shook; the oil in the lamps on the walls was thrown out; the birds
made a frightful noise; the natives ran from their houses, calling on the names
of their gods; the sensation is most awful; we read the forty-sixth Psalm. This
fearful prodigy was succeeded by that desolating disaster, the Serampore fire.
I could scarcely believe the report; it was like a blow on the head which
stupefies. I flew to Serampore to witness the desolation. The scene was indeed
affecting. The immense printing-office, two hundred feet long and fifty broad,
reduced to a mere shell. The yard covered with burnt quires of paper, the loss
in which article was immense. Carey walked with me over the smoking ruins. The
tears stood in his eyes. ‘In one short evening,’ said he, ‘the labours of years
are consumed. How unsearchable are the ways of God! I had lately brought some
things to the utmost perfection of which they seemed capable, and contemplated
the missionary establishment with perhaps too much self-congratulation. The
Lord has laid me low, that I may look more simply to Him.’ Who could stand in
such a place, at such a time, with such a man, without feelings of sharp regret
and solemn exercise of mind. I saw the ground strewed with half-consumed paper,
on which in the course of a very few months the words of life would have been
printed. The metal under our feet amidst the ruins was melted into misshapen
lumps--the sad remains of beautiful types consecrated to the service of the
sanctuary. All was smiling and promising a few hours before--now all is
vanished into smoke or converted into rubbish! Return now to thy books, regard
God in all thou doest. Learn Arabic with humility. Let God be exalted in all
thy plans, and purposes, and labours; He can do without thee.”
Carey
himself thus wrote of the disaster to Dr. Ryland:--“25th March
1812.--The loss is very great, and will long be severely felt; yet I can think
of a hundred circumstances which would have made it much more difficult to
bear. The Lord has smitten us, he had a right to do so, and we deserve his
corrections. I wish to submit to His sovereign will, nay, cordially to
acquiesce therein, and to examine myself rigidly to see what in me has
contributed to this evil.
“I
now, however, turn to the bright side; and here I might mention what still
remains to us, and the merciful circumstances which attend even this stroke of
God’s rod; but I will principally notice what will tend to cheer the heart of
every one who feels for the cause of God. Our loss, so far as I can see, is
reparable in a much shorter time than I should at first have supposed. The
Tamil fount of types was the first that we began to recast. I expect it will be
finished by the end of this week, just a fortnight after it was begun. The next
will be the small Devanagari, for the Hindostani Scriptures, and next the
larger for the Sanskrit. I hope this will be completed in another month. The
other founts, viz., Bengali, Orissa, Sikh, Telinga, Singhalese, Mahratta,
Burman, Kashmeerian, Arabic, Persian, and Chinese, will follow in order, and
will probably be finished in six or seven months, except the Chinese, which
will take more than a year to replace it. I trust, therefore, that we shall not
be greatly delayed. Our English works will be delayed the longest; but in
general they are of the least importance. Of MSS. burnt I have suffered the
most; that is, what was actually prepared by me, and what owes its whole
revision for the press to me, comprise the principal part of the MSS. consumed.
The ground must be trodden over again, but no delay in printing need arise from
that. The translations are all written out first by pundits in the different
languages, except the Sanskrit which is dictated by me to an amanuensis. The
Sikh, Mahratta, Hindostani, Orissa, Telinga, Assam, and Kurnata are
re-translating in rough by pundits who have been long accustomed to their work,
and have gone over the ground before. I follow them in revise, the chief part
of which is done as the sheets pass through the press, and is by far the
heaviest part of the work. Of the Sanskrit only the second book of Samuel and
the first book of Kings were lost. Scarcely any of the Orissa, and none of the
Kashmeerian or of the Burman MSS. were lost--copy for about thirty pages of my
Bengali dictionary, the whole copy of a Telinga grammar, part of the copy of
the grammar of Punjabi or Sikh language, and all the materials which I had been
long collecting for a dictionary of all the languages derived from the Sanskrit.
I hope, however, to be enabled to repair the loss, and to complete my favourite
scheme, if my life be prolonged.”
Little
did these simple scholars, all absorbed in their work, dream that this fire
would prove to be the means of making them and their work famous all over Europe and
America as well as India. Men of every Christian school, and men interested
only in the literary and secular side of their enterprise, had their active
sympathy called out. The mere money loss, at the exchange of the day, was not
under ten thousand pounds. In fifty days this was raised in England and
Scotland alone, till Fuller, returning from his last campaign, entered the room
of his committee, declaring “we must stop the contributions.” In Greenock, for
instance, every place of worship on one Sunday collected money. In the United
States Mr. Robert Ralston, a Presbyterian, a merchant of Philadelphia, who as
Carey’s correspondent had been the first American layman to help missions to
India, and Dr. Staughton, who had taken an interest in the formation of the
Society in 1792 before he emigrated, had long assisted the translation work,
and now that Judson was on his way out they redoubled their exertions. In India
Thomason’s own congregation sent the missionaries
£800, and Brown wrote from his dying bed a message of loving help. The
newspapers of Calcutta caught the enthusiasm; one leading article concluded
with the assurance that the Serampore press would, “like the phoenix of
antiquity, rise from its ashes, winged with new strength, and destined, in a
lofty and long-enduring flight, widely to diffuse the benefits of knowledge
throughout the East.” The day after the fire ceased to smoke Monohur was at the
task of casting type from the lumps of the molten metal.
In
two months after the first intelligence Fuller was able to send as “feathers of
the phoenix” slips of sheets of the Tamil Testament, printed from these types,
to the towns and churches which had subscribed. Every fortnight a fount was
cast; in a month all the native establishment was at work night and day. In six
months the whole loss in Oriental types was repaired. The Ramayana version and
Sanskrit polyglot dictionary were never resumed. But of the Bible translations
and grammars, Carey and his two heroic brethren wrote:--“We found, on making
the trial, that the advantages in going over the same ground a second time were
so great that they fully counter-balanced the time requisite to be devoted
thereto in a second translation.” The fire, in truth, the cause of which was
never discovered, and insurance against which did not exist in India, had given
birth to revised editions.
CHAPTER
XI
WHAT
CAREY DID FOR LITERATURE AND FOR HUMANITY
The
growth of a language--Carey identified with the transition stage of Bengali--First
printed books--Carey’s own works--His influence on indigenous writers--His
son’s works--Bengal the first heathen country to receive the press--The first
Bengali newspaper--The monthly and quarterly Friend of India--The Hindoo
revival of the eighteenth century fostered by the East India Company--Carey’s
three memorials to Government on female infanticide, voluntary drowning, and
widow-burning--What Jonathan Duncan and Col. Walker had done--Wellesley’s
regulation to prevent the sacrifice of children--Beginning of the agitation
against the Suttee crime--Carey’s pundits more enlightened than the Company’s
judges--Humanity triumphs in 1832--Carey’s share in Ward’s book on the
Hindoos--The lawless supernaturalism of Rome and of India--Worship of
Jaganath--Regulation identifying Government with Hindooism--The swinging
festival--Ghat murders--Burning of lepers--Carey establishes the Leper Hospital
in Calcutta--Slavery in India loses its legal status--Cowper, Clarkson, and
Carey.
LIKE
the growth of a tree is the development of a language, as really and as
strictly according to law. In savage lands like those of Africa the missionary
finds the living germs of speech, arranges them for the first time in
grammatical order, expresses them in written and printed form, using the
simplest, most perfect, and most universal character of all--the Roman, and at
one bound gives the most degraded of the dark peoples the possibility of the
highest civilisation and the divinest future. In countries like India and
China, where civilisation has long ago reached its highest level, and has been
declining for want of the salt of a universal Christianity, it is the
missionary again who interferes for the highest ends, but by a different
process. Mastering the complex classical speech and literature of the learned
and priestly class, and living with his Master’s sympathy among the people whom
that class oppresses, he takes the popular dialects which are instinct with the
life of the future; where they are wildly luxuriant he brings them under law,
where they are barren he enriches them from the parent stock so as to make them
the vehicle of ideas such as Greek gave to Europe, and in time he brings to the
birth nations worthy of the name by a national language and literature lighted up
with the ideas of the Book which he is the first to translate.
This
was what Carey did for the speech of the Bengalees. To them, as the historians
of the fast approaching Christian future will recognise, he was made what the
Saxon Boniface had become to the Germans, or the Northumbrian Baeda and Wyclif
to the English. The transition period of English, from 1150 when its modern
grammatical form prevailed, to the fifteenth century when the rich dialects
gave place to the literary standard, has its central date in 1362. Then Edward
the Third made English take the place of French as the public language of
justice and legislation, closely followed by Wyclif’s English Bible. Carey’s
one Indian life of forty years marks the similar transition stage of Bengali,
including the parallel regulation of 1829, which abolished Persian, made by the
Mohammedan conquerors the language of the courts, and put in its place Bengali
and the vernaculars of the other provinces.
When
Carey began to work in Calcutta and Dinapoor in 1792-93 Bengali had no printed
and hardly any written literature. The very written characters were justly
described by Colebrooke as nothing else but the difficult and beautiful
Sanskrit Devanagari deformed for the sake of expeditious writings, such as
accounts. It was the new vaishnava faith of the Nuddea reformer Chaitanya which
led to the composition of the first Bengali prose.22 The Brahmans and the
Mohammedan rulers alike treated Bengali--though “it arose from the tomb of the
Sanskrit,” as Italian did from Latin under Dante’s inspiration--as fit only for
“demons and women.” In the generation before Carey there flourished at the same
Oxford of India, as Nuddea has been called, Raja Krishna Rai, who did for
Bengali what our own King Alfred accomplished for English prose. Moved,
however, chiefly by a zeal for Hindooism, which caused him to put a Soodra to
death for marrying into a Brahman family, he himself wrote the vernacular and
spent money in gifts, which “encouraged the people to study Bengali with
unusual diligence.” But when, forty years after that, Carey visited Nuddea he
could not discover more than forty separate works, all in manuscript, as the
whole literature of 30,000,000 of people up to that time. A press had been at
work on the opposite side of the river for fifteen years, but Halhed’s grammar
was still the only as it was the most ancient printed book. One Baboo Ram, from
Upper India, was the first native who established a press in Calcutta, and that
only under the influence of Colebrooke, to print the Sanskrit classics. The
first Bengali who, on his own account, printed works in the vernacular on trade
principles, was Gunga Kishore, whom Carey and Ward had trained at Serampore. He
soon made so large a fortune by his own press that three native rivals had
sprung up by 1820, when twenty-seven separate books, or 15,000 copies, had been
sold to natives within ten years.
For
nearly all these Serampore supplied the type. But all were in another sense the
result of Carey’s action. His first edition of the Bengali New Testament
appeared in 1801, his Grammar in the same year, and at the same time his
Colloquies, or “dialogues intended to facilitate the acquiring of the
Bengali language,” which he wrote out of the abundance of his knowledge of
native thought, idioms, and even slang, to enable students to converse with all
classes of society, as Erasmus had done in another way. His Dictionary
of 80,000 words began to appear in 1815. Knowing, however, that in the long run
the literature of a nation must be of indigenous growth, he at once pressed the
natives into this service. His first pundit, Ram Basu, was a most accomplished
Bengali scholar. This able man, who lacked the courage to profess Christ in the
end, wrote the first tract, the Gospel Messenger, and the first pamphlet
exposing Hindooism, both of which had an enormous sale and caused much
excitement. On the historical side Carey induced him to publish in 1801 the Life
of Raja Pratapaditya, the last king of Sagar Island. At first the new
professor could not find reading books for his Bengali class in the college of
Fort William. He, his pundits, especially Mritunjaya who has been compared in
his physique and knowledge to Dr. Samuel Johnson, and even the young civilian
students, were for many years compelled to write Bengali text-books, including
translations of Virgil’s Æneid and Shakspere’s Tempest. The School Book Society took up the
work, encouraging such a man as Ram Komal Sen, the printer who became chief
native official of the Bank of Bengal and father of the late Keshab Chunder
Sen, to prepare his Bengali dictionary. Self-interest soon enlisted the
haughtiest Brahmans in the work of producing school and reading books, till now
the Bengali language is to India what the Italian is to Europe, and its native
literature is comparatively as rich. Nor was Carey without his European
successor in the good work for a time. When his son Felix died in 1823 he was
bewailed as the coadjutor
of Ram Komal Sen, as the author of the first volume of a Bengali encyclopædia on
anatomy, as the translator of Bunyan’s Pilgrim, Goldsmith’s History
of England, and Mill’s History of India.
Literature
cannot be said to exist for the people till the newspaper appears. Bengal was
the first non-Christian country into which the press had ever been introduced.
Above all forms of truth and faith Christianity seeks free discussion; in place
of that the missionaries lived under a shackled press law tempered by the
higher instincts of rulers like Wellesley, Hastings, and Bentinck, till Macaulay
and Metcalfe gained for it liberty. When Dr. Marshman in 1818 proposed the
publication of a Bengali periodical, Dr. Carey, impressed by a quarter of a
century’s intolerance, consented only on the condition that it should be a
monthly magazine, and should avoid political discussion. Accordingly the Dig-darshan
appeared, anticipating in its contents and style the later Penny and Saturday
Magazines, and continued for three years. Its immediate success led to the
issue from the Serampore press on the 31st May 1818, of “the first newspaper
ever printed in any Oriental language”--the Samachar Darpan, or News
Mirror.
It
was a critical hour when the first proof of the first number was laid before
the assembled brotherhood at the weekly meeting on Friday evening. Dr. Carey,
fearing for his spiritual work, but eager for this new avenue to the minds of
the people who were being taught to read, and had little save their own
mythology, consented to its publication when Dr. Marshman promised to send a
copy, with an analysis of its contents in English, to the Government, and to
stop the enterprise if it should be officially disapproved. Lord Hastings was
fighting the Pindarees, and nothing was said by his Council. On his return he
declared that “the effect of such a paper must be extensively and importantly
useful.” He allowed it to circulate by post at one-fourth the then heavy rate.
The natives welcomed their first newspaper. Although it avoided religious
controversy, in a few weeks an opposition journal was issued by a native, who
sought to defend Hindooism under the title of the Destroyer of Darkness.
To the Darpan the educated natives looked as the means of bringing the
oppression of their own countrymen to the knowledge of the public and the
authorities. Government found it most useful for contradicting silly rumours
and promoting contentment if not loyalty. The paper gave a new development to
the Bengali language as well as to the moral and political education of the
people.
The
same period of liberty to the press and to native advancement, with which the
names of the Marquis of Hastings and his accomplished wife will ever be
associated, saw the birth of an English periodical which, for the next
fifty-seven years, was to become not merely famous but powerfully useful as the
Friend of India. The title was the selection of Dr. Marshman, and the
editorial management was his and his able son’s down to 1852, when it passed
into the hands of Mr. Meredith Townsend, long the most brilliant of English
journalists, and finally into those of the present writer. For some years a
monthly and for a time a quarterly magazine till 1835, when Mr. John Marshman
made it the well-known weekly, this journal became the means through which
Carey and the brotherhood fought the good fight of humanity. In the monthly and
quarterly Friend, moreover, reprinted as much of it was in London, the
three philanthropists brought their ripe experience and lofty principles to
bear on the conscience of England and of educated India alike. As, on the Oriental
side, Carey chose for his weapon the vernacular, on the other he drew from
Western sources the principles and the thoughts which he clothed in a Bengali
dress.
We
have already seen how Carey at the end of the eighteenth century found
Hindooism at its worst. Steadily had the Pooranic corruption and the
Brahmanical oppression gone on demoralising the whole of Hindoo society. In the
period of virtual anarchy, which covered the seventy-five years from the death
of Aurangzeb to the supremacy of Warren Hastings and the reforms of Lord
Cornwallis, the healthy zeal of Islam against the idolatrous abominations of
the Hindoos had ceased. In its place there was not only a wild licence
amounting to an undoubted Hindoo revival, marked on the political side by the Maratha
ascendency, but there came to be deliberate encouragement of the worst forms of
Hindooism by the East India Company and its servants. That “the mischievous
reaction” on England from India--its idolatry, its women, its nabobs, its
wealth, its absolutism--was prevented, and European civilisation was “after
much delay and hesitation” brought to bear on India, was due indeed to the
legislation of Governor-Generals from Cornwallis to Bentinck, but much more, to
the persistent agitation of Christian missionaries, notably Carey and Duff. For
years Carey stood alone in India, as Grant and Wilberforce did in England, in
the darkest hour of England’s moral degradation and spiritual death, when the men who were
shaping the destinies of India were the Hindooising Stewarts and Youngs,
Prendergasts, Twinings, and Warings, some of whom hated missions from the dread
of sedition, others because their hearts “seduced by fair idolatresses had
fallen to idols foul.”
The
most atrociously inhuman of all the Brahmanical customs, and yet the most
universal, from the land of the five rivers at Lahore to the far spice islands
at Bali, was the murder of widows by burning or burying them alive with the
husband’s corpse. We have seen how the first of the many such scenes which he
was doomed to witness for the next thirty years affected Carey. After
remonstrances, which the people met first by argument and then by surly
threats, Carey wrote:--“I told them I would not go, that I was determined to
stay and see the murder, and that I should certainly bear witness of it at the
tribunal of God.” And when he again sought to interfere because the two stout
bamboos always fixed for the purpose of preventing the victim’s escape were
pressed down on the shrieking woman like levers, and they persisted, he wrote:
“We could not bear to see more, but left them exclaiming loudly against the
murder and full of horror at what we had seen.” The remembrance of that sight
never left Carey. His naturally cheerful spirit was inflamed to indignation all
his life through, till his influence, more than that of any other one man, at
last prevailed to put out for ever the murderous pyre. Had Lord Wellesley
remained Governor-General a year longer Carey would have succeeded in 1808,
instead of having to wait till 1829, and to know as he waited and prayed that
literally every day saw the devilish smoke ascending along the banks of the
Ganges, and the rivers and pools considered sacred by the Hindoos. Need we
wonder that when on a Sunday morning the regulation of Lord William Bentinck
prohibiting the crime reached him as he was meditating his sermon, he sent for
another to do the preaching, and taking his pen in his hand, at once wrote the
official translation, and had it issued in the Bengali Gazette that not
another day might be added to the long black catalogue of many centuries?
On
the return of the Marquis Wellesley to Calcutta from the Tipoo war, and his own
appointment to the College of Fort William, Carey felt that his time had come
to prevent the murder of the innocents all over India in the three forms of
female infanticide, voluntary drowning, and widow-burning or burying alive. His
old friend, Udny, having become a member of Council or colleague of the
Governor-General, he prepared three memorials to Government on each of these
crimes. When afterwards he had enlisted Claudius Buchanan in the good work, and
had employed trustworthy natives to collect statistics proving that in the
small district around Calcutta 275 widow murders thus took place in six months
of 1803, and when he was asked by Dr. Ryland to state the facts which, with his
usual absence of self-regarding, he had not reported publicly, or even in
letters home, he thus replied:--
“27th
April 1808.--The report of the burning of women, and some others,
however, were made by me. I, at his expense, however, made the inquiries and
furnished the reports, and believe they are rather below the truth than above
it. I have, since I have been here, through a different medium, presented three
petitions or representations to Government for the purpose of having the
burning of women and other modes of murder abolished, and have succeeded in the
case of infanticide and voluntary drowning in the river. Laws were made to
prevent these, which have been successful.”
But
there was a crime nearer home, committed in the river flowing past his own
door, and especially at Sagar Island, where the Ganges loses itself in the
ocean. At that tiger-haunted spot, shivering in the cold of the winter
solstice, every year multitudes of Hindoos, chiefly wives with children and
widows with heavy hearts, assembled to wash away their sins--to sacrifice the
fruit of their body for the sin of their soul. Since 1794, when Thomas and he
had found in a basket hanging on a tree the bones of an infant exposed, to be
devoured by the white ants, by some mother too poor to go on pilgrimage to a
sacred river-spot, Carey had known this unnatural horror. He and his brethren
had planned a preaching tour to Sagar, where not only mothers drowned their
first born in payment of a vow, with the encouragement of the Brahmans, but
widows and even men walked into the deep sea and drowned themselves at the spot
where Ganga and Sagar kiss each other, “as the highest degree of holiness, and
as securing immediate heaven.” The result of Carey’s memorial was the
publication of the Regulation for preventing the sacrifice of children at Sagar
and other places on the Ganges:--“It has been represented to the
Governor-General in Council that a criminal and inhuman practice of sacrificing
children, by exposing them to be drowned or devoured by sharks,
prevails...Children thrown into the sea at Sagar have not been generally
rescued...but the sacrifice has been effected with circumstances of peculiar
atrocity in some instances. This practice is not sanctioned by the Hindoo law, nor
countenanced by the religious orders.” It was accordingly declared to be
murder, punishable with death. At each pilgrim gathering sepoys were stationed
to check the priests and the police, greedy of bribes, and to prevent fanatical
suicides as well as superstitious murders.
The
practice of infanticide was really based on the recommendation of Sati,
literally the “method of purity” which the Hindoo shastras require when they
recommend the bereaved wife to burn with her husband. Surely, reasoned the
Rajpoots, we may destroy a daughter by abortion, starvation, suffocation,
strangulation, or neglect, of whose marriage in the line of caste and dignity
of family there is little prospect, if a widow may be burned to preserve her
chastity!
In
answer to Carey’s third memorial Lord Wellesley took the first step, on 5th
February 1805, in the history of British India, two centuries after Queen
Elizabeth had given the Company its mercantile charter, and half a century
after Plassey had given it political power, to protect from murder the widows
who had been burned alive, at least since the time of Alexander the Great. This
was the first step in the history of British but not of Mohammedan India, for
our predecessors had by decree forbidden and in practice discouraged the crime.
Lord Wellesley’s colleagues were still the good Udny, the great soldier Lord
Lake and Sir George Barlow. The magistrate of Bihar had on his own authority
prevented a child-widow of twelve, when drugged by the Brahmans, from being
burned alive, after which, he wrote, “the girl and her friends were extremely
grateful for my interposition.” Taking advantage of this case, the Government
asked the appellate judges, all Company’s servants, to “ascertain how far the
practice is founded on the religious opinions of the Hindoos. If not founded on
any precept of their law, the Governor-General in Council hopes that the custom
may gradually, if not immediately, be altogether abolished. If, however, the
entire abolition should appear to the Court to be impracticable in itself, or
inexpedient, as offending any established religious opinion of the Hindoos,”
the Court were desired to consider the best means of preventing the abuses,
such as the use of drugs and the sacrifice of those of immature age. But the
preamble of this reference to the judges declared it to be one of the
fundamental principles of the British Government to consult the religious
opinions of the natives, “consistently with the principles of morality,
reason, and humanity.” There spoke Carey and Udny, and Wellesley himself.
But for another quarter of a century the funeral pyres were to blaze with the
living also, because that caveat was set aside, that fundamental maxim of the
constitution of much more than the British Government--of the conscience of
humanity, was carefully buried up. The judges asked the pundits whether the
woman is “enjoined” by the shaster voluntarily to burn herself with the body of
her husband. They replied “every woman of the four castes is permitted
to burn herself,” except in certain cases enumerated, and they quoted Manoo,
who is against the custom in so far as he says that a virtuous wife ascends to
heaven if she devotes herself to pious austerities after the decease of her
lord.
This
opinion would have been sufficient to give the requisite native excuse to
Government for the abolition, but the Nizamat Adawlat judges urged the
“principle” of “manifesting every possible indulgence to the religious opinions
and prejudices of the natives,” ignoring morality, reason, and humanity alike.
Lord Wellesley’s long and brilliant administration of eight years was virtually
at an end: in seven days he was to embark for home. The man who had preserved
the infants from the sharks of Sagar had to leave the widows and their children
to be saved by the civilians Carey and he had personally trained, Metcalfe and
Bayley, who by 1829 had risen to Council and become colleagues of Lord W.
Bentinck. But Lord Wellesley did this much, he declined to notice the so-called
“prohibitory regulations” recommended by the civilian judges. These, when
adopted in the year 1812, made the British Government responsible by
legislation for every murder thereafter, and greatly increased the number of
murders. From that date the Government of India decided “to allow the
practice,” as recognised and encouraged by the Hindoo religion, except in cases
of compulsion, drugging, widows under sixteen, and proved pregnancy. The
police--natives--were to be present, and to report every case. At the very time
the British Parliament were again refusing in the charter discussions of 1813
for another twenty years to tolerate Christianity in its Eastern dependency,
the Indian legislature legalised the burning and burying alive of widows, who
numbered at least 6000 in nine only of the next sixteen years, from 1815 to
1823 inclusive.
From
Plassey in 1757 to 1829, three quarters of a century, Christian England was
responsible, at first indirectly and then most directly, for the known
immolation of at least 70,000 Hindoo widows. Carey was the first to move the
authorities; Udny
and Wellesley were the first to begin action against an atrocity so long
continued and so atrocious. While the Governor-Generals
and their colleagues passed away, Carey and his associates did not cease to
agitate in India and to stir up Wilberforce and the evangelicals in England,
till the victory was gained. The very first number of the Friend of India
published their essay on the burning of widows, which was thereafter quoted on
both sides of the conflict, as “a powerful and convincing statement of the real
facts and circumstances of the case,” in Parliament and elsewhere. Nor can we
omit to record the opinion of Carey’s chief pundit, with whom he spent hours
every day as a fellow-worker. The whole body of law-pundits wrote of Sati
as only “permitted.” Mritunjaya, described as the head jurist of the College of
Fort William and the Supreme Court, decided that, according to Hindooism, a
life of mortification is the law for a widow. At best burning is only an
alternative for mortification, and no alternative can have the force of direct
law. But in former ages nothing was ever heard of the practice, it being
peculiar to a later and more corrupt era. “A woman’s burning herself from the
desire of connubial bliss ought to be rejected with abhorrence,” wrote this
colossus of pundits. Yet before he was believed, or the higher law was
enforced, as it has ever since been even in our tributary States, mothers had
burned with sons, and forty wives, many of them sisters, at a time, with
polygamous husbands. Lepers and the widows of the devotee class had been
legally buried alive. Magistrates, who were men like Metcalfe, never ceased to
prevent widow-murder on any pretext, wherever they might be placed, in defiance
of their own misguided Government.
Though
from 4th December 1829--memorable date, to be classed with that on which soon
after 800,000 slaves were set free--“the Ganges flowed unblooded to the sea”
for the first time, the fight lasted a little longer. The Calcutta “orthodox”
formed a society to restore their right of murdering their widows, and found
English lawyers ready to help them in an appeal to the Privy Council under an
Act of Parliament of 1797. The Darpan weekly did good service in keeping
the mass of the educated natives right on the subject. The Privy Council, at
which Lord Wellesley and Charles Grant, venerable in years and character, were
present, heard the case for two days, and on 24th June 1832 dismissed the
petition!
Though
the greatest, this was only one of the crimes against humanity and morality
which Carey opposed all his life with a practical reasonableness till he saw
the public opinion he had done so much to create triumph. He knew the people of
India, their religious, social, and economic condition, as no Englishman before
him had done. He stood between them and their foreign Government at the
beginning of our intimate contact with all classes as detailed administrators
and rulers. The outcome of his peculiar experience is to be found not only in
the writings published under his own name but in the great book of his
colleague William Ward, every page of which passed under his careful correction
as well as under the more general revision of Henry Martyn. Except for the
philosophy of Hindooism, the second edition of A View of the History,
Literature, and Mythology of the Hindoos, including a Minute Description of
their Manners and Customs, and Translations from their Principal Works,
published in 1818 in two quarto volumes, stands unrivalled as the best
authority on the character and daily life and beliefs of the 200,000,000 to
whom Great Britain had been made a terrestrial providence, till Christianity
teaches them to govern themselves and to become to the rest of Asia
missionaries of nobler truth than that wherewith their Buddhist fathers covered
China and the farther East.
All
the crimes against humanity with which the history of India teems, down to the
Mutiny and the records of our courts and tributary states at this hour, are
directly traceable to lawless supernaturalism like that of the civilised world
before the triumph of Christianity. In nothing does England’s administration of
India resemble Rome’s government of its provinces in the seven centuries from
the reduction of Sicily, 240 B.C., to the fall of the Western Empire, 476 A.D.,
so much as in the relation of nascent Christianity to the pagan cults which had
made society what it was. Carey and the brotherhood stood alone in facing, in fighting
with divine weapons, in winning the first victories over the secular as well as
spiritual lawlessness which fell before Paul and his successors down to
Augustine and his City of God. The gentle and reasonable but none the
less divinely indignant father of modern missions brings against Hindoo and
Mohammedan society accusations no more railing than those in the opening
passage of the Epistle to the Romans, and he brings these only that, following
Paul, he may declare the more excellent way.
As
Serampore, or its suburbs, is the most popular centre of Jaganath worship next
to Pooree in Orissa, the cruelty and oppression which marked the annual
festival were ever before the missionaries’ eyes. In 1813 we find Dr. Claudius Buchanan
establishing his veracity as an eye-witness of the
immolation of drugged or voluntary victims under the idol car, by this
quotation from Dr. Carey, whom he had to describe at that time to his English
readers, as a man of unquestionable integrity, long held in estimation by the
most respectable characters in Bengal, and possessing very superior
opportunities of knowing what is passing in India generally: “Idolatry destroys
more than the sword, yet in a way which is scarcely perceived. The numbers who
die in their long pilgrimages, either through want or fatigue, or from
dysenteries and fevers caught by lying out, and want of accommodation, is
incredible. I only mention one idol, the famous Juggernaut in Orissa, to which
twelve or thirteen pilgrimages are made every year. It is calculated that the
number who go thither is, on some occasions, 600,000 persons, and scarcely ever
less than 100,000. I suppose, at the lowest calculation, that in the year
1,200,000 persons attend. Now, if only one in ten died, the mortality caused by
this one idol would be 120,000 in a year; but some are of opinion that not many
more than one in ten survive and return home again. Besides these, I calculate
that 10,000 women annually burn with the bodies of their deceased husbands, and
the multitudes destroyed in other methods would swell the catalogue to an
extent almost exceeding credibility.”
After
we had taken Orissa from the Marathas the priests of Jaganath declared that the
night before the conquest the god had made known its desire to be under British
protection. This was joyfully reported to Lord Wellesley’s Government by the
first British commissioner. At once a regulation was drafted vesting the shrine
and the increased pilgrim-tax in the Christian officials. This Lord Wellesley
indignantly refused to sanction, and it was passed by Sir George Barlow in
spite of the protests of Carey’s friend, Udny. In Conjeeveram a Brahmanised
civilian named Place had so early as 1796 induced Government to undertake the
payment of the priests and prostitutes of the temples, under the phraseology of
“churchwardens” and “the management of the church funds.” Even before the
Madras iniquity, the pilgrims to Gaya from 1790, if not before, paid for
authority to offer funeral cakes to the manes of their ancestors and to worship
Vishnoo under the official seal and signature of the English Collector.
Although Charles Grant’s son, Lord Glenelg, when President of the Board of
Control in 1833, ordered, as Theodosius had done on the fall of pagan idolatry
in A.D. 390, that “in all matters relating to their temples, their worship,
their festivals, their religious practices, their ceremonial observances, our
native subjects be left entirely to themselves,” the identification of
Government with Hindooism was not completely severed till a recent period.
The Charak,
or swinging festival, has been frequently witnessed by the present writer in
Calcutta itself. The orgie has been suppressed by the police in great cities,
although it has not ceased in the rural districts. In 1814 the brotherhood thus
wrote home:--
“This
abominable festival was held, according to the annual custom, on the last day
of the Hindoo year. There were fewer gibbet posts erected at Serampore, but we
hear that amongst the swingers was one female. A man fell from a stage thirty
cubits high and broke his back; and another fell from a swinging post, but was
not much hurt. Some days after the first swinging, certain natives revived the
ceremonies. As Mr. Ward was passing through Calcutta he saw several Hindoos
hanging by the heels over a slow fire, as an act of devotion. Several Hindoos
employed in the printing-office applied this year to Mr. Ward for protection,
to escape being dragged into these pretendedly voluntary practices. This
brought before us facts which we were not aware of. It seems that the landlords
of the poor and other men of property insist upon certain of their tenants and
dependants engaging in these practices, and that they expect and compel by
actual force multitudes every year to join the companies of sunyassees in
parading the streets, piercing their sides, tongues, etc. To avoid this
compulsion, many poor young men leave their houses and hide themselves; but
they are sure of being beaten if caught, or of having their huts pulled down.
The influence and power of the rich have a great effect on the multitude in
most of the idolatrous festivals. When the lands and riches of the country were
in few hands, this influence carried all before it. It is still very widely
felt, in compelling dependants to assist at public shows, and to contribute
towards the expense of splendid ceremonies.”
The
Ghat murders, caused by the carrying of the dying to the Ganges or a sacred
river, and their treatment there, continue to this day, although Lord Lawrence
attempted to interfere. Ward estimated the number of sick whose death is
hastened on the banks of the Ganges alone at five hundred a year, in his
anxiety to “use no unfair means of rendering even idolatry detestable,” but he
admits that, in the opinion of others, this estimate is far below the truth. We
believe, from our own recent experience, that still it fails to give any just
idea of the destruction of parents by children in the name of religion.
One
class who had been the special objects of Christ’s healing power and divine sympathy
was specially interesting to Carey in proportion to their misery and
abandonment by their own people--lepers. When at Cutwa in
1812, where his son was stationed as missionary, he saw the burning of a leper,
which he thus described:--“A pit about ten cubits in depth was dug and a fire
placed at the bottom of it. The poor man rolled himself into it; but instantly,
on feeling the fire, begged to be taken out, and struggled hard for that
purpose. His mother and sister, however, thrust him in again; and thus a man,
who to all appearance might have survived several years, was cruelly burned to
death. I find that the practice is not uncommon in these parts. Taught that a
violent end purifies the body and ensures transmigration into a healthy new
existence, while natural death by disease results in four successive births,
and a fifth as a leper again, the leper, like the even more wretched widow, has
always courted suicide.” Carey did not rest until he had brought about the
establishment of a leper hospital in Calcutta, near what became the centre of
the Church Missionary Society’s work, and there benevolent physicians, like the
late Dr. Kenneth Stuart, and Christian people, have made it possible to record,
as in Christ’s days, that the leper is cleansed and the poor have the Gospel
preached to them.
By
none of the many young civilians whom he trained, or, in the later years of his
life, examined, was Carey’s humane work on all its sides more persistently
carried out than by John Lawrence in the Punjab. When their new ruler first
visited their district, the Bedi clan amazed him by petitioning for leave to
destroy their infant daughters. In wrath he briefly told them he would hang
every man found guilty of such murder. When settling the land revenue of the
Cis-Sutlej districts he caused each farmer, as he touched the pen in acceptance
of the assessment, to recite this formula--
“Bewa mat jaláo,
Beti mat máro,
Korhi mat dabao”
(“Thou
shalt not burn thy widow, thou shalt not kill thy daughters, thou shalt not
bury thy lepers.”)
From
the hour of Carey’s conversion he never omitted to remember in prayer the slave
as well as the heathen. The same period which saw his foundation of modern
missions witnessed the earliest efforts of his contemporary, Thomas Clarkson of
Wisbeach, in the neighbouring county of Cambridge, to free the slave. But
Clarkson, Granville Sharp, and their associates were so occupied with Africa
that they knew not that Great Britain was responsible for the existence of at
least nine millions of slaves in India, many of them brought by Hindoo
merchants as well as Arabs from Eastern Africa to fill the hareems of
Mohammedans, and do domestic service in the zananas of Hindoos. The startling
fact came to be known only slowly towards the end of Carey’s career, when his
prayers, continued daily from 1779, were answered in the freedom of all our
West India slaves. The East India answer came after he had passed away, in Act
V. of 1843, which for ever abolished the legal status of slavery in India. The
Penal Code has since placed the prædial slave in such a
position that if he is not free it is his own fault. It is penal in India to
hold a slave “against his will,” and we trust the time is not far distant when
the last three words may be struck out.
With
true instinct Christopher Anderson, in his Annals of the English Bible,
associates Carey, Clarkson, and Cowper, as the triumvirate who, unknown to each
other, began the great moral changes, in the Church, in society, and in
literature, which mark the difference between the eighteenth and the nineteenth
centuries. Little did Carey think, as he studied under Sutcliff within sight of
the poet’s house, that Cowper was writing at that very time these lines in The
Task while he himself was praying for the highest of all kinds of liberty
to be given to the heathen and the slaves, Christ’s freedom which had up till
then remained
“...unsung
By poets, and by senators unpraised,
Which monarchs cannot grant, nor all the
powers
Of earth and hell confederate take away;
A liberty which persecution, fraud,
Oppression, prisons, have no power to bind:
Which whoso tastes can be enslaved no more.”
CHAPTER
XII
WHAT
CAREY DID FOR SCIENCE--FOUNDER OF THE AGRICULTURAL AND HORTICULTURAL SOCIETY OF
INDIA
Carey’s
relation to science and economics--State of the peasantry--Carey a careful
scientific observer--Specially a botanist--Becomes the friend of Dr. Roxburgh
of the Company’s Botanic Garden--Orders seeds and instruments of husbandry--All
his researches subordinate to his spiritual mission--His eminence as a botanist
acknowledged in the history of the science--His own botanic garden and park at
Serampore--The poet Montgomery on the daisies there--Borneo--Carey’s paper in
the Asiatic Researches on the state of agriculture in Bengal--The first
to advocate Forestry in India--Founds the Agri-Horticultural Society of India--Issues
queries on agriculture and horticulture--Remarkable results of his action--On
the manufacture of paper--His expanded address on agricultural reform--His
political foresight on the importance of European capital and the future of
India--An official estimate of the results in the present day--On the usury of
the natives and savings banks--His academic and scientific honours--Destruction
of his house and garden by the Damoodar flood of 1823--Report on the
Horticultural Society’s garden--The Society honours its founder.
NOT
only was the first Englishman, who in modern times became a missionary, sent to
India when he desired to go to Tahiti or West Africa; and sent to Bengal from
which all Northern India was to be brought under British rule; and to Calcutta--with
a safe asylum at Danish Serampore--then the metropolis and centre of all
Southern Asia; but he was sent at the very time when the life of the people
could best be purified and elevated on its many sides, and he was specially
fitted to influence each of these sides save one. An ambassador for Christ
above all things like Paul, but, also like him, becoming all things to all men
that he might win some to the higher life, Carey was successively, and often at
the same time, a captain of labour, a schoolmaster, a printer, the developer of
the vernacular speech, the expounder of the classical language, the translator
of both into English and of the English Bible into both, the founder of a pure
literature, the purifier of society, the watchful philanthropist, the saviour
of the widow and the fatherless, of the despairing and the would-be suicide, of
the downtrodden and oppressed. We have now to see him on the scientific or the
physical and economic side, while he still jealously keeps his strength for the
one motive power of all, the spiritual, and with almost equal care avoids the
political or administrative as his Master did. But even then it was his aim to
proclaim the divine principles which would use science and politics alike to
bring nations to the birth, while, like the apostles, leaving the application
of these principles to the course of God’s providence and the consciences of
men. In what he did for science, for literature, and for humanity, as in what
he abstained from doing in the practical region of public life, the first
English missionary was an example to all of every race who have followed him in
the past century. From Carey to Livingstone, alike in Asia and Africa, the
greatest Christian evangelists have been those who have made science and
literature the handmaids of missions.
Apart
from the extreme south of the peninsula of India, where the Danish missionaries
had explored with hawk’s eyes, almost nothing was known of its plants and
animals, its men, as well as its beasts, when Carey found himself in a rural
district of North Bengal in the closing decade of the eighteenth century. Nor
had any writer, official or missionary, anywhere realised the state of India
and the needs of the Hindoo and Mohammedan cultivators as flowing from the relation
of the people to the soil. India was in truth a land of millions of peasant
proprietors on five-acre farms, rack-rented or plundered by powerful middlemen,
both squeezed or literally tortured by the Government of the day, and driven to
depend on the usurer for even the seed for each crop. War and famine had
alternated in keeping down the population. Ignorance and fear had blunted the
natural shrewdness of the cultivator. A foul mythology, a saddening
demon-worship, and an exacting social system, covered the land as with a pall.
What even Christendom was fast becoming in the tenth century, India had been
all through the eighteen Christian centuries.
The
boy who from eight to fourteen “chose to read books of science, history,
voyages, etc., more than others”; the youth whose gardener uncle would have had
him follow that calling, but whose sensitive skin kept him within doors, where
he fitted up a room with his botanical and zoological museum; the
shoemaker-preacher who made a garden around every cottage-manse in which he
lived, and was familiar with every beast, bird, insect, and tree in the
Midlands of England, became a scientific observer from the day he landed at
Calcutta, an agricultural reformer from the year he first built a wooden
farmhouse in the jungle, as the Manitoba emigrant now does under very different skies, and then
began to grow and make indigo amid the peasantry at Dinapoor. He thus
unconsciously reveals himself and his method of working in a letter to Morris
of Clipstone:--
“MUDNABATI,
5th December 1797.--To talk of continuance of friendship and warm
affection to you would be folly. I love you; and next to seeing your face, a
letter from you is one of my greatest gratifications. I see the handwriting,
and read the heart of my friend; nor can the distance of one-fourth of the
globe prevent a union of hearts.
“Hitherto
I have refrained from writing accounts of the country, because I concluded that
those whose souls were panting after the conversion of the heathen would feel
but little gratified in having an account of the natural productions of the
country. But as intelligence of this kind has been frequently solicited by
several of my friends, I have accordingly opened books of observation, which I
hope to communicate when they are sufficiently authenticated and matured. I
also intend to assign a peculiar share to each of my stated correspondents. To
you I shall write some accounts of the arts, utensils, and manufactures of the
country; to Brother Sutcliff their mythology and religion; to Brother Ryland
the manners and customs of the inhabitants; to Brother Fuller the productions
of the country; to Brother Pearce the language, etc.; and to the Society a
joint account of the mission.”
He
had “separate books for every distinct class, as birds, beasts, fishes,
reptiles, etc.” Long before this, on 13th March 1795, he had written to the
learned Ryland, his special correspondent on subjects of science and on Hebrew,
his first impressions of the physiography of Bengal, adding: “The natural
history of Bengal would furnish innumerable novelties to a curious inquirer. I
am making collections and minute descriptions of whatever I can obtain; and
intend at some future time to transmit them to Europe.”
“MUDNABATI,
26th November 1796.--I observed in a former letter that the
beasts have been in general described, but that the undescribed birds
were surprisingly numerous; and, in fact, new species are still frequently
coming under my notice. We have sparrows and water-wagtails, one species of
crow, ducks, geese, and common fowls; pigeons, teal, ortolans, plovers, snipes
like those in Europe; but others, entirely unlike European birds, would fill a
volume. Insects are very numerous. I have seen about twelve sorts of grylli,
or grasshoppers and crickets. Ants are the most omnivorous of all insects; we
have eight or ten sorts very numerous. The termes, or white ants,
destroy everything on which they fasten; they will eat through an oak chest in
a day or two and devour all its contents. Butterflies are not so numerous as in
England, but I think all different. Common flies and mosquitoes (or gnats) are
abundant, and the latter so tormenting as to make one conclude that if the
flies in Egypt were mosquitoes, the plague must be almost insupportable. Here
are beetles of many species; scorpions of two sorts, the sting of the smallest
not mortal; land crabs in abundance, and an amazing number of other kinds of
insects. Fish is very plentiful, and the principal animal food of the
inhabitants. I find fewer varieties of vegetables than I could have conceived
in so large a country. Edible vegetables are scarce, and fruit far from
plentiful. You will perhaps wonder at our eating many things here which no one
eats in England: as arum, three or four sorts, and poppy leaves (Papaver
somniferum). We also cut up mallows by the bushes for our food (Job xxx.
4). Amaranths, of three sorts, we also eat, besides capsicums, pumpkins,
gourds, calabashes, and the egg-plant fruit; yet we have no hardships in these
respects. Rice is the staple article of food...
“My
love to the students. God raise them up for great blessings. Great things are
certainly at hand.”
But
he was also an erudite botanist. Had he arrived in Calcutta a few days earlier
than he did, he would have been appointed to the place for which sheer poverty
led him to apply, in the Company’s Botanical Garden, established on the right
bank of the Hoogli a few miles below Calcutta, by Colonel Alexander Kyd, for
the collection of indigenous and acclimatisation of foreign plants. There he at
once made the acquaintance, and till 1815 retained the loving friendship, of
its superintendent, Dr. Roxburgh, the leader of a series of eminent men,
Buchanan and Wallich, Griffith, Falconer, T. Thomson, and Thomas Anderson, the
last two cut off in the ripe promise of their manhood. One of Carey’s first
requests was for seeds and instruments, not merely from scientific reasons, but
that he might carry out his early plan of working with his hands as a farmer
while he evangelised the people. On 5th August 1794 he wrote to the
Society:--“I wish you also to send me a few instruments of husbandry, viz.,
scythes, sickles, plough-wheels, and such things; and a yearly assortment of
all garden and flowering seeds, and seeds of fruit trees, that you can possibly
procure; and
let them be packed in papers, or bottles well stopped, which is the best
method. All these things, at whatever price you can procure them, and the seeds
of all sorts of field and forest trees, etc., I will regularly remit you the
money for every year; and I hope that I may depend upon the exertions of my
numerous friends to procure them. Apply to London seedsmen and others, as it
will be a lasting advantage to this country; and I shall have it in my power to
do this for what I now call my own country. Only take care that they are new
and dry.” Again he addressed Fuller on 22nd June 1797:--
“MY
VERY DEAR BROTHER--I have yours of August 9, 16, which informs me that the
seeds, etc., were shipped. I have received those seeds and other articles in
tolerable preservation, and shall find them a very useful article. An
acquaintance which I have formed with Dr. Roxburgh, Superintendent of the
Company’s Botanic Garden, and whose wife is daughter of a missionary on the
coast, may be of future use to the mission, and make that investment of
vegetables more valuable.”
Thus
towards the close of his six years’ sacrifice for the people of Dinapoor does
he estimate himself and his scientific pursuits in the light of the great
conflict to which the Captain of Salvation had called him. He is opening his
heart to Fuller again, most trusted of all:--
“MUDNABATI,
17th July 1799.--Respecting myself I have nothing interesting to
say; and if I had, it appears foreign to the design of a mission for the
missionaries to be always speaking of their own experiences. I keep several
journals, it is true, relating to things private and public, respecting the
mission, articles of curiosity and science; but they are sometimes continued
and sometimes discontinued: besides, most things contained in them are of too
general or trivial a nature to send to England, and I imagine could have no
effect, except to mock the expectations of our numerous friends, who are
waiting to hear of the conversion of the heathen and overthrow of Satan’s
kingdom.
“I
therefore only observe, respecting myself, that I have much proof of the
vileness of my heart, much more than I thought of till lately: and, indeed, I
often fear that instead of being instrumental in the conversion of the heathen,
I may some time dishonour the cause in which I am engaged. I have hitherto had
much experience of the daily supports of a gracious God; but I am conscious
that if those supports were intermitted but for a little time, my sinful
dispositions would infallibly predominate. At present I am kept, but am not one
of those who are strong and do exploits.
“I
have often thought that a spirit of observation is necessary in order to our
doing or communicating much good; and were it not for a very phlegmatic habit,
I think my soul would be richer. I, however, appear to myself to have lost much
of my capacity for making observations, improvements, etc., or of retaining
what I attend to closely. For instance, I have been near three years learning
the Sanskrit language, yet know very little of it. This is only a specimen of
what I feel myself to be in every respect. I try to observe, to imprint what I
see and hear on my memory, and to feel my heart properly affected with the
circumstances; yet my soul is impoverished, and I have something of a lethargic
disease cleaving to my body...
“I
would communicate something on the natural history of the country in addition
to what I have before written, but no part of that pleasing study is so
familiar to me as the vegetable world.”
His
letters of this period to Fuller on the fruits of India, and to Morris on the
husbandry of the natives, might be quoted still as accurate and yet popular
descriptions of the mango, guava, and custard apple; plantain, jack, and
tamarind; pomegranate, pine-apple, and rose-apple; papaya, date, and cocoa-nut;
citron, lime, and shaddock. Of many of these, and of foreign fruits which he
introduced, it might be said he found them poor, and he cultivated them till he
left to succeeding generations a rich and varied orchard.
While
still in Dinapoor, he wrote on 1st January 1798: “Seeds of sour apples, pears,
nectarines, plums, apricots, cherries, gooseberries, currants, strawberries, or
raspberries, put loose into a box of dry sand, and sent so as to arrive in
September, October, November, or December, would be a great acquisition, as is
every European production. Nuts, filberts, acorns, etc., would be the same. We
have lately obtained the cinnamon tree, and nutmeg tree, which Dr. Roxburgh
very obligingly sent to me. Of timber trees I mention the sissoo, the teak, and
the saul tree, which, being an unnamed genus, Dr. Roxburgh, as a mark of
respect to me, has called Careya saulea.”
The
publication of the last name caused Carey’s sensitive modesty extreme
annoyance. “Do not print the names of Europeans. I was sorry to see that you
printed that Dr. Roxburgh had named the saul tree by my name. As he is in the habit of publishing his
drawings of plants, it would have looked better if it had been mentioned first
by him.” Whether he prevailed with his admiring friend in the Company’s Botanic
Garden to change the name to that which the useful sal tree now bears, the Shorea
robusta, we know not, but the term is derived from Lord Teignmouth’s name.
Carey will go down to posterity in the history of botanical research,
notwithstanding his own humility and the accidents of time. For Dr. Roxburgh
gave the name of Careya to an interesting genus of Myrtaceœ.
The great French botanist M. Benjamin Delessert duly commemorates the labours
of Dr. Carey in the Musée Botanique.
It
was in Serampore that the gentle botanist found full scope for the one
recreation which he allowed himself, in the interest of his body as well as of
his otherwise overtasked spirit. There he had five acres of ground laid out,
and, in time, planted on the Linnæan system. The park around,
from which he had the little paradise carefully walled in, that Brahmani bull
and villager’s cow, nightly jackal and thoughtless youth, might not intrude, he
planted with trees then rare or unknown in lower Bengal, the mahogany and
deodar, the teak and tamarind, the carob and eucalyptus. The fine
American Mahogany has so thriven that the present writer was able, seventy
years after the trees had been planted, to supply Government with plentiful
seed. The trees of the park were so placed as to form a noble avenue, which
long shaded the press and was known as Carey’s Walk. The umbrageous tamarind
formed a dense cover, under which more than one generation of Carey’s
successors rejoiced as they welcomed visitors to the consecrated spot from all
parts of India, America, and Great Britain. Foresters like Sir D. Brandis and
Dr. Cleghorn at various times visited this arboretum, and have referred
to the trees, whose date of planting is known, for the purpose of recording the
rate of growth.
For
the loved garden Carey himself trained native peasants who, with the mimetic
instinct of the Bengali, followed his instructions like those of their own
Brahmans, learned the Latin names, and pronounced them with their master’s very
accent up till a late date, when Hullodhur, the last of them, passed away. The
garden with its tropical glories and more modest exotics, every one of which
was as a personal friend, and to him had an individual history, was more than a
place of recreation. It was his oratory, the scene of prayer and meditation,
the place where he began and ended the day of light--with God. What he wrote in
his earlier journals and letters of the sequestered spot at Mudnabati was true
in a deeper and wider sense of the garden of Serampore:--“23rd September,
Lord’s Day.--Arose about sunrise, and, according to my usual practice,
walked into my garden for meditation and prayer till the servants came to
family worship.” We have this account from his son Jonathan:--
“In
objects of nature my father was exceedingly curious. His collection of mineral
ores, and other subjects of natural history, was extensive, and obtained his
particular attention in seasons of leisure and recreation. The science of
botany was his constant delight and study; and his fondness for his garden
remained to the last. No one was allowed to interfere in the arrangements of
this his favourite retreat; and it is here he enjoyed his most pleasant moments
of secret devotion and meditation. The arrangements made by him were on the
Linnæan system; and to disturb the bed or border of the garden was to touch
the apple of his eye. The garden formed the best and rarest botanical
collection of plants in the East; to the extension of which, by his
correspondence with persons of eminence in Europe and other parts of the world,
his attention was constantly directed; and, in return, he supplied his
correspondents with rare collections from the East. It was painful to observe
with what distress my father quitted this scene of his enjoyments, when extreme
weakness, during his last illness, prevented his going to his favourite
retreat. Often, when he was unable to walk, he was drawn into the garden in a
chair placed on a board with four wheels.
“In
order to prevent irregularity in the attendance of the gardeners he was
latterly particular in paying their wages with his own hands; and on the last
occasion of doing so, he was much affected that his weakness had increased and
confined him to the house. But, notwithstanding he had closed this part of his
earthly scene, he could not refrain from sending for his gardeners into the
room where he lay, and would converse with them about the plants; and near his
couch, against the wall, he placed the picture of a beautiful shrub, upon which
he gazed with delight.
“On
this science he frequently gave lectures, which were well attended, and never
failed to prove interesting. His publication of Roxburgh’s Flora Indica
is a standard work with botanists. Of his botanical friends he spoke with great
esteem; and never failed to defend them when erroneously assailed. He
encouraged the study of the science wherever a desire to acquire it was
manifested. In this particular he would sometimes gently reprove those who had
no taste for it; but he would not spare those who attempted to undervalue it.
His remark of one of his colleagues was keen and striking. When the latter
somewhat reprehended Dr. Carey, to the medical gentleman attending him, for
exposing himself so much in the garden, he immediately replied, that his
colleague was conversant with the pleasures of a garden, just as an animal was
with the grass in the field.”
As
from Dinapoor, so from Serampore after his settlement there, an early order was
this on 27th November 1800:--“We are sending an
assortment of Hindoo gods to the British Museum, and some other curiosities to
different friends. Do send a few tulips, daffodils, snowdrops, lilies, and
seeds of other things, by Dolton when he returns, desiring him not to put them
into the hold. Send the roots in a net or basket, to be hung up anywhere out of
the reach of salt water, and the seeds in a separate small box. You need not be
at any expense, any friend will supply these things. The cowslips and daisies
of your fields would be great acquisitions here.” What the daisies of the
English fields became to Carey, and how his request was long after answered, is
told by James Montgomery, the Moravian, who formed after Cowper the second poet
of the missionary reformation:--
THE
DAISY IN INDIA
“A
friend of mine, a scientific botanist, residing near Sheffield, had sent a
package of sundry kinds of British seeds to the learned and venerable Doctor
WILLIAM CAREY. Some of the seeds had been enclosed in a bag, containing a
portion of their native earth. In March 1821 a letter of acknowledgment was
received by his correspondent from the Doctor, who was himself well skilled in
botany, and had a garden rich in plants, both tropical and European. In this
enclosure he was wont to spend an hour every morning, before he entered upon
those labours and studies which have rendered his name illustrious both at home
and abroad, as one of the most accomplished of Oriental scholars and a
translator of the Holy Scriptures into many of the Hindoo languages. In the
letter aforementioned, which was shown to me, the good man says:--‘That I might
be sure not to lose any part of your valuable present, I shook the bag over a
patch of earth in a shady place: on visiting which a few days afterwards I
found springing up, to my inexpressible delight, a Bellis perennis of
our English pastures. I know not that I ever enjoyed, since leaving Europe, a
simple pleasure so exquisite as the sight of this English Daisy afforded
me; not having seen one for upwards of thirty years, and never expecting to see
one again.’
“On
the perusal of this passage, the following stanzas seemed to spring up almost
spontaneously in my mind, as the ‘little English flower’ in the good Doctor’s
garden, whom I imagined to be thus addressing it on its sudden appearance:--
“Thrice
welcome, little English flower!
My mother-country’s white and red,
In rose or lily, till this hour,
Never to me such beauty spread:
Transplanted from thine island-bed,
A treasure in a grain of earth,
Strange as a spirit from the dead,
Thine embryo sprang to birth.
“Thrice
welcome, little English flower!
Whose tribes, beneath our natal skies,
Shut close their leaves while vapours lower;
But, when the sun’s gay beams arise,
With unabashed but modest eyes,
Follow his motion to the west,
Nor cease to gaze till daylight dies,
Then fold themselves to rest.
“Thrice
welcome, little English flower!
To this resplendent hemisphere,
Where Flora’s giant offspring tower
In gorgeous liveries all the year:
Thou, only thou, art little here,
Like worth unfriended and unknown,
Yet to my British heart more dear
Than all the torrid zone.
“Thrice
welcome, little English flower!
Of early scenes beloved by me,
While happy in my father’s bower,
Thou shalt the blythe memorial be;
The fairy sports of infancy,
Youth’s golden age, and manhood’s prime.
Home, country, kindred, friends,--with thee,
I find in this far clime.
“Thrice
welcome, little English flower!
I’ll rear thee with a trembling hand:
Oh, for the April sun and shower,
The sweet May dews of that fair land.
Where Daisies, thick as starlight, stand
In every walk!--that here may shoot
Thy scions, and thy buds expand
A hundred from one root.
“Thrice
welcome, little English flower!
To me the pledge of hope unseen:
When sorrow would my soul o’erpower,
For joys that were, or might have been,
I’ll call to mind, how, fresh and green,
I saw thee waking from the dust;
Then turn to heaven with brow serene,
And place in GOD my trust.”
From
every distant station, from Amboyna to Delhi, he received seeds and animals and
specimens of natural history. The very schoolboys when they went out into the
world, and the young civilians of Fort William College, enriched his
collections. To Jabez, his son in Amboyna, we find him thus writing:--“I have
already informed you of the luckless fate of all the animals you have sent. I know of no
remedy for the living animals dying, but by a little attention to packing them
you may send skins of birds and animals of every kind, and also seeds and
roots. I lately received a parcel of seeds from Moore (a large boy who, you may
remember, was at school when the printing-office
was burnt), every one of which bids fair to grow. He is in some of the Malay
islands. After all you have greatly contributed to the enlargement of my
collection.”
“17th
September 1816.--I approve much of Bencoolen as a place for your future
labours, unless you should rather choose the island of Borneo...The English may
send a Resident thither after a time. I mention this from a conversation I had
some months ago on the subject with Lord Moira, who told me that there is a
large body of Chinese on that island.” They “applied to the late
Lieut.-Governor of Java, requesting that an English Resident may be sent to
govern them, and offering to be at the whole expense of his salary and
government. The Borneo business may come to nothing, but if it should succeed
it would be a glorious opening for the Gospel in that large island. Sumatra,
however, is larger than any one man could occupy.” As we read this we see the
Serampore apostle’s hope fulfilled after a different fashion, in Rajah Brooke’s
settlement at Sarawak, in the charter of the North Borneo Company, in the
opening up of New Guinea and in the civilisation of the Philippines by the
United States of America.
To
Roxburgh and his Danish successor Wallich, to Voigt who succeeded Wallich in
Serampore, and hundreds of correspondents in India and Germany, Great Britain
and America, Carey did many a service in sending plants and--what was a greater
sacrifice for so busy a man--writing letters. What he did for the Hortus
Bengalensis may stand for all.
When,
in 1814, Dr. Roxburgh was sent to sea almost dying, Dr. Carey edited and
printed at his own press that now very rare volume, the Hortus Bengalensis,
or a Catalogue of the Plants of the Honourable East India Company’s Botanic
Garden in Calcutta. Carey’s introduction of twelve large pages is perhaps
his most characteristic writing on a scientific subject. His genuine
friendliness and humility shine forth in the testimony he bears to the
abilities, zeal, and success of the great botanist who, in twenty years, had
created a collection of 3200 species. Of these 3000 at least had been given by
the European residents in India, himself most largely of all. Having shown in
detail the utility of botanical gardens, especially in all the foreign settlements
of Great Britain, he declared that only a beginning had been made in observing
and cataloguing the stock of Asiatic productions. He urged English residents
all over India to set apart a small plot for the reception of the plants of
their neighbourhood, and when riding about the country to mark plants, which
their servants could bring on to the nursery, getting them to write the native
name of each. He desiderated gardens at Hurdwar, Delhi, Dacca, and Sylhet,
where plants that will not live at Calcutta might prosper, a suggestion which
was afterwards carried out by the Government in establishing a garden at
Saharanpoor, in a Sub-Himalayan region, which has been successfully directed by
Royle, Falconer, and Jameson.
On
Dr. Roxburgh’s death in 1815 Dr. Carey waited to see whether an English
botanist would publish the fruit of thirty years’ labour of his friend in the
description of more than 2000 plants, natives of Eastern Asia. At his own risk
he then, in 1820, undertook this publication, or the Flora Indica,
placing on the title-page, “All Thy works praise Thee, O Lord--David.”
When the Roxburgh MSS. were made over to the library of the Botanic Garden at
Calcutta, the fourth and final volume appeared with this note regarding the new
edition:--“The work was printed from MSS. in the possession of Dr. Carey, and
it was carried through the press when he was labouring under the debility of
great age...The advanced age of Dr. Carey did not admit of any longer delay.”
His
first public attempt at agricultural reform was made in the paper which he
contributed to the Transactions of the Bengal Asiatic Society, and which
appeared in 1811 in the tenth volume of the Asiatic Researches. In the
space of an ordinary Quarterly Review article he describes the “State of
Agriculture in the District of Dinapoor,” and urges improvements such as only
the officials, settlers, and Government could begin. The soils, the “extremely
poor” people, their “proportionally simple and wretched farming utensils,” the
cattle, the primitive irrigation alluded to in Deuteronomy as “watering with
the foot,” and the modes of ploughing and reaping, are rapidly sketched and
illustrated by lithographed figures drawn to scale. In greater detail the
principal crops are treated. The staple crop of rice in its many varieties and
harvests at different seasons is lucidly brought before the Government, in
language which it would have been well to remember or reproduce in the
subsequent avoidable famines of Orissa and North Bihar. Indigo is set before us
with the skill of one who had grown and manufactured it for years. The hemp and jute plants
are enlarged on in language which unconsciously anticipates the vast and
enriching development given to the latter as an export and a local manufacture
since the Crimean War. An account of the oil-seeds
and the faulty mode of expressing the oil, which made Indian linseed oil unfit
for painting, is followed by remarks on the cultivation of wheat, to which
subsequent events have given great importance. Though many parts, even of
Dinapoor, were fit for the growth of wheat and barley, the natives produced
only a dark variety from bad seed. “For the purpose of making a trial I sowed
Patna wheat on a large quantity of land in the year 1798, the flour produced
from which was of a very good quality.” The pulses, tobacco, the egg-plant, the
capsicums, the cucumbers, the arum roots, turmeric, ginger, and sugar-cane, all
pass in review in a style which the non-scientific reader may enjoy and the
expert must appreciate. Improvements in method and the introduction of the best
kinds of plants and vegetables are suggested, notwithstanding “the poverty,
prejudices, and indolence of the natives.”
This
paper is most remarkable, however, for the true note which its writer was the
first to strike on the subject of forestry. If we reflect that it was not till
1846 that the Government made the first attempt at forest conservancy, in order
to preserve the timber of Malabar for the Bombay dockyard; and not till the
conquest of Pegu, in 1855, that the Marquis of Dalhousie was led by the Friend
of India to appoint Dietrich Brandis of Bonn to care for the forests of
Burma, and Dr. Cleghorn for those of South India, we shall appreciate the wise
foresight of the missionary-scholar, who, having first made his own park a
model of forest teaching, wrote such words as these early in the century:--“The
cultivation of timber has hitherto, I believe, been wholly neglected. Several
sorts have been planted...all over Bengal, and would soon furnish a very large
share of the timber used in the country. The sissoo, the Andaman redwood, the
teak, the mahogany, the satin-wood, the chikrasi, the toona, and
the sirisha should be principally chosen. The planting of these trees
single, at the distance of a furlong from each other, would do no injury to the
crops of corn, but would, by cooling the atmosphere, rather be advantageous. In
many places spots now unproductive would be improved by clumps or small
plantations of timber, under which ginger and turmeric might be cultivated to
great advantage. In some situations saul...would prosper. Indeed the
improvements that might be made in this country by the planting of timber can
scarcely be calculated. Teak is at present brought from the Burman
dominions...The French naturalists have already begun to turn their attention
to the culture of this valuable tree as an object of national utility. This
will be found impracticable in France, but may perhaps be attempted somewhere
else. To England, the first commercial country in the world, its importance
must be obvious.”
Ten
years passed, Carey continued to watch and to extend his agri-horticultural
experiments in his own garden, and to correspond with botanists in all parts of
the world, but still nothing was done publicly in India. At last, on 15th April
1820, when “the advantages arising from a number of persons uniting themselves
as a Society for the purpose of carrying forward any undertaking” were
generally acknowledged, the shoemaker and preacher who had a generation before
tested these advantages in the formation of the first Foreign Mission Society,
issued a Prospectus of an Agricultural and Horticultural Society in India,
from the “Mission House, Serampore.” The prospectus thus concluded:--“Both in
forming such a Society and in subsequently promoting its objects, important to
the happiness of the country as they regard them, the writer and his colleagues
will be happy in doing all their other avocations will permit.” Native as well
as European gentlemen were particularly invited to co-operate. “It is
peculiarly desirable that native gentlemen should be eligible as members of the
Society, because one of its chief objects will be the improvement of their
estates and of the peasantry which reside thereon. They should therefore not
only be eligible as members but also as officers of the Society in precisely
the same manner as Europeans.” At the first meeting in the Town Hall of
Calcutta, Carey and Marshman found only three Europeans beside themselves. They
resolved to proceed, and in two months they secured more than fifty members,
several of whom were natives. The first formal meeting was held on 14th
September, when the constitution was drawn up on the lines laid down in the
prospectus, it being specially provided “that gentlemen of every nation be
eligible as members.”
At
the next meeting Dr. Carey was requested to draw up a series of queries, which
were circulated widely, in order to obtain “correct information upon every
circumstance which is connected with the state of agriculture and horticulture
in the various provinces of India.” The twenty queries show a grasp of principles, a mastery of
detail, and a kindliness of spirit which reveal the practical farmer, the
accomplished observer, and the thoughtful philanthropist all in one. One only
we may quote:--“19. In what manner do you think the
comforts of the peasantry around you could be increased, their health better
secured, and their general happiness promoted?” The Marquis of Hastings gladly
became patron, and ever since the Government has made a grant to the Society.
His wife showed such an interest in its progress that the members obtained her
consent to sit to Chinnery for her portrait to fill the largest panel in the
house at Titigur. Lord Hastings added the experimental farm, formed near
Barrackpore, to the Botanic Garden, with an immediate view to its assisting the
Agricultural Society in their experiments and pursuits. The Society became
speedily popular, for Carey watched its infancy with loving solicitude, and was
the life of its meetings. In the first eighty-seven years of its existence
seven thousand of the best men in India have been its members, of whom seven
hundred are Asiatics. Agriculturists, military and medical officers, civilians,
clergy, and merchants, are represented on its roll in nearly equal proportions.
The one Society has grown into three in India, and formed the model for the
Royal Agricultural Society of England, which was not founded till 1838.
Italy
and Scotland alone preceded Carey in this organisation, and he quotes with
approbation the action of Sir John Sinclair in 1790, which led to the first
inquiry into the state of British agriculture. The Transactions which
Carey led the Society to promise to publish in English, Bengali, and
Hindostani, have proved to be only the first of a series of special periodicals
representing Indian agriculture generally, tea, and forestry. The various
Governments in India have economic museums; and the Government of India, under
Lord Mayo, established a Revenue and Agricultural Department expanded by Lord
Curzon. Carey’s early proposal of premiums, each of a hundred rupees, or the
Society’s gold medal, for the most successful cultivation on a commercial scale
of coffee and improved cotton, for the successful introduction of European
fruits, for the improvement of indigenous fruits, for the successful
introduction from the Eastern Islands of the mangosteen or doorian, and for the
manufacture of cheese equal to Warwickshire, had the best results in some
cases. In 1825 Mr. Lamb of Dacca was presented by “Rev. Dr. Carey in the chair”
with the gold medal for 80 lbs. of coffee grown there. Carey’s own head
gardener became famous for his cabbages; and we find this sentence in the
Society’s Report just after the founder’s death:--“Who would have credited
fifteen years ago that we could have exhibited vegetables in the Town Hall of
Calcutta equal to the choicest in Covent Garden?” The berries two centuries ago
brought from Arabia in his wallet by the pilgrim Baba Booden to the hills of
Mysore, which bear his name, have, since that Dacca experiment, covered the
uplands of South India and Ceylon. Before Carey died he knew of the discovery
of the indigenous tea-tree in its original home on the Assam border of Tibet--a
discovery which has put India in the place of China as a producer.
In
the Society’s Proceedings for 9th January 1828 we find this significant
record:--“Resolved, at the suggestion of the Rev. Dr. Carey, that permission be
given to Goluk Chundra, a blacksmith of Titigur, to exhibit a steam engine made
by himself without the aid of any European artist.” At the next meeting, when
109 malees or native gardeners competed at the annual exhibition of
vegetables, the steam engine was submitted and pronounced “useful for irrigating
lands made upon the model of a large steam engine belonging to the missionaries
at Serampore.” A premium of Rs. 50 was presented to the ingenious blacksmith as
an encouragement to further exertions of his industry. When in 1832 the
afterwards well-known Lieutenant-Governor Thomason was deputy-secretary to
Government, he applied to the Society for information regarding the manufacture
of paper. Dr. Carey and Ram Komal Sen were referred to, and the former thus
replied in his usual concise and clear manner:--
“When
we commenced paper-making several years ago, having then no machinery, we
employed a number of native papermakers to make it in the way to which they had
been accustomed, with the exception of mixing conjee or rice gruel with
the pulp and using it as sizing; our object being that of making paper
impervious to insects. Our success at first was very imperfect, but the process
was conducted as follows:--
“A
quantity of sunn, viz., the fibres of Crotolaria juncea, was steeped
repeatedly in limewater, and then exposed to the air by spreading it on the
grass; it was also repeatedly pounded by the dhenki or pedal, and when
sufficiently reduced by this process to make a pulp, it was mixed in a gumla
with water, so as to make it of the consistence of thick soup. The frames with
which the sheets were taken up were made of mat of the size of a sheet of
paper. The operator sitting by the gumla dipped this frame in the pulp,
and after it was drained gave it to an assistant, who laid it on the grass to dry: this
finished the process with us; but for the native market this paper is
afterwards sized by holding a number of sheets by the edge and dipping them
carefully in conjee, so as to keep the sheets separate. They are
afterwards dried, folded, and pressed by putting them between two boards, the
upper board of which is loaded with one or more large stones.
“In
the English method the pulp is prepared by the mill and put into cisterns; the
frames are made of fine wire, and the workman stands by the cistern and takes
up the pulp on the frames. The sheets when sufficiently dry are hung on lines
to dry completely, after which they are sized, if sizing be required.
“We
now make our paper by machinery, in which the pulp is let to run on a web of
wire, and passing over several cylinders, the last of which is heated by steam,
it is dried and fit for use in about two minutes from its having been in a
liquid state.”
Since
that reply the Government of India, under the pressure of the home authorities,
has alternately discouraged and fostered the manufacture of paper on the spot.
At present it is in the wiser position of preferring to purchase its supplies
in India, at once as being cheaper, and that it may develop the use of the many
paper-making fibres there. Hence at the Calcutta Exhibition of 1881-82 the
jurors began their report on the machine and hand-made paper submitted to them,
with a reference to Carey and this report of his. The Serampore mills were
gradually crushed by the expensive and unsatisfactory contracts made at home by
the India Office. The neighbouring Bally mills seem to flourish since the
abandonment of that virtual monopoly, and Carey’s anticipations as to the
utilisation of the plantain and other fibres of India are being realised nearly
a century after he first formed them.
Carey
expanded and published his “Address respecting an Agricultural Society in
India” in the quarterly Friend of India. He still thinks it necessary to
apologise for his action by quoting his hero, Brainerd, who was constrained to
assist his Indian converts with his counsels in sowing their maize and
arranging their secular concerns. “Few,” he adds with the true breadth of
genius which converted the Baptist shoemaker into the Christian statesman and
scholar, “who are extensively acquainted with human life, will esteem these
cares either unworthy of religion or incongruous with its highest enjoyments.”
When Carey wrote, the millions of five-acre farmers in India were only
beginning to recover from the oppression and neglect of former rulers and the
visitation of terrific famines. Trade was as depressed as agriculture. Transit
duties, not less offensive than those of the Chinese, continued to weigh down
agricultural industry till Lord W. Bentinck’s time and later. The English Government
levied an unequal scale of duties on the staples of the East and West Indies,
against which the former petitioned in vain. The East India Company kept the
people in ignorance, and continued to exclude the European capitalist and
captain of labour. The large native landholders were as uneducated as the
cultivators. Before all Carey set these reforms: close attention to the
improvement of land, the best method of cropping land, the introduction of new
and useful plants, the improvement of the implements of husbandry, the
improvement of live stock, the bringing of waste lands under cultivation, the
improvement of horticulture. He went on to show that, in addition to the
abundance which an improved agriculture would diffuse throughout the country,
the surplus of grain exported, besides “her opium, her indigo, her silk, and
her cotton,” would greatly tend to enrich India and endear Britain to her.
“Whatever may be thought of the Government of Mr. Hastings and those who
immediately preceded him for these last forty years, India has certainly
enjoyed such a Government as none of the provinces of the Persian or the Roman
Empire ever enjoyed for so great a length of time in succession, and, indeed,
one almost as new in the annals of modern Europe as in those of India.”
Carey
found one of the greatest obstacles to agricultural progress to be the fact
that not one European owned a single foot of the soil, “a singular fact in the
history of nations,” removed only about the time of his own death. His remarks
on this have a present significance:--
“It
doubtless originated in a laudable care to preserve our Indian fellow-subjects
from insult and violence, which it was feared could scarcely be done if natives
of Britain, wholly unacquainted with the laws and customs of the people, were
permitted to settle indiscriminately in India. While the wisdom of this
regulation at that time is not impugned, however, it may not be improper to
inquire whether at the present time a permission to hold landed property, to be
granted by Government to British subjects in India, according to their own
discretion, might not be of the highest benefit to the country, and in some
degree advantageous to the Government itself.
“The
objections which have been urged against any measure of this nature are chiefly
that the indiscriminate admission of Europeans into the country might tend to
alienate the minds of the inhabitants from Britain, or possibly lead to its
disruption from Britain in a way similar to that of America. Respecting this
latter circumstance, it is certain that, in the common course of events, a
greater evil could scarcely befall India. On the continuance of her connection
with Britain is suspended her every hope relative to improvement, security, and
happiness. The moment India falls again under the dominion of any one or any number of
native princes, all hope of mental improvement, or even of security for person
or property, will at once vanish. Nothing could be then expected but scenes of
rapine, plunder, bloodshed, and violence, till its inhabitants were sealed over
to irremediable wretchedness, without the most distant ray of hope respecting
the future. And were it severed from Britain in any other way, the reverse felt
in India would be unspeakably great. At present all the learning, the
intelligence, the probity, the philanthropy, the weight of character existing
in Britain, are brought to bear on India. There is scarcely an individual
sustaining a part in the administration of affairs who does not feel the weight
of that tribunal formed by the suffrages of the wise and the good in Britain,
though he be stationed in the remotest parts of India. Through the medium of a
free press the wisdom, probity, and philanthropy which pervade Britain exercise
an almost unbounded sway over every part of India, to the incalculable
advantage of its inhabitants; constituting a triumph of virtue and wisdom thus
unknown to the ancients, and which will increase in its effects in exact
proportion to the increase in Britain of justice, generosity, and love to
mankind. Let India, however, be severed from Britain, and the weight of these
is felt no more...
“It
is a fact that in case of outrage or injury it is in most cases easier for a native
to obtain justice against a European, than for a European to obtain redress if
insulted or wronged by a native. This circumstance, attended as it may be with
some inconvenience, reflects the highest honour on the British name; it is a
fact of which India affords almost the first instance on record in the annals
of history. Britain is nearly the first nation in whose foreign Courts of
Justice a tenderness for the native inhabitants habitually prevails over all
the partialities arising from country and education. If there ever existed a
period, therefore, in which a European could oppress a native of India with
impunity, that time is passed away--we trust for ever. That a permission of
this nature might tend to sever India from Britain after the example of America
is of all things the most improbable...
“Long
before the number of British landholders in India shall have become
considerable, Penang and the Eastern Isles, Ceylon, the Cape, and even the
Isles of New South Wales, may in European population far exceed them in number;
and unitedly, if not singly, render the most distant step of this nature as
impracticable, as it would be ruinous, to the welfare and happiness of India...
“British-born
landholders would naturally maintain all their national attachments, for what
Briton can lose them? and derive their happiness from corresponding with the
wise and good at home. If sufficiently wealthy, they would no doubt
occasionally visit Britain, where indeed it might be expected that some of them
would reside for years together, as do the owners of estates in the West
Indies. While Britain shall remain what she now is, it will be impossible for
those who have once felt the force of British attachments, ever to forego them.
Those feelings would animate their minds, occupy their conversation, and
regulate the education and studies of their children, who would be in general
sent home that they might there imbibe all those ideas of a moral and
intellectual nature for which our beloved country is so eminent. Thus a new
intercourse would be established between Britain and the proprietors of land in
India, highly to the advantage of both countries. While they derived their
highest happiness from the religion, the literature, the philanthropy and
public spirit of Britain, they would, on the other hand, be able to furnish
Britain with the most accurate and ample information relative to the state of
things in a country in which the property they held there constrained them to
feel so deep an interest. The fear of all oppression being out of the question,
while it would be so evidently the interest not only of every Briton but of
every Christian, whether British or native, to secure the protecting aid of
Britain, at least as long as two-thirds of the inhabitants of India
retained the Hindoo or Mussulman system of religion, few things would be more
likely to cement and preserve the connection between both countries than the
existence of such a class of British-born landholders in India.”
It
is profitable to read this in the light of subsequent events--of the
Duff-Bentinck reforms, the Sepoy mutiny, the government of the Queen-Empress,
the existence of more than three millions of Christians in India, the social
and commercial development due to the non-officials from Great Britain and
America, and the administrative progress under Lord Curzon and Lord Minto.
There
is one evil which Carey never ceased to point out, but which the very
perfection of our judicial procedure and the temporary character of our land
assessments have intensified--“the borrowing system of the natives.” While 12
per cent. is the so-called legal rate of interest; it is never below 36, and
frequently rises to 72 per cent. Native marriage customs, the commercial custom
of “advances,” agricultural usage, and our civil procedure combine to sink
millions of the peasantry lower than they were, in this respect, in Carey’s
time. For this, too, he had a remedy so far as it was in his power to mitigate
an evil which only practical Christianity will cure. He was the first to apply
in India that system of savings banks which the Government has of late sought
to encourage.
At a
time when the English and even Scottish universities denied their honorary
degrees to all British subjects who were not of the established churches, Brown
University, in the United States--Judson’s--spontaneously sent Carey the
diploma of Doctor of Divinity. That was in the year 1807. In 1823 he was
elected a corresponding member of the Horticultural Society of London, a member
of the Geological Society, and a Fellow of the Linnæan
Society. To him the latter year was ever memorable, not for such honours which he had not
sought, but for a flood of the Damoodar river, which, overflowing its
embankments and desolating the whole country between it and the Hoogli,
submerged his garden and the mission grounds with three feet of water, swept
away the botanic treasures or buried them under sand, and destroyed his own
house. Carey was lying in bed at the time, under an apparently fatal fever
following dislocation of the hip-joint. He had lost his
footing when stepping from his boat. Surgical science was then less equal to
such a case than it is now, and for nine days he suffered agony, which on the
tenth resulted in fever. When hurriedly carried out of his tottering house,
which in a few hours was scoured away by the rush of the torrent into a hole
fifty feet deep, his first thought was of his garden. For six months he used
crutches, but long before he could put foot to the ground he was carefully
borne all over the scene of desolation. His noble collection of exotic plants,
unmatched in Asia save in the Company’s garden, was gone. His scientific
arrangement of orders and families was obliterated. It seemed as if the fine
barren sand of the mountain torrent would make the paradise a desert for ever.
The venerable botanist was wounded in his keenest part, but he lost not an hour
in issuing orders and writing off for new supplies of specimens and seeds,
which years after made the place as lovely if not so precious, as before. He
thus wrote to Dr. Ryland:--
“SERAMPORE,
22nd December 1823.
“MY
DEAR BROTHER--I once more address you from the land of the living, a mercy
which about two months ago I had no expectation of, nor did any one expect it
more than, nor perhaps so much as, myself. On the 1st of October I went to
Calcutta to preach, and returned with another friend about midnight. When I got
out of the boat close to our own premises, my foot slipped and I fell; my
friend also fell in the same place. I however perceived that I could not rise,
nor even make the smallest effort to rise. The boatmen carried me into the
house, and laid me on a couch, and my friend, who was a medical man, examined
my hurt.--From all this affliction I am, through mercy, nearly restored. I am
still very weak, and the injured limb is very painful. I am unable to walk two
steps without crutches; yet my strength is sensibly increasing, and Dr. Mellis,
who attended me during the illness, says he has no doubts of my perfect
recovery.
“During
my confinement, in October, such a quantity of water came down from the western
hills, that it laid the whole country for about a hundred miles in length and
the same in breadth, under water. The Ganges was filled by the flood, so as to
spread far on every side. Serampore was under water; we had three feet of water
in our garden for seven or eight days. Almost all the houses of the natives in
that vast extent of country fell; their cattle were swept away, and the people,
men, women, and children. Some gained elevated spots, where the water still
rose so high as to threaten them with death; others climbed trees, and some
floated on the roofs of their ruined houses. One of the Church missionaries,
Mr. Jetter, who had accompanied Mr. Thomason and some other gentlemen to
Burdwan to examine the schools there, called on me on his return and gave me a
most distressing account of the fall of houses, the loss of property, the
violent rushing of waters, so that none, not even the best swimmers, dared to
leave the place where they were.
“This
inundation was very destructive to the Mission house, or rather the Mission
premises. A slip of the earth (somewhat like that of an avalanche), took place
on the bank of the river near my house, and gradually approached it until only about
ten feet of space were left between that and the house; and that space soon
split. At last two fissures appeared in the foundation and wall of the house
itself. This was a signal for me to remove; and a house built for a professor
in the College being empty, I removed to it, and through mercy am now
comfortably settled there.
“I
have nearly filled my letter with this account, but I must give you a short
account of the state of my mind when I could think, and that was generally when
excited by an access of friends; at other times I could scarcely speak or
think. I concluded one or two days that my death was near. I had no joys; nor
any fear of death, or reluctance to die; but never was I so sensibly convinced
of the value of an ATONING Saviour as then. I could only say, ‘Hangs my
helpless soul on thee;’ and adopt the language of the first and second verses
of the fifty-first Psalm, which I desired might be the text for my funeral
sermon. A life of faith in Christ as the Lamb of God who taketh away the sin of
the world, appeared more than ordinarily important to my mind, and I expressed
these feelings to those about me with freedom and pleasure.
“Now,
through the gracious providence of God, I am again restored to my work, and daily
do a little as my strength will admit. The printing of the translations is now
going forward almost as usual, but I have not yet been able
to attend to my duties in College. The affairs of the Mission are more
extended, and I trust in as prosperous a state as at any former time. There are
now many of other denominations employed in Missions, and I rejoice to say that
we are all workers together in the work. The native churches were never in a
better state, and the face of the Mission is in every respect encouraging. Give
my love to all who know me.--I am very affectionately yours, W. CAREY.”
Still
more severe and disastrous in its effects was the cyclone of 1831. The former
had desolated the open garden, but this laid low some of the noblest trees
which, in their fall, crushed his splendid conservatory. One of his brethren
represents the old man as weeping over the ruin of the collections of twenty
years. Again the Hoogli, lashed into fury and swollen by the tidal wave, swept
away the lately-formed road, and, cutting off another fourth of the original
settlement of the Mission, imperilled the old house of Mr. Ward. Its ruins were
levelled to form another road, and ever since the whole face of the right bank
of the river has been a source of apprehension and expense. Just before this,
Dr. Staughton had written from America that the interest on the funds raised
there by Ward for the College would not be sent until the trustees were assured
that the money was not to be spent on the teaching of science in the College,
but only on the theological education of Hindoo converts. “I must confess,” was
Carey’s reply, “I never heard anything more illiberal. Pray can youth be
trained up for the Christian ministry without science? Do you in America train
up youths for it without any knowledge of science?”
One
of Dr. Carey’s latest visits to Calcutta was to inspect the Society’s Garden
then at Alipore, and to write the elaborate report of the Horticultural
Committee which appeared in the second volume of the Transactions after
his death. He there records the great success of the cultivation of the West
India arrowroot. This he introduced into his own garden, and after years of
discontinued culture we raised many a fine crop from the old roots. The old man
“cannot but advert, with feelings of the highest satisfaction, to the display
of vegetables on the 13th January 1830, a display which would have done honour
to any climate, or to any, even the most improved system of horticulture...The
greater part of the vegetables then produced were, till within these last few
years, of species wholly unknown to the native gardeners.”
When,
in 1842, the Agri-Horticultural Society resolved to honour its founder, it
appropriately fell to Dr. Wallich, followed by the president Sir J. P. Grant,
to do what is thus recorded:--“Dr. Wallich addressed the meeting at some
length, and alluded to the peculiar claims which their late venerable founder
had on the affection of all classes for his untiring exertions in advancing the
prosperity of India, and especially so on the members of the Society. He
concluded his address by this motion:--‘That the Agricultural and Horticultural
Society of India, duly estimating the great and important services rendered to
the interests of British India by the founder of the institution, the late
Reverend Dr. William Carey, who unceasingly applied his great talents,
abilities, and influence in advancing the happiness of India--more especially
by the spread of an improved system of husbandry and gardening--desire to mark,
by some permanent record, their sense of his transcendent worth, by placing a
marble bust to his memory in the Society’s new apartments at the Metcalfe Hall,
there to remain a lasting testimony to the pure and disinterested zeal and
labours of so illustrious a character: that a subscription, accordingly, from
among the members of the Society, be urgently recommended for the
accomplishment of the above object.’”
One
fact in the history of the marble bust of Carey, which since 1845 has adorned
the hall of the Agricultural Society of India, would have delighted the
venerable missionary. Following the engraving from Home’s portrait, and advised
by one of the sons, Nobo Koomar Pal, a self-educated Bengali artist, modelled
the clay. The clay bust was sent to England for the guidance of Mr. J. C.
Lough, the sculptor selected by Dr. Royle to finish the work in marble. Mr.
Lough had executed the Queen’s statue for the Royal Exchange, and the monument
with a reclining figure of Southey. In sending out the marble bust of Carey to
Calcutta Dr. Royle wrote,--“I think the bust an admirable one; General Macleod
immediately recognised it as one of your much esteemed Founder.”
The
Bengal Asiatic Society, on the motion of the Lord Bishop and Colonel Sir Jer.
Bryant, entered these words on their Journal:--“The Asiatic Society
cannot note upon their proceedings the death of the Rev. W. Carey, D.D., so
long an active member and an ornament of this Institution, distinguished alike for his high
attainments in the Oriental languages, for his eminent services in opening the
stores of Indian literature to the knowledge of Europe, and for his extensive
acquaintance with the sciences, the natural history and botany of this country,
and his useful contributions on every hand towards the promotion of the objects
of the Society, without placing on record this expression of their high sense
of his value and merits as a scholar and a man of science; their esteem for the
sterling and surpassing religious and moral excellencies of his character, and
their sincere grief for his irreparable loss.”
CHAPTER
XIII
CAREY’S
IMMEDIATE INFLUENCE IN GREAT BRITAIN AND AMERICA
1813-1830
Carey’s
relation to the new era--The East India Company’s Charters of 1793, 1813, and
1833--His double influence on the churches and public opinion--The great
missionary societies--Missionary journals and their readers--Bengal and India
recognised as the most important mission fields--Influence on Robert
Haldane--Reflex effect of foreign on home missions--Carey’s power over
individuals--Melville Horne and Douglas of Cavers--Henry Martyn--Charles Simeon
and Stewart of Moulin--Robert Hall and John Foster--Heber and Chalmers--William
Wilberforce on Carey--Mr. Prendergast and the tub story--Last persecution by
the Company’s Government--Carey on the persecution and the charter
controversy--The persecuting clause and the resolution legalising
toleration--The Edinburgh Review and Sydney Smith’s fun--Sir James
Mackintosh’s opinion--Southey’s defence and eulogy of Carey and the brotherhood
in the Quarterly Review--Political value of Carey’s labours--Andrew
Fuller’s death--A model foreign mission secretary--His friendship with
Carey--The sixteen years’ dispute--Dr. Carey’s position--His defence of
Marshman--His chivalrous seIf-sacrifice--His forgiveness of the younger
brethren in Calcutta--His fidelity to righteousness and to friendship.
HIMSELF
the outcome of the social and political forces which began in the French
Revolution, and are still at work, William Carey was made a living personal
force to the new era. The period which was introduced in 1783 by the Peace of
Versailles in Europe following the Independence of the United States of
America, was new on every side--in politics, in philosophy, in literature, in
scientific research, in a just and benevolent regard for the peoples of every
land, and in the awakening of the churches from the sleep of formalism. Carey
was no thinker, but with the reality and the vividness of practical action and personal
sacrifice he led the English-speaking races, to whom the future of the world
was then given, to substitute for the dreams of Rousseau and all other theories
the teaching of Christ as to His kingdom within each man, and in the progress
of mankind.
Set free from the impossible
task of administering North America on the absolutist system which the Georges
would fain have continued, Great Britain found herself committed to the duty of
doing for India what Rome had done for Europe. England was compelled to
surrender the free West to her own children only that she might raise the
servile and idolatrous East to such a Christian level as the genius of its
peoples could in time enable them to work out. But it took the thirty years
from 1783 to 1813 to convince British statesmen, from Pitt to Castlereagh, that
India is to be civilised not according to its own false systems, but by truth
in all forms, spiritual and moral, scientific and historical. It took other
twenty years, to the Charter of 1833, to complete the conversion of the British
Parliament to the belief that the principles of truth and freedom are in their
measure as good for the East as for the West. At the beginning of this new
period William Pitt based his motion for Parliamentary reform on this fact,
that “our senators are no longer the representatives of British virtue but of
the vices and pollutions of the East.” At the close of it Lord William
Bentinck, Macaulay, and Duff, co-operated in the decree which
made truth, as most completely revealed through the English language and
literature, the medium of India’s enlightenment. William Carey’s career of
fifty years, from his baptism in 1783 and the composition of his Enquiry
to his death in 1834, covered and influenced more than any other one man’s the
whole time; and he represented in it an element of permanent healthy
nationalisation which these successors overlooked,--the use of the languages of
the peoples of India as the only literary channels for allowing the truth
revealed through English to reach the millions of the people.
It
was by this means that Carey educated Great Britain and America to rise equal
to the terrible trust of jointly creating a Christian Empire of India, and
ultimately a series of self-governing Christian nations in Southern and Eastern
Asia. He consciously and directly roused the Churches of all names to carry out
the commission of their Master, and to seek the promised impulse of His Spirit
or Divine Representative on earth, that they might do greater things than even
those which He did. And he, less directly but not less consciously, brought the
influence of public opinion, which every year purified and quickened, to bear
upon Parliament and upon individual statesmen, aided in this up till 1815 by
Andrew Fuller. He never set foot in England again, and the influence of his
brethren Ward and Marshman during their visits was largely neutralised by some
leaders of their own church. But Carey’s character and career, his letters and
writings, his work and whole personality, stood out in England, Scotland, and
America as the motive power which stimulated every church and society, and won
the triumph of toleration in the charter of 1813, of humanity, education, and
administrative reform in the legislation of Lord William Bentinck.
We
have already seen how the immediate result of Carey’s early letters was the
foundation on a catholic basis of the London Missionary Society, which now
represents the great Nonconformist half of England; of the Edinburgh or
Scottish and Glasgow Societies, through which the Presbyterians sent forth
missionaries to West and South Africa and to Western India, until their
churches acted as such; of the Church Missionary Society which the evangelical
members of the Church of England have put in the front of all the societies;
and of Robert Haldane’s splendid self-sacrifice in selling all that he had to
lead a large Presbyterian mission to Hindostan. Soon (1797) the London Society
became the parent of that of the Netherlands, and of that which is one of the most
extensive in Christendom, the American Board of Commissioners for Foreign
Missions. The latter, really founded (1810) by Judson and some of his
fellow-students, gave birth (1814) to the almost equally great American Baptist
Union when Judson and his colleague became Baptists, and the former was sent by
Carey to Burma. The Religious Tract Society (1799), and the British and Foreign
Bible Society (1804)--each a handmaid of the missionary agencies--sprang as
really though less directly from Carey’s action. Such organised efforts to
bring in heathen and Mohammedan peoples led in 1809 to the at first catholic
work begun by the London Society for promoting Christianity among the Jews. The
older Wesleyan Methodist and Gospel Propagation Societies, catching the enthusiasm
as Carey succeeded in opening India and the East, entered on a new development
under which the former in 1813, and the latter in 1821, no longer confined
their operations to the slaves of America and the English of the dispersion in
the colonies and dependencies of Great Britain. In 1815 Lutheran Germany also,
which had cast out the Pietists and the Moravian brethren as the Church of
England had rejected the Wesleyans, founded the principal representative of its
evangelicalism at Basel. The succeeding years up to Carey’s death saw similar
missionary centres formed, or reorganised, in Leipzig (1819), Berlin (1823), and Bremen
(1836).23
The Periodical
Accounts sent home from Mudnabati and Serampore, beginning at the close of
1794, and the Monthly Circular Letters after 1807, gave birth not only
to these great missionary movements but to the new and now familiar class of
foreign missionary periodicals. The few magazines then existing, like the Evangelical,
became filled with a new spirit of earnest aggressiveness. In 1796 there
appeared in Edinburgh The Missionary Magazine, “a periodical publication
intended as a repository of discussion and intelligence respecting the progress
of the Gospel throughout the world.” The editors close their preface in January
1797 with this statement:--“With much pleasure they have learned that there was
never a greater number of religious periodical publications carried on than at
present, and never were any of them more generally read. The aggregate
impression of those alone which are printed in Britain every month considerably
exceeds thirty thousand.” The first article utilises the facts sent home by Dr.
Carey as the fruit of his first two years’ experience, to show “The Peculiar
Advantages of Bengal as a Field for Missions from Great Britain.” After
describing, in the style of an English statesman, the immense population, the
highly civilised state of society, the eagerness of the natives in the
acquisition of knowledge, and the principles which the Hindoos and Mohammedans
hold in common with Christians, the writer thus continues:--
“The
attachment of both the Mohammedans and Hindoos to their ancient systems
is lessening every day. We have this information from the late Sir William
Jones, one of the Judges of that country, a name dear to literature, and a
lover of the religion of Jesus. The Mussulmans in Hindostan are in general but
little acquainted with their system, and by no means so zealous for it as their
brethren in the Turkish and Persian empires. Besides, they have not the strong
arm of civil authority to crush those who would convert them. Mr. Carey’s
letters seem to intimate the same relaxation among the Hindoos. This decay of
prejudice and bigotry will at least incline them to listen with more patience,
and a milder temper, to the doctrines and evidences of the Christian religion.
The degree of adhesion to their castes, which still remains, is certainly
unfavourable, and must be considered as one of Satan’s arts to render men
unhappy; but it is not insuperable. The Roman Catholics have gained myriads of
converts from among them. The Danish missionaries record their thousands too:
and one (Schwartz) of the most successful missionaries at present in the world
is labouring in the southern part of Hindostan. Besides a very considerable
number who have thrown aside their old superstition, and make a profession of
the Christian religion, he computes that, in the course of his ministry, he has
been the instrument of savingly converting two thousand persons to the faith of
Christ. Of these, above five hundred are Mohammedans: the rest are from among
the different castes of the Hindoos. In addition to these instances, it is
proper to notice the attention which the Hindoos are paying to the two Baptist
missionaries, and which gives a favourable specimen of their readiness to
listen to the preaching of the Gospel...
“Reflect,
O disciple of Jesus! on what has been presented to thy view. The cause of
Christ is thy own cause. Without deep criminality thou canst not be indifferent
to its success. Rejoice that so delightful a field of missions has been
discovered and exhibited. Rouse thyself from the slumbers of spiritual languor.
Exert thyself to the utmost of thy power; and let conscience be able to
testify, without a doubt, even at the tribunal of Jesus Christ, If
missionaries are not speedily sent to preach she glorious Gospel in Bengal, it
shall not be owing to me.”
That
is remarkable writing for an Edinburgh magazine in the year 1797, and it was
Carey who made it possible. Its author followed up the appeal by offering
himself and his all, for life and death, in a “Plan of the Mission to Bengal,”
which appeared in the April number. Robert Haldane, whose journal at this time
was full of Carey’s doings, and his ordained associates, Bogue, Innes, and
Greville Ewing, accompanied by John Ritchie as printer, John Campbell as
catechist, and other lay workers, determined to turn the very centre of
Hindooism, Benares, into a second Serampore. Defeated by one set of Directors of
the East India Company, he waited for the election of their successors, only to
find the East India Company as hostile to the Scottish gentleman as they had
been to the English shoemaker four years before.
The
formation of the great Missionary and Bible Societies did not, as in the case
of the Moravian Brethren and the Wesleyans, take their members out of the
Churches of England and Scotland, of the Baptists and Independents. It supplied
in each case an executive through which they worked aggressively not only on
the non-christian world, but still more directly on their own home
congregations and parishes. The foreign mission spirit directly gave birth to
the home mission on an extensive
scale. Not merely did the Haldanes and their agents, following Whitefield and
the Scottish Secession of 1733, become the evangelists of the north when they
were not suffered to preach the Gospel in South Asia; every member of the
churches of Great Britain and America, as he caught the enthusiasm of humanity,
in the Master’s sense, from the periodical accounts sent home from Serampore,
and soon from Africa and the South Seas, as well as from the Red Indians and
Slaves of the West, began to work as earnestly among the neglected classes
around him, as to pray and give for the conversion of the peoples abroad. From
first to last, from the early days of the Moravian influence on Wesley and
Whitefield, and the letters of Carey, to the successive visits to the home
churches of missionaries like Duff and Judson, Ellis and Williams, Moffat and
Livingstone, it is the enterprise of foreign missions which has been the leaven
of Christendom no less really than of the rest of the world. Does the fact that
at the close of the year 1796 there were more than thirty thousand men and
women in Great Britain who every month read and prayed about the then little
known world of heathenism, and spared not their best to bring that world to the
Christ whom they had found, seem a small thing? How much smaller, even to
contemptible insignificance, must those who think so consider the arrival of
William Carey in Calcutta to be three years before! Yet the thirty thousand
sprang from the one, and to-day the thirty thousand have
a vast body of Christians really obedient to the Master, in so far as, banded
together in five hundred churches and societies, they have sent out eighteen
thousand missionaries instead of one or two; they see eighty thousand Asiatics,
Africans, and Polynesians proclaiming the Christ to their countrymen, and their
praying is tested by their giving annually a sum of £5,000,000, to which every
year is adding.
The
influence of Carey and his work on individual men and women in his generation
was even more marked, inasmuch as his humility kept him so often from
magnifying his office and glorifying God as the example of Paul should have
encouraged him to do. Most important of all for the cause, he personally called
Ward to be his associate, and his writings drew Dr. and Mrs. Marshman to his
side, while his apostolic charity so developed and used all that was good in
Thomas and Fountain, that not even in the churches of John and James, Peter and
Paul, Barnabas and Luke, was there such a brotherhood. When troubles came from
outside he won to himself the younger brethren, Yates and Pearce, and healed
half the schism which Andrew Fuller’s successors made. His Enquiry,
followed “by actually embarking on a mission to India,” led to the publication
of the Letters on Missions addressed to the Protestant Ministers of the
British Churches by Melville Horne, who, after a brief experience as Church
of England chaplain in Zachary Macaulay’s settlement of Sierra Leone, published
that little book to excite in all Christians a passion for missions like the
Master’s. Referring to the English churches, Established and Nonconformist, he
wrote:--“Except the Reverend Mr. Carey and a friend who accompanies him, I am
not informed of any...ministers who are engaged in missions.” Such was the
impression made by Carey on John Newton that, in 1802, he rebuked his old curate,
Claudius Buchanan, for depreciating the Serampore missionaries, adding, “I do
not look for miracles, but if God were to work one in our day, I should not
wonder if it were in favour of Dr. Carey.”
The
Serampore Mission, at an early period, called forth the admiration of the
Scottish philanthropist and essayist, James Douglas of Cavers, whose Hints
on Missions (1822), a book still full of suggestiveness, contains this
passage:--“Education and the press have only been employed to purpose of very
late years, especially by the missionaries of Serampore; every year they have
been making some improvements upon their former efforts, and...it only requires
to increase the number of printing presses, schools, teachers, translators, and
professors, to accelerate to any pitch the rate of improvement...To attempt to
convert the world without educating it, is grasping at the end and neglecting
the means.” Referring to what Carey had begun and the Serampore College had
helped to develop in Asia, as in Africa and America, Douglas of Cavers well
described the missionary era, the new crusade:--“The Reformation itself needed
anew a reform in the spirit if not in the letter. That second Reformation has
begun; it makes less noise than that of Luther, but it spreads wider and deeper;
as it is more intimate it will be more enduring. Like the Temple of Solomon, it
is rising silently, without the din of pressure or the note of previous
preparation, but notwithstanding it will be not less complete in all its parts
nor less able to resist the injuries of time!”
Henry
Martyn died, perhaps the loftiest and most loving spirit of the men whom Carey
drew to India. Son of a Cornish miner-captain, after passing through the Truro
Grammar School, he was sixteen--the age at which Carey became a shoemaker’s
apprentice--when he was entered at St. John’s, and made that ever since the
most missionary of all the colleges of Cambridge. When not yet twenty he came
out Senior Wrangler. His father’s death drove him to the Bible, to the Acts of
the Apostles, which he began to study, and the first whisper of the call of
Christ came to him in the joy of the Magnificat as its strains pealed
through the chapel. Charles Simeon’s preaching drew him to Trinity Church. In
the vicarage, when he had come to be tutor of his college, and was preparing
for the law, he heard much talk of William Carey, of his self-sacrifice and his
success in India. It was the opening year of the nineteenth century, the Church
Missionary Society had just been born as the fruit partly of a paper written by
Simeon four years previously, and he offered himself as its first English
missionary. He was not twenty-one, he could not be ordained for two years.
Meanwhile a calamity made him and his unmarried sister penniless; he loved
Lydia Grenfell with a pure passion which enriched while it saddened his short
life, and a chaplaincy became the best mode in every way of his living and
dying for India. What a meeting must that have been between him and Carey when,
already stricken by fever, he found a sanctuary in Aldeen, and learned at
Serampore the sweetness of telling to the natives of India in one of their own
tongues the love of God. William Carey and Henry Martyn were one in origin,
from the people; in industry, as scholars; in genius, as God-devoted; in the
love of a great heart not always returned. The older man left the church of his
fathers because there was no Simeon and no missionary society, and he made his
own university; he laid the foundation of English missions deep and broad in no
sect but in Christ, to whom he and Martyn alike gave themselves.
The
names of Carey and Simeon, thus linked to each other by Martyn, find another
pleasant and fruitful tie in the Rev. Alexander Stewart, D.D., Gaelic scholar
and Scottish preacher. It was soon after Carey went out to India that Simeon,
travelling in the Highlands, spent a Sunday in the manse of Moulin, where his
personal intercourse and his evening sermon after a season of Communion were
blessed to the evangelical enlightenment of Stewart. Moulin was the birthplace
ten years after of Alexander Duff, whose parents previously came under the
power of the minister’s new-found light.24 Like Simeon, Dr. Stewart thenceforth
became a warm supporter of foreign missions. Finding in the Periodical
Accounts a letter in which Carey asked Fuller to send him a copy of Van der
Hooght’s edition of the Hebrew Bible because of the weakness of his eyesight,
Dr. Stewart at once wrote offering his own copy. Fuller gladly accepted the
kindness. “I with great pleasure,” writes Dr. Stewart, “followed the direction,
wrote a letter of some length to Carey, and sent off my parcel to London. I
daresay you remember my favourite Hebrew Bible in two volumes. I parted with it
with something of the same feelings that a pious parent might do with a
favourite son going on a mission to the heathen--with a little regret but with
much goodwill.” This was the beginning of an interesting correspondence with
Carey and Fuller.
Next
to Andrew Fuller, and in the region of literature, general culture and
eloquence before him, the strongest men among the Baptists were the younger
Robert Hall and John Foster. Both were devoted to Carey, and were the most
powerful of the English advocates of his mission. The former, for a time, was
led to side with the Society in some of the details of its dispute with Dr.
Marshman, but his loyalty to Carey and the principles of the mission fired some
of the most eloquent orations in English literature. John Foster’s shrewder
common sense never wavered, but inspired his pen alike in the heat of
controversy and in his powerful essays and criticisms. Writing in 1828, he
declared that the Serampore missionaries “have laboured with the most earnest
assiduity for a quarter of a century (Dr. Carey much longer) in all manner of
undertakings for promoting Christianity, with such a renunciation of
self-interest as will never be surpassed; that they have conveyed the oracles
of divine truth into so many languages; that they have watched over diversified
missionary operations with unremitting care; that they have conducted
themselves through many trying and some perilous circumstances with prudence
and fortitude; and that they retain to this hour an undiminished zeal to do all
that providence shall enable them in the same good cause.” The expenditure of
the Serampore Brotherhood up to that time, leaving out of account the
miscellaneous missionary services, he showed to have been upwards of £75,000.
Dr. Chalmers in Scotland was as stoutly with Carey and his brethren as Foster was
in England, so that Marshman wrote:--“Thus two of the greatest and wisest men
of England are on our side, and, what is more, I trust the Lord God is with
us.” What Heber thought, alike as man and bishop, his own loving letter and
proposal for “reunion of our churches” in the next chapter will show.
Of all the publicists in the
United Kingdom during Carey’s long career the foremost was William Wilberforce;
he was not second even to Charles Grant and his sons. Defeated in carrying into
law the “pious clauses” of the charter which would have opened India to the
Christian missionary and schoolmaster in 1793, he nevertheless succeeded by his
persuasive eloquence and the weight of his character in having them entered as
Resolutions of the House of Commons. He then gave himself successfully to the
abolition of the slave-trade. But he always declared the toleration of
Christianity in British India to be “that greatest of all causes, for I really
place it before the abolition, in which, blessed be God, we gained the
victory.” His defeat in 1793, when Dundas and the Government were with him, was
due to the apathy of public opinion, and especially of the dumb churches. But
in the next twenty years Carey changed all that. Not merely was Andrew Fuller
ever on the watch with pen and voice, but all the churches were roused, the
Established to send out bishops and chaplains, the Nonconformist and
Established Evangelicals together to secure freedom for missionaries and
schoolmasters. In 1793 an English missionary was an unknown and therefore a
much-dreaded monster, for Carey was then on the sea. In 1813 Carey and the
Serampore Brotherhood were still the only English missionaries continuously at
work in India, and not the churches only, but governor-generals like Teignmouth
and Wellesley, and scholars like Colebrooke and H. H. Wilson, were familiar
with the grandeur and political innocency of their labours. Hence this outburst
of Wilberforce in the House of Commons on the 16th July 1813, when he used the
name of Carey to defeat an attempt of the Company to prevent toleration by
omitting the declaratory clauses of the Resolution, which would have made it
imply that the privilege should never be exerted though the power of licensing
missionaries was nominally conceded.
“One great argument of his
opponents was grounded on the enthusiastic character which they imputed to the
missionary body. India hitherto has seen no missionary who was a member of the
English Church, and imputations could be cast more readily on ‘Anabaptists and fanatics.’
These attacks Mr. Wilberforce indignantly refuted, and well had the noble
conduct of the band at Serampore deserved this vindication. ‘I do not know,’ he
often said, ‘a finer instance of the moral sublime, than that a poor cobbler
working in his stall should conceive the idea of converting the Hindoos to
Christianity; yet such was Dr. Carey. Why Milton’s planning his Paradise
Lost in his old age and blindness was nothing to it. And then when he had
gone to India, and was appointed by Lord Wellesley to a lucrative and
honourable station in the college of Fort William, with equal nobleness of mind
he made over all his salary (between £1000 and £1500 per annum) to the general
objects of the mission. By the way, nothing ever gave me a more lively sense of
the low and mercenary standard of your men of honour, than the manifest effect
produced upon the House of Commons by my stating this last circumstance. It
seemed to be the only thing which moved them.’ Dr. Carey had been especially
attacked, and ‘a few days afterwards the member who had made this charge came
to me, and asked me in a manner which in a noted duellist could not be
mistaken, “Pray, Mr. Wilberforce, do you know a Mr. Andrew Fuller, who has
written to desire me to retract the statement which I made with reference to
Dr. Carey?” “Yes,” I answered with a smile, “I know him perfectly, but depend
upon it you will make nothing of him in your way; he is a respectable Baptist
minister at Kettering.” In due time there came from India an authoritative contradiction
of the slander. It was sent to me, and for two whole years did I take it in my
pocket to the House of Commons to read it to the House whenever the author of
the accusation should be present; but during that whole time he never once
dared show himself in the House.’”
The slanderer was a Mr.
Prendergast, who affirmed that Dr. Carey’s conduct had changed so much for the
worse since the departure of Lord Wellesley, that he himself had seen the
missionary on a tub in the streets of Calcutta haranguing the mob and abusing
the religion of the people in such a way that the police alone saved him from
being killed. So, and for the same object of defeating the Resolutions on
Toleration, Mr. Montgomerie Campbell had asserted that when Schwartz was in the
heat of his discourse in a certain village and had taken off his stock, “that
and his gold buckle were stolen by one of his virtuous and enlightened
congregation; in such a description of natives did the doctrine of the
missionaries operate.” Before Dr. Carey’s exposure could reach England this
“tub” story became the stock argument of the anti-christian orators. The Madras
barrister, Marsh, who was put up to answer Wilberforce, was driven to such
language as this:--
“Your struggles are only
begun when you have converted one caste; never will the scheme of Hindoo
conversion be realised till you persuade an immense population to suffer by
whole tribes the severest martyrdom that has yet been sustained for the sake of
religion--and are the missionaries whom this bill will let loose on India fit
engines for the accomplishment of this great revolution? Will these people,
crawling from the holes and caverns of their original destinations, apostates
from the loom and the anvil--he should have said the awl--and renegades from
the lowest handicraft employments, be a match for the cool and sedate controversies
they will have to encounter should the Brahmans condescend to enter into the
arena against the maimed and crippled gladiators that presume to grapple with
their faith? What can be apprehended but the disgrace and discomfiture of whole
hosts of tub preachers in the conflict?”
Lord
Wellesley’s eulogy of the Serampore mission in the House of Lords was much more
pronounced than appears from the imperfect report. But even in that he answered
the Brahmanised member of the House of Commons thus:--
“With
regard to the missionaries, he must say that while he was in India he never
knew of any danger arising from their proceedings, neither had he heard of any
impression produced by them in the way of conversion. The greater number of
them were in the Danish settlement of Serampore; but he never heard of any
convulsions or any alarm produced by them. Some of them, particularly Mr.
Carey, were very learned men, and had been employed in the College of Fort
William. He had always considered the missionaries who were in India in his
time a quiet, orderly, discreet, and learned body; and he had employed them in
the education of youth and the translation of the Scriptures into the eastern
languages. He had thought it his duty to have the Sacred Scriptures translated
into the languages of the East, and to give the learned natives employed in the
translation the advantage of access to the sacred fountain of divine truth. He
thought a Christian governor could not have done less; and he knew that a
British governor ought not to do more.”
Carey’s
letters to Fuller in 1810-12 are filled with importunate appeals to agitate, so
that the new charter might legalise Christian mission work in India. Fuller
worked outside of the House as hard as Wilberforce. In eight weeks of the
session no fewer than nine hundred petitions were presented, in twenties and
thirties, night after night, till Lord Castlereagh exclaimed, “This is enough,
Mr. Fuller.” There was more reason for Carey’s urgency than he knew at the time
he was pressing Fuller. The persecution of the missionaries in Bengal, excused
by the Vellore mutiny, which had driven Judson to Burma and several other
missionaries elsewhere, was renewed by the Indian Government’s secretaries and
police. The Ministry had informed the Court of Directors that they had resolved
to permit Europeans to settle in India, yet after five weeks’ vacillation the
Governor-General yielded to his subordinates so far as to issue an order on 5th
March 1812, for the expulsion of three missionaries, an order which was so
executed that one of them was conducted like a felon through the streets and
lodged in the native jail for two hours. Carey thus wrote to Ryland on the
persecution:--
“CALCUTTA,
14th April 1813.--Before this reaches you it is probable that you
will have heard of the resolution of Government respecting our brethren Johns,
Lawson, and Robinson, and will perhaps have even seen Brother Johns, who was by
that cruel order sent home on the Castlereagh. Government have agreed
that Brother Lawson shall stay till the pleasure of the Court of Directors is
known, to whom a reference will be made. Brother Robinson was gone down the
river, and was on board a ship bound to Java when the order was issued; he
therefore got out without hearing of it, but I understand it will be sent
thither after him. Jehovah reigneth!
“Since
Brother Johns’s departure I have tried to ascertain the cause of the severity
in Government. I had a long conversation with H. T. Colebrooke, Esq., who has
been out of Council but a few months, upon the matter. I cannot learn that
Government has any specific dislike to us, but find that ever since the year
1807 the orders of the Court of Directors to send home all Europeans not in the
service of Her Majesty or the Company, and who come out without leave of the
Directors, have been so peremptory and express that Government cannot now
overlook any circumstance which brings such persons to notice. Notwithstanding
the general way in which the Court of Directors have worded their orders, I
cannot help putting several circumstances together, which make me fear that our
Mission was the cause of the enforcement of that general law which forbids
Europeans to remain in India without the leave of the Court of Directors.
“Whether
Twining’s pamphlet excited the alarm, or was only an echo of the minds of a
number of men hostile to religion, I cannot say, but if I recollect dates
aright the orders of the Court of Directors came as soon as possible after that
pamphlet was published; and as it would have been too barefaced to have given a
specific order to send home missionaries, they founded their orders on an
unjust and wicked clause in the charter, and so enforced it that it should
effectually operate on missionaries.
“I
hope the friends of religion will persevere in the use of all peaceful and
lawful means to prevail on the legislature to expunge that clause, or so to
modify it that ministers of the Gospel may have leave to preach, form and visit
churches, and perform the various duties of their office without molestation,
and that they may have a right to settle in and travel over any part of India
for that purpose. Nothing can be more just than this wish, and nothing would be more politic
than for it to be granted; for every one converted from among the heathen is
from that time a staunch friend of the English Government. Our necks have,
however, been more or less under the yoke ever since that year, and preaching
the Gospel stands in much the same political light as committing an act of
felony. Witness what has been done to Mr. Thompson, the five American brethren,
and our three brethren. Mr. Thomason, the clergyman, has likewise hard work to
stand his ground.
“I
trust, however, it is too late to eradicate the Gospel from Bengal. The number
of those born in the country who preach the Word is now very considerable.
Fifteen of this description preach constantly, and seven or eight more
occasionally exhort their countrymen, besides our European brethren. The Gospel
is stationed at eighteen or twenty stations belonging to our Mission alone, and
at several of them there are churches. The Bible is either translated or under
translation into twenty-four of the languages of the East, eighteen of which we
are employed about, besides printing most of the others. Thirteen out of these
eighteen are now in the press, including a third edition of the Bengali New
Testament. Indeed, so great is the demand for Bibles that though we have eight
presses constantly at work I fear we shall not have a Bengali New Testament to
sell or give away for the next twelve months, the old edition being entirely
out of print. We shall be in almost the same predicament with the Hindostani.
We are going to set up two more presses, which we can get made in Calcutta, and
are going to send another to Rangoon. In short, though the publishing of the
Word of God is a political crime, there never was a time when it was so
successful. ‘Not by might, nor by power, but by my Spirit, saith the Lord.’
“Through
divine mercy we are all well, and live in peace and love. A small cloud which
threatened at the time Brother Johns left us has mercifully blown over, and we
are now in the utmost harmony. I will, if possible, write to my nephew Eustace
by these ships, but I am so pressed for time that I can never promise to write
a letter. The Lord has so blessed us that we are now printing in more languages
than we could do before the fire took place.
“Give
my love to Eustace, also to all who recollect or think of me. I am now near
fifty-two years of age; yet through mercy I am well and am enabled to keep
close to work twelve or fourteen hours a day. I hope to see the Bible printed
in most of the languages in which it is begun.--I am, very affectionately
yours, WM. CAREY.”
Carey
had previously written thus to Fuller:--“The fault lies in the clause which
gives the Company power thus to send home interlopers, and is just as
reasonable as one which should forbid all the people in England--a select few
excepted--to look at the moon. I hope this clause will be modified or expunged
in the new charter. The prohibition is wrong, and nothing that is morally wrong
can be politically right.”
It
was left to the charter of 1853 fully to liberalise the Company, but each step
was taken too late to save it from the nemesis of 1857 and extinction in 1858.
“Let no man think,” Wilberforce had said to the House of Commons in 1813, “that
the petitions which have loaded our table have been produced by a burst of
momentary enthusiasm. While the sun and moon continue to shine in the firmament
so long will this object be pursued with unabated ardour until the great work
be accomplished.”
The
opposition of Anglo-Indian officials and lawyers, which vainly used no better
weapons than such as Mr. Prendergast and his “tub” fabrication, had been
anticipated and encouraged by the Edinburgh Review. That periodical was
at the height of its influence in 1808, the year before John Murray’s Quarterly
was first published. The Rev. Sydney Smith, as the literary and professional
representative of what he delighted to call “the cause of rational religion,”
was the foe of every form of earnest Christianity, which he joined the mob in
stigmatising as “Methodism.” He was not unacquainted with Indian politics, for
his equally clever brother, known as Bobus Smith, was long Advocate-General in
Calcutta, and left a very considerable fortune made there to enrich the last
six years of the Canon’s life. Casting about for a subject on which to exercise
at once his animosity and his fun, he found it in the Periodical Accounts,
wherein Fuller had undoubtedly too often published letters and passages of
journals written only for the eye of the private friend. Carey frequently
remonstrated against the publicity given to some of his communications, and the
fear of this checked his correspondence. In truth, the new-born enthusiasm was
such that, at first, the Committee kept nothing back. It was easy for a
litterateur like Sydney Smith in those days to extract passages and to give
them such headings as “Brother Carey’s Piety at Sea,” “Hatred of the Natives to
the Gospel.”
Smith produced an article which, as republished in his collected essays, has a
historical value as a test of the bitterness of the hate which the missionary
enterprise had to meet in secular literature till the death of Livingstone,
Wilson, and Duff opened the eyes of journalism to the facts. In itself it must
be read in the light of its author’s own criticism of his articles, thus
expressed in a letter to Francis Jeffrey, and of the regret that he had written
it which, Jeffrey told Dr. Marshman, he lived to utter:--“Never
mind; let them” (his articles) “go away with their absurdity unadulterated and
pure. If I please, the object for which I write is attained; if I do
not, the laughter which follows my error is the only thing which can make me
cautious and tremble.” But for that picture by himself we should have
pronounced Carlyle’s drawing of him to be almost as malicious as his own of the
Serampore missonaries--“A mass of fat and muscularity, with massive Roman nose,
piercing hazel eyes, shrewdness and fun--not humour or even wit--seemingly
without soul altogether.”
The
attack called forth a reply by Mr. Styles so severe that Sydney Smith wrote a
rejoinder which began by claiming credit for “rooting out a nest of consecrated
cobblers.” Sir James Mackintosh, then in Bombay, wrote of a similar assault by
Mr. Thomas Twining on the Bible Societies, that it “must excite general
indignation. The only measure which he could consistently propose would be the
infliction of capital punishment on the crime of preaching or embracing
Christianity in India, for almost every inferior degree of persecution is
already practised by European or native anti-christians. But it fell to
Southey, in the very first number of the Quarterly Review, in April
1809, to deal with the Rev. Sydney Smith, and to defend Carey and the
Brotherhood as both deserved. The layman’s defence was the more effective for
its immediate purpose that he started from the same prejudice as that of the
reverend Whig rationalist--“the Wesleyans, the Orthodox dissenters of every
description, and the Evangelical churchmen may all be comprehended under the
generic name of Methodists. The religion which they preach is not the religion
of our fathers, and what they have altered they have made worse.” But Southey
had himself faith as well as a literary canon higher than that of his opponent
who wrote only to “please” his patrons. He saw in these Methodists alone that
which he appreciated as the essence of true faith--“that spirit of enthusiasm
by which Europe was converted to Christianity they have in some measure
revived, and they have removed from Protestantism a part of its reproach.” He
proceeded to tell how “this Mission, which is represented by its enemies as so
dangerous to the British Empire in India, and thereby, according to a logic
learnt from Buonaparte, to England also, originated in a man by name William
Carey, who till the twenty-fourth year of his age was a working shoemaker.
Sectarianism has this main advantage over the Established Church, that its men
of ability certainly find their station, and none of its talents are neglected
or lost. Carey was a studious and pious man, his faith wrong, his feelings
right. He made himself competently versed in Latin, Greek, and Hebrew. He is
now probably a far more learned orientalist than any European has ever been
before him, and has been appointed Professor of Sanskrit and Bengali at the
College of Fort William.” Then follow a history of the Mission written in a
style worthy of the author of the Life of Nelson, and these statements
of the political and the purely missionary questions, which read now almost as
predictions:--
“The
first step towards winning the natives to our religion is to show them that we
have one. This will hardly be done without a visible church. There would be no
difficulty in filling up the establishment, however ample; but would the
archbishop, bishops, deans, and chapters of Mr. Buchanan’s plan do the work of
missionaries? Could the Church of England supply missionaries?--where are they
to be found among them? In what school for the promulgation of sound and
orthodox learning are they trained up? There is ability and there is learning
in the Church of England, but its age of fermentation has long been over; and
that zeal which for this work is the most needful is, we fear, possessed only
by the Methodists...
“Carey
and his son have been in Bengal fourteen years, the other brethren only nine;
they had all a difficult language to acquire before they could speak to a
native, and to preach and argue in it required a thorough and familiar
knowledge. Under these circumstances the wonder is, not that they have done so
little, but that they have done so much; for it will be found that, even
without this difficulty to retard them, no religious opinions have spread more
rapidly in the same time, unless there was some remarkable folly or
extravagance to recommend them, or some powerful worldly inducement. Their
progress will be continually accelerating; the difficulty is at first, as in
introducing vaccination into a distant land; when the matter has once taken one
subject supplies infection for all around him, and the disease takes root in
the country. The husband converts the wife, the son converts the parent, the
friend his friend, and every fresh proselyte becomes a missionary in his own
neighbourhood. Thus their sphere of influence and of action widens, and the eventual
issue of a struggle between truth and falsehood is not to be doubted by those
who believe in the former. Other missionaries from other societies have now
entered India, and will soon become efficient labourers in their station. From
Government all that is asked is toleration for themselves and protection for
their converts. The plan which they have laid for their own proceedings is
perfectly prudent and unexceptionable, and there is as little fear of their
provoking martyrdom as there would be of their shrinking from it, if the cause
of God and man require the sacrifice. But the converts ought to be protected
from violence, and all cramming with cow-dung
prohibited on pain of retaliation with beef-tea.
“Nothing
can be more unfair than the manner in which the scoffers and alarmists have
represented the missionaries. We, who have thus vindicated them, are neither
blind to what is erroneous in their doctrine or ludicrous in their phraseology;
but the anti-missionaries cull out from their journals and letters all that is
ridiculous sectarian, and trifling; call them fools, madmen, tinkers,
Calvinists, and schismatics; and keep out of sight their love of man, and their
zeal for God, their self-devotement, their indefatigable industry, and their
unequalled learning. These low-born and low-bred mechanics have translated the
whole Bible into Bengali, and have by this time printed it. They are printing
the New Testament in the Sanskrit, the Orissa, Mahratta, Hindostan, and
Guzarat, and translating it into Persic, Telinga, Karnata, Chinese, the
language of the Sieks and of the Burmans, and in four of these languages they
are going on with the Bible. Extraordinary as this is, it will appear more so
when it is remembered that of these men one was originally a shoemaker, another
a printer at Hull, and a third the master of a charity-school at Bristol. Only
fourteen years have elapsed since Thomas and Carey set foot in India, and in
that time have these missionaries acquired this gift of tongues, in fourteen
years these low-born, low-bred mechanics have done more towards spreading the
knowledge of the Scriptures among the heathen than has been accomplished, or
even attempted, by all the princes and potentates of the world--and all the
universities and establishments into the bargain.
“Do
not think to supersede the Baptist missionaries till you can provide from your
own church such men as these, and, it may be added, such women also as their
wives.”
Soon
after the Charter victory had been gained “that fierce and fiery Calvinist,”
whose dictum Southey adopted, that the question in dispute is not whether the
natives shall enjoy toleration, but whether that toleration shall be extended
to the teachers of Christianity, Andrew Fuller, entered into rest on the 7th
May 1815, at the age of sixty-two. Sutcliff of Olney had been the first of the
three to be taken away25 a year before, at the same age. The scholarly Dr.
Ryland of Bristol was left alone, and the home management of the Mission passed
into the hands of another generation. Up to Fuller’s death that management had
been almost ideally perfect. In 1812 the Committee had been increased by the
addition of nineteen members, to represent the growing interest of the churches
in Serampore, and to meet the demand of the “respectable” class who had held
aloof at the first, who were eager that the headquarters of so renowned an
enterprise should be removed to London. But Fuller prevailed to keep the
Society a little longer at Kettering, although he failed to secure as his
assistant and successor the one man whose ability, experience, and prudence
would have been equal to his own, and have prevented the troubles that
followed--Christopher Anderson. As Fuller lay dying, he dictated a letter to
Ryland wherein he thus referred to the evangelical doctrine of grace which he
had been the one English theologian of his day to defend from the
hyper-calvinists, and to use as the foundation of the modern missionary
enterprise:--“I have preached and written much against the abuse of the
doctrine of grace, but that doctrine is all my salvation and all my desire. I
have no other hope than from salvation by mere sovereign, efficacious grace
through the atonement of my Lord and Saviour: with this hope I can go into
eternity with composure. We have some who have been giving it out of late that
if Sutcliff and some others had preached more of Christ and less of Jonathan
Edwards they would have been more useful. If those who talk thus had preached
Christ half as much as Jonathan Edwards did, and were half as useful as he was,
their usefulness would be double what it is. It is very singular that the
Mission to the East originated with one of these principles, and without
pretending to be a prophet, I may say if it ever falls into the hands of men
who talk in this strain (of hyper-calvinism) it will soon come to nothing.”
Andrew
Fuller was not only the first of Foreign Mission Secretaries; he was a model
for all. To him his work was spiritual life, and hence, though the most active
preacher and writer of his day, he was like Carey in this, that his working day
was twice as
long as that of most men, and he could spend half of his time in the frequent
journeys all over the kingdom to raise funds, in repeated campaigns in London
to secure toleration, and in abundant letters to the missionaries. His relation
to the Committee, up to the last, was equally exemplary. In the very earliest
missionary organisation in England it is due to him that the line was clearly
drawn between the deliberative and judicial function which is that of the
members, and the executive which is that of the secretary. Wisdom and
efficiency, clearness of perception and promptitude of action, were thus
combined. Fuller’s, too, was the special merit of realising that, while a
missionary committee or church are fellow-workers
only with the men and women abroad, the Serampore Brotherhood was a
self-supporting, and to that extent a self-governing body in a sense true of no
foreign mission ever since. The two triumvirates, moreover, consisted of
giants--Carey, Marshman, and Ward abroad; Fuller, Sutcliff, and Ryland at home.
To Carey personally the death of Fuller was more than to any other. For almost
the quarter of a century he had kept his vow that he would hold the rope. When
Pearce died all too soon there was none whom Carey loved like Fuller, while
Fuller’s devotion to Carey was all the greater that it was tempered by a wise
jealousy for his perfectness. So early as 1797, Fuller wrote thus to the troublesome
Fountain:--“It affords us good hope of your being a useful missionary that you
seem to love and revere the counsels of Brother Carey. A humble, peaceful,
circumspect, disinterested, faithful, peaceable, and zealous conduct like his
will render you a blessing to society. Brother Carey is greatly respected and
beloved by all denominations here. I will tell you what I have foreborne to
tell him lest it should hurt his modesty. Good old Mr. Newton says: ‘Mr. Carey
has favoured me with a letter, which, indeed, I accept as a favour, and I mean
to thank him for it. I trust my heart as cordially unites with him as though I
were a brother Baptist myself. I look to such a man with reverence. He is more
to me than bishop or archbishop; he is an apostle. May the Lord make all who
undertake missions like-minded with Brother Carey!’” As the home administrator,
no less than as the theological controversialist, Andrew Fuller stands only
second to William Carey, the founder of Modern English Missions.
Fuller’s
last letter to Carey forms the best introduction to the little which it is here
necessary to record of the action of the Baptist Missionary Society when under
the secretaryship of the Rev. John Dyer. Mr. John Marshman, C.S.I., has written
the detailed history of that controversy not only with filial duty, but with a
forgiving charity which excites our admiration for one who suffered more from
it than all his predecessors in the Brotherhood, of which he was the last
representative. The Society has long since ceased to approve of that period.
Its opinion has become that of Mr. Marshman, to which a careful perusal of all
the documents both in Serampore and England has led us--“Had it been possible
to create a dozen establishments like that of Serampore, each raising and
managing its own funds, and connected with the Society as the centre of unity
in a common cause, it ought to have been a subject of congratulation and not of
regret.” The whole policy of every missionary church and society is now and has
long been directed to creating self-supporting and self-propagating missions,
like Serampore, that the regions beyond may be evangelised--whether these be
colleges of catechumens and inquirers, like those of Duff and Wilson, Hislop
and Dr. Miller in India, and of Govan and Dr. Stewart in Lovedale, Kafraria; or
the indigenous churches of the West Indies, West Africa, the Pacific Ocean, and
Burma. To us the long and bitter dispute is now of value only in so far as it
brings out in Christ-like relief the personality of William Carey.
At
the close of 1814 Dr. Carey had asked Fuller to pay £50 a year to his father,
then in his eightieth year, and £20 to his (step) mother if she survived the
old man. Protesting that an engraving of his portrait had been published in
violation of the agreement which he had made with the artist, he agreed to the
wish of each of his relatives for a copy. To these requests Fuller had
replied:--“You should not insist on these things being charged to you, nor yet
your father’s £50, nor the books, nor anything necessary to make you
comfortable, unless it be to be paid out of what you would otherwise give to
the mission. To insist on their being paid out of your private property seems
to be dictated by resentment. It is thus we express our indignation when we
have an avaricious man to deal with.”
The
first act of the Committee, after Fuller’s funeral, led Dr. Ryland to express
to Carey his unbounded fears for the future. There were two difficulties. The
new men raised the first question, in what sense the Serampore property
belonged to the Society? They then proceeded to show how they would answer it,
by appointing the son of Samuel Pearce to Serampore as Mr. Ward’s assistant. On
both sides of their independence, as trustees of the property which they had created
and gifted to the Society on this condition, and as a self-supporting, self-elective brotherhood, it became necessary, for the
unbroken peace of the mission and the success of their work, that they should
vindicate their moral and legal position. The correspondence fell chiefly to
Dr. Marshman. Ward and he successively visited England, to which the
controversy was transferred, with occasional references to Dr. Carey in
Serampore. All Scotland, led by Christopher Anderson, Chalmers, and the
Haldanes--all England, except the Dyer faction and Robert Hall for a time,
among the Baptists, and nearly all America, held with the Serampore men; but
their ever-extending operations were checked by the uncertainty, and their
hearts were nearly broken. The junior missionaries in India formed a separate
union and congregation by themselves in Calcutta, paid by the Society, though
professing to carry out the organisation of the Serampore Brotherhood in other
respects. The Committee’s controversy lasted sixteen years, and was closed in
1830, after Ward’s death, by Carey and Marshman drawing up a new trust-deed, in
which, having vindicated their position, the old men made over properties which
had cost them £7800 to eleven trustees in England, stipulating only that they should
occupy them rent free till death, and that their colleagues--who were John
Marshman and John Mack, of Edinburgh University--might continue in them for
three years thereafter, paying rent to the Society. Such self-sacrifice would
be pronounced heroic, but it was only the outcome of a life of self-devotion,
marked by the spirit of Him who spake the Sermon on the Mount, and said to the
first missionaries He sent forth:--“Be wise as serpents, harmless as doves.”
The story is completed by the fact that John Marshman, on his father’s death,
again paid the price of as much of the property as the Hoogli had not swallowed
up when the Committee were about to put it in the market.
Such
was Dr. Carey’s position in the Christian world that the Dyer party considered
it important for their interest to separate him from his colleagues, and if not
to claim his influence for their side, at least to neutralise it. By trying to
hold up Dr. Marshman to odium, they roused the righteous indignation of Carey,
while outraging his sense of justice by their blows at the independence of the
Brotherhood. Dr. Marshman, when in England, met this course by frankly printing
the whole private correspondence of Carey on the subject of the property, or
thirty-two letters ranging from the year 1815 to 1828. One of the earliest of
these is to Mr. Dyer, who had so far forgotten himself as to ask Dr. Carey to
write home, alone, his opinion of his “elder brethren,” and particularly of Dr.
Marshman. The answer, covering eleven octavo pages of small type, is a model
for all controversialists, and especially for any whom duty compels to rebuke
the minister who has failed to learn the charity which envieth not. We
reproduce the principal passages, and the later letters to Christopher Anderson
and his son Jabez, revealing the nobleness of Carey and the inner life of the
Brotherhood:--
“SERAMPORE,
15th July 1819.
“MY
DEAR BROTHER--I am sorry you addressed your letter of January the 9th to me
alone, because it places me in a most awkward situation, as it respects my
elder brethren, with whom I have acted in concert for the last nineteen years,
with as great a share of satisfaction and pleasure as could reasonably be
expected from a connection with imperfect creatures, and whom I am thereby
called to condemn contrary to my convictions, or to justify at the expense of
their accusers. It also places me in a disagreeable situation as it respects my
younger brethren, whom I highly respect as Christians; but whose whole conduct,
as it respects the late unhappy differences, has been such as makes it
impossible for me to do otherwise than condemn it...
“You
ask, ‘Is there no ground for the charges of profusion, etc., preferred against
Brother Marshman?’ Brother Marshman has always been ardently engaged in promoting
the cause of God in India, and, being of a very active mind, has generally been
chosen by us to draw up our Reports, to write many of our public letters, to
draw up plans for promoting the objects of the mission, founding and managing
schools, raising subscriptions, and other things of a like nature; so that he
has taken a more active part than Brother Ward or myself in these public acts
of the mission. These things placed him in the foreground, and it has been no
uncommon thing for him to bear the blame of those acts which equally belong to
Brother Ward and myself, merely because he was the instrument employed in
performing them.
“The
charge of profusion brought against Dr. Marshman is more extensive than you
have stated in your letter. He is charged with having his house superbly
furnished, with keeping several vehicles for the use of his family,
and with labouring to aggrandise and bring them into public notice to a
culpable extent. The whole business of furniture, internal economy, etc., of
the Serampore
station, must exclusively belong to ourselves, and I confess I think the
question about it an unlovely one. Some person, we know not whom, told some
one, we know not whom, ‘that he had been often at Lord Hastings’s table, but
that Brother Marshman’s table far exceeded his.’ I have also often been at Lord
Hastings’s table (I mean his private table), and I do therefore most positively
deny the truth of the assertion; though I confess there is much domestic
plainness at the table of the Governor-General
of India (though nothing of meanness; on the contrary, everything is marked
with a dignified simplicity). I suspect the informant never was at Lord
Hastings’s table, or he could have not been guilty of such
misrepresentation. Lord Hastings’s table costs more in one day than Brother
Marshman’s in ten.
“The
following statement may explain the whole business of Brother Marshman’s
furniture, etc., which you have all been so puzzled to account for, and have
certainly accounted for in a way that is not the true one. We have, you know, a
very large school, perhaps the largest in India. In this school are children of
persons of the first rank in the country. The parents or guardians of these
children frequently call at the Mission-house, and common propriety requires
that they should be respectfully received, and invited to take a breakfast or
dinner, and sometimes to continue there a day or two. It is natural that
persons who visit the Mission-house upon business superintended by Brother
Marshman should be entertained at his house rather than elsewhere. Till within
the last four or five years we had no particular arrangement for the
accommodation of visitors who came to see us; but as those who visited us on
business were entertained at Brother Marshman’s, it appeared to be the most
eligible method to provide for the entertainment of other visitors there also;
but at that time Brother Marshman had not a decent table for persons of the
above description to sit down to. We, therefore, voted him a sum to enable him to
provide such articles as were necessary to entertain them with decency; and I
am not aware that he has been profuse, or that he has provided anything not
called for by the rules of propriety. I have no doubt but Brother Ward can
enumerate and describe all these articles of furniture. It is, however, evident
that you must be very imperfect judges of their necessity, unless you could at
the same time form a just estimate of the circumstances in which we stand. It
ought also to be considered that all these articles are public property,
and always convertible into their full value in cash. I hope, however, that
things are not yet come to that pass, that a man who, with his wife, has for
nineteen or twenty years laboured night and day for the mission, who by their
labour disinterestedly contribute between 2000 and 3000 rupees monthly to it,
and who have made sacrifices which, if others have not seen, Brother Ward and I
have,--sacrifices which ought to put to the blush all his accusers, who,
notwithstanding their cries against him, have not only supported themselves,
but also have set themselves up in a lucrative business at the Society’s
expense; and who, even to this day, though they have two prosperous schools,
and a profitable printing-office, continue to receive their monthly allowance,
amounting (including Miss Chaffin’s) to 700 rupees a month from the Society; I
feel indignant at their outcry on the subject of expense, and I say, merely as
a contrast to their conduct, So did not Brother Marshman. Surely things
are not come to that pass, that he or any other brother must give
an account to the Society of every plate he uses, and every loaf he cuts.
“Till
a very few years ago we had no vehicle except a single horse chaise for me to
go backwards and forwards to Calcutta. That was necessarily kept on the
opposite side of the river; and if the strength of the horse would have borne
it, could not have been used for the purposes of health. Sister Marshman was
seized with a disease of the liver, a disease which proves fatal in three cases
out of four. Sister Ward was ill of the same disorder, and both of them
underwent a long course of mercurial treatment, as is usual in that disease.
Exercise was considered by the physicians as of the first importance, and we
certainly thought no expense too great to save the valuable lives of our
sisters. A single horse chaise, and an open palanquin, called a Tonjon, were
procured. I never ride out for health; but usually spend an hour or two,
morning and evening, in the garden. Sister Ward was necessitated to visit
England for hers. Brother Ward had a saddle horse presented to him by a friend.
My wife has a small carriage drawn by a man. These vehicles were therefore
almost exclusively used by Brother Marshman’s family. When our brethren arrived
from England they did not fail to put this equipage into the account
against Brother Marshman. They now keep three single horse chaises,
besides palanquins; but we do not think they keep more than are necessary.
“Brother
Marshman retains for the school a French master, a music master, and a drawing
master. The expenses of these are amply repaid by the school, but Brother
Marshman’s children, and
all those belonging to the family, have the advantage of their instructions.
Brother Marshman’s children are, however, the most numerous, and envy
has not failed to charge him with having retained them all for the sake of his
own children. Surely a man’s caring for his family’s health and his children’s
education is, if a crime, a venial one, and ought not to be held up to blacken
his reputation. Brother Marshman is no more perfect than other men, partakers
like him of the grace of God. His natural bias and habits are his own, and
differ as much from those of other men as theirs differ from one another. I do
not deny that he has an inclination to display his children to advantage. This,
however, is a foible which most fond parents will be inclined to pardon. I wish
I had half his piety, energy of mind, and zeal for the cause of God. These
excellencies, in my opinion, so far overbalance all his defects that I am
constrained to consider him a Christian far above the common run. I must now
close this defence of Brother Marshman by repeating that all matters of
furniture, convenience, etc., are things belonging to the economy of the
station at Serampore, and that no one beside ourselves has the smallest right
to interfere therewith. The Calcutta brethren are now acting on the same
principle, and would certainly repel with indignation any attempt made by us to
regulate their affairs.
“I
have said that ‘I never ride out for the sake of health’; and it may therefore
be inquired, ‘Why are vehicles, etc., for the purpose of health more necessary
for the other members of the family than for you?’ I reply that my health is in
general good, and probably much benefited by a journey to and from Calcutta two
or three times a week. I have also a great fondness for natural science,
particularly botany and horticulture. These, therefore, furnish not only
exercise, but amusement for me. These amusements of mine are not, however,
enjoyed without expense, any more than those of my brethren, and were it not
convenient for Brother Marshman’s accusers to make a stepping-stone of me, I
have no doubt but my collection of plants, aviary, and museum, would be equally
impeached as articles of luxury and lawless expenses; though, except the
garden, the whole of these expenses are borne by myself.
“John
Marshman is admitted a member of the union, but he had for some time
previously thereto been a member of the church. I perceive plainly that all
your objections to him have been excited by the statements of the Calcutta
brethren, which you certainly ought to receive with much caution in all things
which regard Bother Marshman and his family. You observe that the younger
brethren especially look up to me with respect and affection. It may be
so; but I confess I have frequently thought that, had it been so, they would
have consulted me, or at least have mentioned to me the grounds of their
dissatisfaction before they proceeded to the extremity of dividing the mission.
When I engaged in the mission, it was a determination that, whatever I
suffered, a breach therein should never originate with me. To this resolution I
have hitherto obstinately adhered. I think everything should be borne, every
sacrifice made, and every method of accommodation or reconciliation tried,
before a schism is suffered to take place...
“I
disapprove as much of the conduct of our Calcutta brethren as it is possible
for me to disapprove of any human actions. The evil they have done is, I fear,
irreparable; and certainly the whole might have been prevented by a little
frank conversation with either of us; and a hundredth part of that self-denial
which I found it necessary to exercise for the first few years of the mission,
would have prevented this awful rupture. I trust you will excuse my warmth of
feeling upon this subject, when you consider that by this rupture that cause is
weakened and disgraced, in the establishment and promotion of which I have
spent the best part of my life. A church is attempted to be torn in pieces, for
which neither I nor my brethren ever thought we could do enough. We laboured to
raise it: we expended much money to accomplish that object; and in a good
measure saw the object of our desire accomplished. But now we are traduced, and
the church rent by the very men who came to be our helpers. As to Brother
Marshman, seriously, what do they want? Would they attempt to deny his
possessing the grace of God? He was known to and esteemed by Brother Ryland as
a Christian before he left England. I have lived with him ever since his
arrival in India, and can witness to his piety and holy conduct. Would they
exclude him from the mission? Judge yourself whether it is comely that a man,
who has laboriously and disinterestedly served the mission so many years--who
has by his diligence and hard labour raised the most respectable school in
India, as well as given a tone to all the others--who has unvaryingly
consecrated the whole of that income, as well as his other labours, to the
cause of God in India,--should be arraigned and condemned without a hearing by
a few young men just arrived, and one of whom had not been a month in the
country before he joined the senseless outcry? Or would they have his blood? Judge, my
dear brother, yourself, for I am ashamed to say more on this subject.
“I
need not say that circumstances must in a great measure determine where
missionaries should settle. The chief town of each of these countries would be
preferable, if other circumstances permit; but sometimes Government would not
allow this, and sometimes other things may close the door. Missionaries however
must knock loud and push hard at the door, and if there be the smallest
opening, must force themselves in; and, once entered, put their lives in their
hands and exert themselves to the utmost in dependence upon divine support, if
they ever hope to do much towards evangelising the heathen world. My situation
in the college, and Brother Marshman’s as superintending the first academy in
India, which, I likewise observe, has been established and brought to its
present flourishing state wholly by his care and application, have made our
present situation widely different from what it was when first engaged in the
mission. As a missionary I could go in a straw hat and dine with the judge of
the district, and often did so; but as a Professor in the College I cannot do
so. Brother Marshman is placed in the same predicament. These circumstances
impose upon us a necessity of making a different appearance to what we formerly
did as simple missionaries; but they furnish us with opportunities of
speaking to gentlemen of the first power and influence in government, upon matters
of the highest importance to the great work in which we are engaged; and, as a
proof that our opportunities of this nature have not been in vain, I need only
say that, in a conversation which I had some time ago with one of the
secretaries to Government, upon the present favourable bias of government and
the public in general to favour all plans for doing good, he told me that he
believed the whole was owing to the prudent and temperate manner in which we
had acted; and that if we had acted with precipitancy and indiscretion, he had
every reason to believe the general feeling would have been as hostile to
attempts to do good as it is now favourable to them.
“I
would not wish you to entertain the idea that we and our brethren in Calcutta
are resolved upon interminable hatred. On the contrary, I think that things are
gone as far as we may expect them to go; and I now expect that the fire of
contention will gradually go out. All the distressing and disagreeable
circumstances are, I trust, past; and I expect we shall be in a little time on
a more friendly footing. Much of what has taken place originated in England.
Mistakes and false conclusions were followed by all the circumstances I have
detailed. I think the whole virulence of opposition has now spent itself. Our
brethren have no control over us, nor we over them. And, if I am not mistaken,
each side will soon acknowledge that it has gone too far in some instances; and
ultimate good will arise from the evil I so much deplore.
“Having
now written to you my whole sentiments upon the business, and formerly to my
very dear Brother Ryland, allow me to declare my resolution not to write
anything further upon the subject, however much I may be pressed thereto. The
future prosperity of the mission does not depend upon the clearing up of every
little circumstance to the satisfaction of every captious inquirer, but upon
the restoration of mutual concord among us, which must be preceded by admitting
that we are all subject to mistake, and to be misled by passion, prejudice, and
false judgment. Let us therefore strive and pray that the things which make for
peace and those by which we may edify one another may abound among us more and
more. I am, my dear brother, very affectionately, yours in our Lord Jesus
Christ, W. CAREY.”
“14th
May 1828.
“MY
DEAR BROTHER ANDERSON--Yours by the Louisa, of October last, came to
hand a few days ago with the copies of Brother Marshman’s brief Memoir of the
Serampore Mission. I am glad it is written in so temperate and Christian a spirit,
and I doubt not but it will be ultimately productive of good effects. There
certainly is a great contrast between the spirit in which that piece is written
and that in which observations upon it, both in the Baptist and Particular
Baptist Magazines, are written. The unworthy attempts in those and other such
like pieces to separate Brother Marshman and me are truly contemptible. In
plain English, they amount to thus much--‘The Serampore Missionaries, Carey,
Marshman, and Ward, have acted a dishonest part, alias are rogues. But we do
not include Dr. Carey in the charge of dishonesty; he is an easy sort of a man,
who will agree to anything for the sake of peace, or in other words, he is a
fool. Mr. Ward, it is well known,’ say they, ‘was the tool of Dr. Marshman, but
he is gone from the present scene, and it is unlovely to say any evil of the
dead.’ Now I certainly hold those persons’ exemption of me from the blame they
attach to Brother Marshman in the greatest possible contempt. I may have
subscribed my name thoughtlessly to papers, and it would be wonderful if there
had been no instance of this in so long a course of years. The great esteem I
had for the Society for many years, undoubtedly on more occasions than one put
me off my guard, and I believe my brethren too; so that we have signed writings
which, if we could have foreseen the events of a few years, we should not have
done. These, however, were all against our own private interest, and I believe
I have never been called an easy fool for signing of them. It has only been
since we found it necessary to resist the claims of the Committee that I have
risen to this honour.
“It
has also been hinted that I intend to separate from Brother Marshman. I cannot
tell upon what such hints or reports are founded, but I assure you, in the most
explicit manner, that I intend to continue connected with him and Serampore as
long as I live; unless I should be separated from him by some unforeseen stroke
of Providence. There may be modifications of our union, arising from
circumstances; but it is my wish that it should remain in all things essential
to the mission as long as I live.
“I
rejoice to say that there is very little of that spirit of hostility which
prevails in England in India, and I trust what still remains will gradually
decrease till scarcely the remembrance of it will continue. Our stations, I
mean those connected with Serampore, are of great importance, and some of them
in a flourishing state. We will do all we can to maintain them, and I hope the
friends to the cause of God in Britain will not suffer them to sink for want of
that pecuniary help which is necessary. Indeed I hope we shall be assisted in
attempting other stations beside those already occupied; and many such stations
present themselves to my mind which nothing prevents being immediately occupied
but want of men and money. The college will also require assistance, and I hope
will not be without it; I anticipate the time when its salutary operation in
the cause of God in India will be felt and acknowledged by all.
“These
observations respecting my own conduct you are at liberty to use as you please.
I hope now to take my final leave of this unpleasant subject, and have just
room to say that I am very affectionately yours, W. CAREY.”
Throughout
the controversy thus forced upon him, we find Dr. Carey’s references, in his
unpublished letters to the brethren in Calcutta, all in the strain of the
following to his son Jabez:--
“15th
August 1820.--This week we received letters from Mr. Marshman, who had
safely arrived at St. Helena. I am sure it will give you pleasure to learn that
our long-continued dispute with the younger brethren in Calcutta is now
settled. We met together for that purpose about three weeks ago, and after each
side giving up some trifling ideas and expressions, came to a reconciliation,
which, I pray God, may be lasting. Nothing I ever met with in my life--and I
have met with many distressing things--ever preyed so much upon my spirits as
this difference has. I am sure that in all disputes very many wrong things must
take place on both sides for which both parties ought to be humbled before God
and one another.
“I
wish you could succeed in setting up a few more schools...Consider that and the
spread of the gospel as the great objects of your life, and try to promote them
by all the wise and prudent methods in your power. Indeed we must always
venture something for the sake of doing good. The cause of our Lord Jesus
Christ continues to prosper with us. I have several persons now coming in who
are inquirers; two or three of them, I hope, will be this evening received into
the Church. Excuse my saying more as my room is full of people.”
Eight
years after, on the 17th April 1828, he thus censured Jabez in the matter of
the Society’s action at home:--“From a letter of yours to Jonathan, in which
you express a very indecent pleasure at the opposition which Brother Marshman
has received, not by the Society but by some anonymous writer in a magazine, I
perceive you are informed of the separation which has taken place between them
and us. What in that anonymous piece you call a ‘set-down’ I call a
‘falsehood.’ You ought to know that I was a party in all public acts and
writings, and that I never intend to withdraw from all the responsibility
connected therewith. I utterly despise all the creeping, mean assertions of
that party when they say they do not include me in their censures, nor do I
work for their praise. According to their and according to your rejoicing...I
am either a knave or a fool--a knave if I joined with Brother Marshman; but if,
as those gentlemen say, and as you seem to agree with them, I was only led as
he pleased, and was a mere cat’s-paw, then of course I am a fool. In either way
your thoughts are not very high as it respects me. I do not wonder that
Jonathan should express himself unguardedly; his family connection with Mr.
Pearce sufficiently accounts for that. We have long been attacked in this
country--first by Mr. Adam,26 and afterwards by Dr. Bryce.27 Bryce is now
silenced by two or three pieces by John Marshman in his own newspaper, the John
Bull; and as to some of the tissues of falsehood published in England, I
shall certainly never reply to them, and I hope no one else will. That cause
must be bad which needs such means to support it. I believe God will bring
forth our righteousness as the noonday.”
On
the 12th July 1828 the father again writes to his son Jabez thus:--“Your
apologies about Brother Marshman are undoubtedly the best you can offer. I
should be sorry to harbour hostile sentiments against any man on the earth upon
grounds so slight. Indeed, were all you say matter of fact you ought to forgive
it as God for Christ’s sake forgives us. We are required to lay aside all envy
and strife and animosities, to forgive each other mutually and to love one
another with a pure heart fervently. ‘Thine own friend and thy father’s friend
forsake not.’”
CHAPTER
XIV
CAREY
AS AN EDUCATOR--THE FIRST CHRISTIAN COLLEGE IN THE EAST
1818-1830
A
college the fourth and perfecting corner-stone of the mission--Carey on the
importance of English in 1800--Anticipates Duff’s policy of undermining
Brahmanism--New educational era begun by the charter of 1813 and Lord
Hastings--Plan of the Serampore College in 1818--Anticipates the
Anglo-Orientalism of the Punjab University--The building described by John
Marshman--Bishop Middleton follows--The Scottish and other colleges--Action of
the Danish Government--The royal charter--Visit of Maharaja Serfojee--Death of
Ward, Charles Grant and Bentley--Bishop Heber and his catholic letter--Dr.
Carey’s reply--Progress of the college--Cause of its foundation--The college
directly and essentially a missionary undertaking--Action of the Brotherhood from
the first vindicated--Carey appeals to posterity--The college and the
systematic study of English--Carey author of the Grant in Aid system--Economy
in administering missions--The Serampore Mission has eighteen stations and
fifty missionaries of all kinds--Subsequent history of the Serampore College to
1883.
THE
first act of Carey and Marshman when their Committee took up a position of
hostility to their self-denying independence, was to complete and perpetuate
the mission by a college. As planned by Carey in 1793, the constitution had
founded the enterprise on these three corner-stones--preaching the Gospel in
the mother tongue of the people; translating the Bible into all the languages
of Southern and Eastern Asia; teaching the young, both heathen and Christian,
both boys and girls, in vernacular schools. But Carey had not been a year in
Serampore when, having built well on all three, he began to see that a fourth
must be laid some day in the shape of a college. He and his colleagues had
founded and supervised, by the year 1818, no fewer than 126 native schools,
containing some 10,000 boys, of whom more than 7000 were in and around
Serampore. His work among the pundit class, both in Serampore and in the
college of Fort William, and the facilities in the mission-house for training
natives, Eurasians, and the missionaries’ sons to be preachers, translators,
and teachers, seemed to meet the immediate want. But as every year the mission
in all its forms grew and
the experience of its leaders developed, the necessity of creating a college
staff in a building adapted to the purpose became more urgent. Only thus could
the otherwise educated natives be reached, and the Brahmanical class especially
be permanently influenced. Only thus could a theological institute be
satisfactorily conducted to feed the native Church.
On
10th October 1800 the missionaries had thus written home:--“There appears to be
a favourable change in the general temper of the people. Commerce has roused
new thoughts and awakened new energies; so that hundreds, if we could skilfully
teach them gratis, would crowd to learn the English language. We hope this may
be in our power some time, and may be a happy means of diffusing the gospel. At
present our hands are quite full.” A month after that Carey wrote to
Fuller:--“I have long thought whether it would not be desirable for us to set
up a school to teach the natives English. I doubt not but a thousand scholars
would come. I do not say this because I think it an object to teach them the
English tongue; but, query, is not the universal inclination of the Bengalees
to learn English a favourable circumstance which may be improved to valuable
ends? I only hesitate at the expense.” Thirty years after Duff reasoned in the
same way, after consulting Carey, and acted at once in Calcutta.
By
1816, when, on 25th June, Carey wrote a letter, for his colleagues and himself,
to the Board of the American Baptist General Convention, the great idea,
destined slowly to revolutionise not only India, but China, Japan, and the
farther East, had taken this form:--
“We
know not what your immediate expectations are relative to the Burman empire,
but we hope your views are not confined to the immediate conversion of the
natives by the preaching of the Word. Could a church of converted natives be
obtained at Rangoon, it might exist for a while, and be scattered, or perish
for want of additions. From all we have seen hitherto we are ready to think
that the dispensations of Providence point to labours that may operate, indeed,
more slowly on the population, but more effectually in the end: as knowledge,
once put into fermentation, will not only influence the part where it is first
deposited, but leaven the whole lump. The slow progress of conversion in such a
mode of teaching the natives may not be so encouraging, and may require, in
all, more faith and patience; but it appears to have been the process of
things, in the progress of the Reformation, during the reigns of Henry, Edward,
Elizabeth, James, and Charles. And should the work of evangelising India be
thus slow and silently progressive, which, however, considering the age of the
world, is not perhaps very likely, still the grand result will amply recompense
us, and you, for all our toils. We are sure to take the fortress, if we can but
persuade ourselves to sit down long enough before it. ‘We shall reap if we
faint not.’
“And
then, very dear brethren, when it shall be said of the seat of our labours, the
infamous swinging-post is no longer erected; the widow burns no more on the
funeral pile; the obscene dances and songs are seen and heard no more; the gods
are thrown to the moles and to the bats, and Jesus is known as the God of the
whole land; the poor Hindoo goes no more to the Ganges to be washed from his
filthiness, but to the fountain opened for sin and uncleanness; the temples are
forsaken; the crowds say, ‘Let us go up to the house of the Lord, and He shall
teach us of His ways, and we will walk in His statutes;’ the anxious Hindoos no
more consume their property, their strength, and their lives, in vain
pilgrimages, but they come at once to Him who can save to ‘the uttermost’; the
sick and the dying are no more dragged to the Ganges, but look to the Lamb of
God, and commit their souls into His faithful hands; the children, no more
sacrificed to idols, are become ‘the seed of the Lord, that He may be
glorified’; the public morals are improved; the language of Canaan is learnt;
benevolent societies are formed; civilisation and salvation walk arm in arm
together; the desert blossoms; the earth yields her increase; angels and
glorified spirits hover with joy over India, and carry ten thousand messages of
love from the Lamb in the midst of the throne; and redeemed souls from the
different villages, towns, and cities of this immense country, constantly add
to the number, and swell the chorus of the redeemed, ‘Unto Him that loved us,
and washed us from our sins in His own blood, unto HIM be the glory;’--when
this grand result of the labours of God’s servants in India shall be realised,
shall we then think that we have laboured in vain, and spent our strength for
nought? Surely not. Well, the decree is gone forth! ‘My word shall prosper in
the thing whereunto I sent it.’”
India
was being prepared for the new missionary policy. On what we may call its
literary side Carey had been long busy. On its more strictly educational side,
the charter of 1813 had conceded what had been demanded in vain by a too feeble
public opinion in the charter of 1793. A clause was inserted at the last moment declaring
that a sum of not less than a lakh of rupees (or ten thousand pounds) a year
was to be set apart from the surplus revenues, and applied to the revival and
improvement of literature and the encouragement of the learned natives of
India, and for the introduction and promotion of a knowledge of the sciences
among the inhabitants of the British territories there. The clause was prompted
by an Anglo-Indian of oriental tastes, who hoped that the Brahman
and his Veda might thus be made too strong for the Christian missionary and the
Bible as at last tolerated under the 13th resolution. For this reason, and
because the money was to be paid only out of any surplus, the directors and
their friends offered no opposition. For the quarter of a century the grant was
given, and was applied in the spirit of its proposer. But the scandals of its
application became such that it was made legally by Bentinck and Macaulay, and
practically by Duff, the fountain of a river of knowledge and life which is
flooding the East.
The
first result of the liberalism of the charter of 1813 and the generous views of
Lord Hastings was the establishment in Calcutta by the Hindoos themselves,
under the influence of English secularists, of the Hindoo, now the Presidency
College. Carey and Marshman were not in Calcutta, otherwise they must have
realised even then what they left to Duff to act on fourteen years after, the
importance of English not only as an educating but as a Christianising
instrument. But though not so well adapted to the immediate need of the
reformation which they had begun, and though not applied to the very heart of
Bengal in Calcutta, the prospectus of their “College for the Instruction of
Asiatic, Christian, and Other Youth in Eastern Literature and European Science,”
which they published on the 15th July 1818, sketched a more perfect and
complete system than any since attempted, if we except John Wilson’s almost
unsupported effort in Bombay. It embraced the classical or learned languages of
the Hindoos and Mohammedans, Sanskrit and Arabic; the English language and
literature, to enable the senior students “to dive into the deepest recesses of
European science, and enrich their own language with its choicest treasures”;
the preparation of manuals of science, philosophy, and history in the learned
and vernacular languages of the East; a normal department to train native
teachers and professors; as the crown of all, a theological institute to equip
the Eurasian and native Christian students, by a quite unsectarian course of
study, in apologetics, exegetics, and the Bible languages, to be missionaries
to the Brahmanical classes. While the Government and the Scottish missionaries
have in the university and grant in aid systems since followed too exclusively
the English line, happily supplanting the extreme Orientalists, it is the glory
of the Serampore Brotherhood that they sought to apply both the Oriental and
the European, the one as the form, the other as the substance, so as to
evangelise and civilise the people through their mother tongue. They were the
Vernacularists in the famous controversy between the Orientalists and the
Anglicists raised by Duff. In 1867 the present writer in vain attempted to
induce the University of Calcutta to follow them in this. It was left to Sir
Charles Aitchison, when he wielded the power and the influence of the
Lieutenant-Governor, to do in 1882 what the Serampore College would have
accomplished had its founders been young instead of old men, by establishing
the Punjab University.
Lord
Hastings and even Sir John Malcolm took a personal interest in the Serampore
College. The latter, who had visited the missionaries since his timid evidence
before the House of Lords in 1813, wrote to them:--“I wish I could be certain
that your successors in the serious task you propose would have as much
experience as you and your fellow-labourers at Serampore--that they would walk,
not run, in the same path--I would not then have to state one reserve.” Lord
Hastings in Council passed an order encouraging the establishment of a European
Medical Professorship in Serampore College, and engaged to assist in meeting
the permanent expense of the chair when established. His Excellency
“interrupted pressing avocations” to criticise both the architectural plan of
the building and the phraseology of the draft of the first report, and his
suggestions were followed. Adopting one of the Grecian orders as most suitable
to a tropical climate, the Danish Governor’s colleague, Major Wickedie, planned
the noble Ionic building which was then, and is still, the finest edifice of
the kind in British India.
“The
centre building, intended for the public rooms, was a hundred and thirty feet
in length, and a hundred and twenty in depth. The hall on the ground floor,
supported on arches, and terminated at the south by a bow, was ninety-five feet
in length, sixty-six in breadth, and twenty in height. It was originally
intended for the library, but is now occupied by the classes. The hall above,
of the same dimensions and twenty-six feet in height, was supported by two rows
of Ionic columns; it was intended for the annual examinations. Of the twelve
side-rooms above and below,
eight were of spacious dimensions, twenty-seven
feet by thirty-five. The portico which fronted the river was composed of six
columns, more than four feet in diameter at the base. The staircase-room was
ninety feet in length, twenty-seven in width, and forty-seven in height, with
two staircases of cast-iron, of large size and elegant form, prepared at
Birmingham. The spacious grounds were surrounded with iron railing, and the
front entrance was adorned with a noble gate, likewise cast at Birmingham...
“The
scale on which it was proposed to establish the college, and to which the size
of the building was necessarily accommodated, corresponded with the breadth of
all the other enterprises of the Serampore missionaries,--the mission, the
translations, and the schools. While Mr. Ward was engaged in making collections
for the support of the institution in England, he wrote to his brethren, ‘the
buildings you must raise in India;’ and they determined to respond to the call,
and, if possible, to augment their donation from £2500 to £8000, and to make a
vigorous effort to erect the buildings from their own funds. Neither the
ungenerous suspicion, nor the charge of unfaithfulness, with which their
character was assailed in England, was allowed to slacken the prosecution of
this plan. It was while their reputation was under an eclipse in England, and
the benevolent hesitated to subscribe to the society till they were assured
that their donations would not be mixed up with the funds of the men at
Serampore, that those men were engaged in erecting a noble edifice for the
promotion of religion and knowledge, at their
own
cost, the expense of which eventually grew under their hands to the sum of
£15,000. To the charge of endeavouring to alienate from the society premises of
the value of £3000, their own gift, they replied by erecting a building at five
times the cost, and vesting it in eleven trustees,--seven besides themselves.
It was thus they vindicated the purity of their motives in their differences
with the society, and endeavoured to silence the voice of calumny. They were
the first who maintained that a college was an indispensable appendage to an
Indian mission.”
The
next to follow Carey in this was Bishop Middleton, who raised funds to erect a
chaste Gothic pile beside the Botanic Garden, since to him the time appeared
“to have arrived when it is desirable that some missionary endeavours, at
least, should have some connection with the Church establishment.” That college
no longer exists, in spite of the saintly scholarship of such Principals as
Mill and Kay; the building is now utilised as a Government engineering college.
But in Calcutta the Duff College, with the General Assembly’s Institution (now
united as the Scottish Churches College), the Cathedral Mission Divinity
School, and the Bhowanipore Institution; in Bombay the Wilson College, in
Madras the Christian College, in Nagpoor the Hislop College, in Agra St. John’s
College, in Lahore the Church Mission Divinity School, in Lucknow the Reid
College, and others, bear witness to the fruitfulness of the Alma Mater of
Serampore.
The
Serampore College began with thirty-seven students, of whom nineteen were
native Christians and the rest Hindoos. When the building was occupied in 1821
Carey wrote to his son:--“I pray that the blessing of God may attend it, and
that it may be the means of preparing many for an important situation in the
Church of God...The King of Denmark has written letters signed with his own
hand to Brothers Ward, Marshman, and myself, and has sent each of us a gold
medal as a token of his approbation. He has also made over the house in which
Major Wickedie resides, between Sarkies’s house and ours, to us three in
perpetuity for the college. Thus Divine generosity appears for us and supplies
our expectations.” The missionaries had declined the Order of the Dannebrog.
When, in 1826, Dr. Marshman visited Europe, one of his first duties was to
acknowledge this gift to Count Moltke, Danish Minister in London and ancestor
of the great strategist, and to ask for a royal charter. The Minister and Count
Schulin, whose wife had been a warm friend of Mrs. Carey, happened to be on
board the steamer in which Dr. Marshman, accompanied by Christopher Anderson,
sailed to Copenhagen. Raske, the Orientalist, who had visited Serampore, was a
Professor in the University there. The vellum charter was prepared among them,
empowering the College Council, consisting of the Governor of Serampore and the
Brotherhood, to confer degrees like those of the Universities of Copenhagen and
Kiel, but not carrying the rank in the State implied in Danish degrees unless
with the sanction of the Crown. The King, in the audience which he gave,
informed Dr. Marshman that, having in 1801 promised the mission protection, he
had hitherto refused to transfer Serampore to the East India Company, since
that would prevent him from keeping his word. When, in 1845, the Company
purchased both Tranquebar and Serampore, it could be no longer dangerous to the
Christian Mission, but the Treaty expressly provided that the College should
retain all its powers, and its Christian character, under the Danish charter, which
it does. It was thus the earliest degree-conferring college in Asia, but it has
never exercised the power. Christian VIII., then the heir to the throne, showed
particular interest in the Bible translation work of Carey. When, in 1884, the
Evangelical Alliance held its session in Copenhagen, and was received by
Christian IX.,28 it did well, by special resolution, to express the gratitude of Protestant
Christendom to Denmark for such courageous and continued services to the first
Christian mission from England to India.
How
Dr. Carey valued the gift of the King is seen in this writing, on the lining of
the case of the gold medal, dated 6th November 1823:--
“It
is my desire that this medal, and the letter of the King of Denmark, which
accompanied it, be given at my death to my dear son Jonathan, that he may keep
it for my sake.”
The
letter of King Frederic VI. is as follows:--
“MONSIEUR
LE DOCTEUR ET PROFESSEUR WILLIAM CAREY--
C’est
avec beaucoup d’intérêt que nous avons appris le mérite qu’en qualité de
membre dirigeant de la Société de la Mission, vous avez
acquis, ainsi que vos co-directeurs, et les effèts salutaires que vos
louables travaux ont produits et partout où votre influence a pu
atteindre. Particulierement informés qu’en votre dite qualité vous
avez contribué a effectuer bien des choses utiles, dont l’établissement
à Frédéricsnagore a à se louer, et voulant vous certifier que nous vous en avons gré,
nous avons chargé le chef du dit établissement,--notre Lieutenant-Colonel Kraefting, de vous remettre
cette lettre; et en même temps une medaille d’or, comme une marque de notre bienveillance et
de notre protection, que vous assurera toujours une conduite meritoire.
“Sur
ce nous prions Dieu de vous avoir dans Sa sainte et digne garde.--Votre affectionné
FREDERIC.
“Copenhague,
ce 7 Juin 1820.
“Au Docteur
et Professeur WILLIAM CAREY,
Membre
dirigeant de la Société de la Mission à Frédéricsnagore.”
The
new College formed an additional attraction to visitors to the mission. One of
these, in 1821, was the Maharaja Serfojee, the prince of Tanjore, whom Schwartz
had tended, but who was on pilgrimage to Benares. Hand in hand with Dr. Carey
he walked through the missionary workshop, noticed specially the pundits who
were busy with translation to which Lord Hastings had directed his attention,
and dilated with affectionate enthusiasm on the deeds and the character of the
apostle of South India. In 1823 cholera suddenly cut off Mr. Ward in the midst
of his labours. The year after that Charles Grant died, leaving a legacy to the
mission. Almost his last act had been to write to Carey urging him to publish a
reply to the attack of the Abbé Dubois on all Christian missions.
Another friend was removed in Bentley, the scholar who put Hindoo astronomy in
its right place. Bishop Heber began his too brief episcopate in 1824, when the
college, strengthened by the abilities of the Edinburgh professor, John Mack,
was accomplishing all that its founders had projected. The Bishop of all good
Christian men never penned a finer production--not even his hymns--than this
letter, called forth by a copy of the Report on the College sent to him by Dr.
Marshman:--
“I
have seldom felt more painfully than while reading your appeal on the subject
of Serampore College, the unhappy divisions of those who are the servants of
the same Great Master! Would to God, my honoured brethren, the time were
arrived when not only in heart and hope, but visibly, we shall be one fold, as
well as under one shepherd! In the meantime I have arrived, after some serious
considerations, at the conclusion that I shall serve our great cause most
effectually by doing all which I can for the rising institutions of those with
whom my sentiments agree in all things, rather than by forwarding the labours
of those from whom, in some important points, I am conscientiously constrained
to differ. After all, why do we differ? Surely the leading points which keep us
asunder are capable of explanation or of softening, and I am expressing myself
in much sincerity of heart--(though, perhaps, according to the customs of the
world, I am taking too great a freedom with men my superiors both in age and in
talent), that I should think myself happy to be permitted to explain, to the
best of my power, those objections which keep you and your brethren divided
from that form of church government which I believe to have been instituted by
the apostles, and that admission of infants to the Gospel Covenants which seem
to me to be founded on the expressions and practice of Christ himself. If I
were writing thus to worldly men I know I should expose myself to the
imputation of excessive vanity or impertinent intrusion. But of you and Dr. Carey
I am far from judging as of worldly men, and I therefore say that, if we are
spared to have any future intercourse, it is my desire, if you permit, to
discuss with both of you, in the spirit of meekness and conciliation, the
points which now divide us, convinced that, if a reunion of our Churches could
be effected, the harvest of the heathen would ere long be reaped, and the work
of the Lord would advance among them with a celerity of which we have now no
experience.
“I
trust, at all events, you will take this hasty note as it is intended, and
believe me, with much sincerity, your friend and servant in Christ, REGINALD
CALCUTTA.
“3rd
June 1824.”
This
is how Carey reciprocated these sentiments, when writing to Dr. Ryland:--
“SERAMPORE, 6th July
1824.
“I
rejoice to say that there is the utmost harmony between all the ministers of
all denominations. Bishop Heber is a man of liberal principles and catholic
spirit. Soon after his arrival in the country he wrote me a very friendly
letter, expressing his wish to maintain all the friendship with us which our
respective circumstances would allow. I was then confined, but Brother Marshman
called on him. As soon as I could walk without crutches I did the same, and had
much free conversation with him. Some time after this he wrote us a very
friendly letter, saying that it would highly gratify him to meet Brother
Marshman and myself, and discuss in a friendly manner all the points of
difference between himself and us, adding that there was every reason to expect
much good from a calm and temperate discussion of these things, and that, if we
could at any rate come so near to each other as to act together, he thought it
would have a greater effect upon the spread of the gospel among the heathen
than we could calculate upon. He was then just setting out on a visitation
which will in all probability take a year. We, however, wrote him a reply
accepting his proposal, and Brother Marshman expressed a wish that the
discussion might be carried on by letter, to which in his reply he partly
consented. I have such a disinclination to writing, and so little leisure for
it, that I wished the discussion to be viva voce; it will, however, make
little difference, and all I should have to say would be introduced into the
letter.”
On
the death of Mr. Ward and departure of Dr. Marshman for Great Britain on
furlough, after twenty-six years’ active labours, his son, Mr. John Marshman,
was formally taken into the Brotherhood. He united with Dr. Carey in writing to
the Committee two letters, dated 21st January 1826 and 15th November 1827,
which show the progress of the college and the mission from the first as one
independent agency, and closed with Carey’s appeal to the judgment of
posterity.
“About
seven years ago we felt convinced of the necessity of erecting a College for
native Christian youth, in order to consolidate our plans for the spread of
gospel truth in India; and, as we despaired of being able to raise from public
subscriptions a sum equal to the expense of the buildings, we determined to
erect them from our own private funds. Up to the present date they have cost us
nearly £14,000, and the completion of them will require a further sum of about
£5000, which, if we are not enabled to advance from our own purse, the
undertaking must remain incomplete. With this burden upon our private funds we
find it impossible any longer to meet, to the same extent as formerly, the
demands of our out-stations. The time is now arrived when they must cease to be
wholly dependent on the private donations of three individuals, and must be
placed on the strength of public contributions. As two out of three of the
members of our body are now beyond the age of fifty-seven, it becomes our duty
to place them on a more permanent footing, as it regards their management,
their support, and their increase. We have therefore associated with ourselves,
in the superintendence of them, the Rev. Messrs. Mack and Swan, the two present
professors of the college, with the view of eventually leaving them entirely in
the hands of the body of professors, of whom the constitution of the college
provides that there shall be an unbroken succession.
“To
secure an increase of missionaries in European habits we have formed a class of
theological students in the college, under the Divinity Professor. It contains
at present six promising youths, of whose piety we have in some cases undoubted
evidence, in others considerable ground for hope. The class will shortly be
increased to twelve, but none will be continued in it who do not manifest
undeniable piety and devotedness to the cause of missions. As we propose to
allow each student to remain on an average four years, we may calculate upon
the acquisition of two, and perhaps three, additional labourers annually, who
will be eminently fitted for active service in the cause of missions by their
natural familiarity with the language and their acquisitions at college. This
arrangement will, we trust, secure the speedy accomplishment of the plan we
have long cherished, that of placing one missionary in each province in Bengal,
and eventually, if means be afforded, in Hindostan.
“As
the completion of the buildings requires no public contribution, the sole
expense left on the generosity of its friends is that of its existing
establishment. Our subscriptions in India, with what we receive as the interest
of money raised in Britain and America, average £1000 annually; about £500 more
from England would cover every charge, and secure the efficiency of the
institution. Nor shall we require this aid beyond a limited period.
“Of
the three objects connected with the College, the education of non-resident
heathen students, the education of resident Christian students, and the
preparation of missionaries from those born in the country, the first is not
strictly a missionary object, the two latter are intimately connected with the
progress of the good cause. The preparation of missionaries in the country was
not so much recommended as enforced by the great expense which attends
the despatch of missionaries from Europe. That the number of labourers in this
country must be greatly augmented, before the work of evangelising the heathen
can be said to have effectively commenced, can admit of no doubt.
“The
education of the increasing body of Native Christians likewise,
necessarily became a matter of anxiety. Nothing could be more distressing than
the prospect of their being more backward in mental pursuits than their heathen
neighbours. The planting of the gospel in India is not likely to be
accomplished by the exertions of a few missionaries in solitary and barren
spots in the country, without
the aid of some well-digested plan which may
consolidate the missionary enterprise, and provide for the mental and religious
cultivation of the converts. If the body of native Christians required an
educational system, native ministers, who must gradually take the spiritual
conduct of that body, demanded pre-eminent attention. They require a knowledge
of the ingenious system they will have to combat, of the scheme of Christian
theology they are to teach, and a familiarity with the lights of modern
science. We cannot discharge the duty we owe as Christians to India, without
some plan for combining in the converts of the new religion, and more
especially in its ministers, the highest moral refinement of the Christian
character, and the highest attainable progress in the pursuits of the mind.
“During
the last ten years of entire independence the missionary cause has received
from the product of our labour, in the erection of the college buildings, in
the support of stations and schools, and in the printing of tracts, much more
than £23,000. The unceasing calumny with which we have been assailed, for what
has been called ‘our declaration of independence’ (which, by the bye, Mr.
Fuller approved of our issuing almost with his dying breath), it is beneath us
to notice, but it has fully convinced us of the propriety of the step. This
calumny is so unreasonable that we confidently appeal from the decision of the
present age to the judgment of posterity.”
Under
Carey, as Professor of Divinity and Lecturer on Botany and Zoology, Mack and
John Marshman, with pundits and moulavies, the college grew in public favour,
even during Dr. Marshman’s absence, while Mrs. Marshman continued to conduct
the girls’ school and superintend native female education with a vigorous
enthusiasm which advancing years did not abate and misrepresentation in England
only fed. The difficulties in which Carey found himself had the happy result of
forcing him into the position of being the first to establish practically the
principle of the Grant in Aid system. Had his Nonconformist successors followed
him in this, with the same breadth of view and clear distinction between the
duty of aiding the secular education, while giving absolute liberty to the
spiritual, the splendid legacy which he left to India would have been both
perpetuated and extended. As it is, it was left to his young colleague, John
Marshman, and to Dr. Duff, to induce Parliament, by the charter of 1853, and
the first Lord Halifax in the Educational Despatch of 1854, to sanction the
system of national education for the multifarious classes and races of our
Indian subjects, under which secular instruction is aided by the state on
impartial terms according to its efficiency, and Christianity delights to take
its place, unfettered and certain of victory, with the Brahmanical and
aboriginal cults of every kind.
In
1826 Carey, finding that his favourite Benevolent Institution in Calcutta was
getting into debt, and required repair, applied to Government for aid. He had
previously joined the Marchioness of Hastings in founding the Calcutta School
Book and School Society, and had thus been relieved of some of the schools.
Government at once paid the debt, repaired the building, and continued to give
an annual grant of £240 for many years. John Marshman did not think it
necessary, “to defend Dr. Carey from the charge of treason to the principles of
dissent in having thus solicited and accepted aid from the state for an
educational establishment; the repudiation of that aid is a modern addition to
those principles.” He tells us that “when conversation happened to turn upon
this subject at Serampore, his father was wont to excuse any warmth which his
colleague might exhibit by the humorous remark that renegades always fought
hardest. There was one question on which the three were equally strenuous--that
it was as much the duty of Government to support education as to abstain from
patronising missions.”
A
letter written in 1818 to his son William, then one of the missionaries, shows
with what jealous economy the founder of the great modern enterprise managed
the early undertakings.
“MY
DEAR WILLIAM--Yours of the 3rd instant I have received, and must say that it
has filled me with distress. I do not know what the allowance of 200 rupees
includes, nor how much is allotted for particular things; but it appears that
Rs. 142:2 is expended upon your private expenses, viz., 78:2 on table expenses,
and 64 on servants. Now neither Lawson nor Eustace have more than 140 rupees
for their allowance, separate from house rent, for which 80 rupees each is
allowed, and I believe all the brethren are on that, or a lower allowance,
Brother Yates excepted, who chooses for himself. I cannot therefore make an
application for more with any face. Indeed we have no power to add or diminish
salaries, though the Society would agree to our doing so if we showed good reasons
for it. I believe the allowances of the missionaries from the London Society
are about the same, or rather less--viz. £200 sterling, or 132 rupees a month,
besides extra expenses; so that your income, taking it at 140 rupees a month,
is quite equal to that of any other missionary. I may also mention that neither
Eustace nor Lawson can do without a buggy, which is not a small expense.
“I suppose the two articles
you have mentioned of table expenses and servants include a number of other
things; otherwise I cannot imagine how you can go to that expense. When I was
at Mudnabati my income was 200 per month, and during the time I stayed there I
had saved near 2000 rupees. My table expenses scarcely ever amounted to 50
rupees, and though I kept a moonshi at 20 rupees and four gardeners, yet my
servants’ wages did not exceed 60 rupees monthly. I kept a horse and a
farmyard, and yet my expenses bore no proportion to yours. I merely mention
this without any reflection on you, or even a wish to do it; but I sincerely
think your expenses upon these two articles are very greater.--I am your affectionate father, W. CAREY.”
In
1825 Carey completed his great Dictionary of Bengali and English in
three quarto volumes, abridged two years afterwards. No language, not even in
Europe, could show a work of such industry, erudition, and philological
completeness at that time. Professor H. H. Wilson declared that it must ever be
regarded as a standard authority, especially because of its etymological
references to the Sanskrit, which supplies more than three-fourths of the
words; its full and correct vocabulary of local terms, with which the author’s
“long domestication amongst the natives” made him familiar, and his unique
knowledge of all natural history terms. The first copy which issued from the
press he sent to Dr. Ryland, who had passed away at seventy-two, a month before
the following letter was written:--
“June
7th, 1825.--On the 17th of August next I shall be sixty-four years of
age; and though I feel the enervating influence of the climate, and have lost
something of my bodily activity, I labour as closely, and perhaps more so than
I have ever done before. My Bengali Dictionary is finished at press. I intend
to send you a copy of it by first opportunity, which I request you to accept as
a token of my unshaken friendship to you. I am now obliged, in my own defence,
to abridge it, and to do it as quickly as possible, to prevent another person
from forestalling me and running away with the profits.
“On
Lord’s day I preached a funeral sermon at Calcutta for one of our deacons, who
died very happily; administered the Lords’ Supper, and preached again in the
evening. It was a dreadfully hot day, and I was much exhausted. Yesterday the
rain set in, and the air is somewhat cooled. It is still uncertain whether
Brothers Judson and Price are living. There was a report in the newspaper that
they were on their way to meet Sir Archibald Campbell with proposals of peace
from the Burman king; but no foundation for the report can be traced out.
Living or dead they are secure.”
On
hearing of the death of Dr. Ryland, he wrote:--“There are now in England very
few ministers with whom I was acquainted. Fuller, Sutcliff, Pearce, Fawcett,
and Ryland, besides many others whom I knew, are gone to glory. My family
connections also, those excepted who were children when I left England, or have
since that time been born, are all gone, two sisters only excepted. Wherever I
look in England I see a vast blank; and were I ever to revisit that dear country
I should have an entirely new set of friendships to form. I, however, never
intended to return to England when I left it, and unless something very
unexpected were to take place I certainly shall not do it. I am fully convinced
I should meet with many who would show me the utmost kindness in their power,
but my heart is wedded to India, and though I am of little use I feel a
pleasure in doing the little I can, and a very high interest in the spiritual
good of this vast country, by whose instrumentality soever it is promoted.”
By
1829 the divinity faculty of the College had become so valuable a nursery of
Eurasian and Native missionaries, and the importance of attracting more of the
new generation of educated Hindoos within its influence had become so apparent
that Oriental gave place to English literature in the curriculum. Mr. Rowe, as
English tutor, took his place in the staff beside Dr. Carey, Dr. Marshman, Mr.
Mack, and Mr. John Marshman. Hundreds of native youths flocked to the classes.
Such was the faith, such the zeal of Carey, that he continued to add new
missions to the ten of which the College was the life-giving centre; so that
when he was taken away he left eighteen, under eleven European, thirteen
Eurasian, seventeen Bengali, two Hindostani, one Telugoo, and six Arakanese
missionaries. When Mr. David Scott, formerly a student of his own in Fort
William College, and in 1828 Commissioner of Assam (then recently annexed to
the empire), asked for a missionary, Carey’s importunity prevailed with his
colleagues only when he bound himself to pay half the cost by stinting his
personal expenditure. Similarly it was the generous action of Mr. Garrett, when
judge of Barisal, that led him to send the best of his Serampore students to
found that afterwards famous mission.
Having translated the
Gospels into the language of the Khasias in the Assam hills, he determined in
1832 to open a new mission at the village of Cherra, which the Serampore
Brotherhood were the first to use as a sanitarium in the hot season. For this
he gave up £60 of his Government pension and Mr. Garrett gave a
similar sum. He sent another of his students, Mr. Lisk, to found the mission,
which prospered until it was transferred to the Welsh Calvinists, who have made
it the centre of extensive and successful operations. Thus the influence of his
middle age and old age in the Colleges of Fort William and of Serampore
combined to make the missionary patriarch the father of two bands--that of the
Society and that of the Brotherhood.
Dr.
Carey’s last report, at the close of 1832, was a defence of what has since been
called, and outside of India and of Scotland has too often been misunderstood
as, educational missions or Christian Colleges. To a purely divinity college
for Asiatic Christians he preferred a divinity faculty as part of an Arts and
Science College,29 in which the converts study side by side with their
inquiring countrymen, the inquirers are influenced by them as well as by the
Christian teaching and secular teaching in a Christian spirit, and the Bible
consecrates the whole. The United Free Church of Scotland has, alike in India,
China and Africa, proved the wisdom, the breadth, and the spiritual advantage
of Carey’s policy. When the Society opposed him, scholars like Mack from Edinburgh
and Leechman from Glasgow rejoiced to work out his Paul-like conception. When
not only he, but Dr. Marshman, had passed away Mack bravely held aloft the
banner they bequeathed, till his death in 1846. Then John Marshman, who in 1835
had begun the Friend of India as a weekly paper to aid the College,
transferred the mission to the Society under the learned W. H. Denham. When in
1854 a new generation of the English Baptists accepted the College also as
their own, it received a Principal worthy to succeed the giants of those days,
the Rev. John Trafford, M.A., a student of Foster’s and of Glasgow University.
For twenty-six years he carried out the principles of Carey. On his retirement
the College as such was suspended in the year 1883, and in the same building a
purely native Christian Training Institution took its place. There, however,
the many visitors from Christendom still found the library and museum; the
Bibles, grammars, and dictionaries; the natural history collections, and the
Oriental MSS.; the Danish Charter, the historic portraits, and the British
Treaty; as well as the native Christian classes--all of which re-echo William
Carey’s appeal to posterity.
CHAPTER
XV
CAREY’S
CHRISTIAN UNIVERSITY FOR THE PEOPLE OF INDIA
The
Danish charter--The British treaty--Growth of native Christian community--Lord
Minto’s concession of self-governing privileges--Madras Decennial Conference
and Serampore degrees--Proposed reorganisation of College so as to teach and
examine for B.D. and other degrees--Appeal for endowments of Carey’s Christian
University
ATTENTION
has already been directed to the far-seeing plans which Carey laid down for
Serampore College. It is a pleasure to record that while this volume is in the
press (1909), a scheme is being promoted by the College Council for the
reorganisation of the College on the lines of Carey’s ideal, with a view to
making it a centre of higher ministerial training for all branches of the
Indian Church.
It
will be remembered that in 1827 the College received from Friedrich VI. a Royal
Charter, empowering it to confer degrees, and giving to it all the rights which
are possessed by Western Universities. Under Treaty dated the 6th October,
1845, the King of Denmark agreed to transfer to the Governor-General of India,
Lord Hardinge, G.C.B., for the sum of £125,000, the towns of Tranquebar,
Frederiksnagore or Serampore,30 and the old factory site at Balasore. Article 6
of this treaty provides that “the rights and immunities granted to the
Serampore College by Royal Charter, of date 23rd of February, 1827, shall not
be interfered with, but continue in force in the same manner as if they had
been obtained by a Charter from the British Government, subject to the General
Law of British India.”31
For
lack of an endowment sufficient to maintain the teaching staff required, and to
establish the necessary scholarships, the College has never been fully
developed on University lines. Since 1883 it has been used as a training
Institution for preachers and teachers for the Bengal field of the Baptist
Missionary Society. Meanwhile in the century since Carey’s statesman-like ideal
was sketched, under the providence of God there have been two notable
developments in the conditions of Indian life--(1) the educated Christian
natives of India, from Cape Comorin to Peshawar, have grown, and continue to
grow, in numbers, in character, and in influence, with a rapidity pronounced
marvellous by the official report of the Census of 1901; (2) the three hundred
millions of the peoples of India have, by the frank concession of the Earl of
Minto and his advisers, and the sanction of Viscount Morley and Parliament,
received a virtual constitution, which recognises their fitness for
self-governing rights under the benevolent rule of King Edward VII. and his
Viceroy in Council. Christianity, and the leaven of the more really educated
Christian natives, will alone moralise and loyalise the peoples of India, and
prepare future generations for a healthy independence, material and political.
As
they have watched the lines along which these developments have proceeded, the
leaders of the missionary enterprise have become more and more convinced that
the realisation of Carey’s ideal has been too long delayed, and that the
influence of the Christian community on the great movements of Indian thought
has suffered in consequence. In particular, while the need for highly-equipped
Indian preachers, evangelists and leaders, is far more urgent now even than it
was in Carey’s day, the most experienced missionaries of all societies are far
from satisfied with the present level of theological education in the Indian Church.
They are convinced that the time has come to reorganise the whole system of
ministerial training, and to secure for the study of Christian Theology in
India that academic recognition which it has enjoyed for centuries in Western
lands. Since the British Government is pledged to neutrality in religious
matters, it is unable to sanction the establishment of Divinity faculties, in
any of the State Universities, Hence the Decennial Missionary Conference,
representing all the Protestant Missionary Societies working in India, meeting
in Madras in December 1902, appointed a Committee “to confer with the Council
of the Serampore College, through the Committee of the London Baptist
Missionary Society, to ascertain whether they are prepared to delegate the
degree-conferring powers of the Charter of that College to a Senate or Faculty,
representative of the various Protestant Christian Churches and Societies
working in India.”
The
College Council (of which Meredith Townsend, Esq., is Master, and Alfred Henry
Baynes, Esq., F.R.G.S., is Secretary), has taken this request into careful
consideration, and after being
assured by the highest legal opinion that the Charter is still valid, has
resolved to do everything in its power to carry out the suggestions of the
Decennial Conference. They realise, however, that if the degree-conferring powers of the Charter are to be used, the College itself must
be raised to the highest standard of efficiency as a Teaching Institution, and
its permanence must be guaranteed by an adequate endowment.
The
Council has felt that the attainment of these two objects is possible only
through a union of the forces of the various Protestant Christian Churches
working in India. The result has been the adoption of a wise and catholic
project of reorganisation, under which it is hoped that Serampore will become a
great interdenominational College of University rank, giving a theological
training up to the standard of the London B.D., conferring its own divinity
degrees, and maintaining an Arts and Science department, for the present at
least affiliated to the Calcutta University. It is justly claimed that such a
Christian University at Serampore will both unify and raise the standard of
theological education in the Indian Church, helping to build the Eastern
structure of Christian thought and life on the one Foundation of Jesus Christ,
the Word of God.
The
scheme which the Council has sanctioned contemplates the permanent endowment of
the requisite professorships and scholarships. The College building will
provide sufficient class-room accommodation, but it will be necessary to secure
additional land, and to erect houses for the staff and hostels for the
students. An immediate endowment of £250,000 is aimed at with a view of
establishing a well-equipped theological faculty, with a preliminary department
in Arts and Sciences. The Council, however, is not without hope that in due
time Carey’s noble vision of a great Christian University at Serampore
conferring its own degrees, not only in theology but in all branches of useful
learning, may powerfully appeal to some of the merchant princes of the West. It
is estimated that the sum of £2,000,000 would be required for this equipment
and endowment of the University on this larger scale. The great missionary Churches
and Societies look favourably on the proposal, initiated by their own
missionaries, to co-operate with Carey’s more immediate representatives in
realising and applying his ideal which is bound to expand and grow as India
becomes Christianised.
The
members of the College Council maintain that, in view of the world-wide
influence of the modern missionary movement, inaugurated by William Carey, a
movement that has been so beneficial both to the Church at home and to
non-Christian nations, there is no institution that has greater historical and
spiritual claims upon modern philanthropy than Serampore, and they believe that
there are large numbers of men and women in Great Britain, America, India and
other lands who will consider it a sacred privilege to have their names
inscribed with those of Carey, Marshman and Ward on the walls of Serampore
College as its second founders.
The
Council is doing all within its power to reorganise the College on the broadest
possible basis, believing that an institution with such inspiring traditions
and associations should be utilised in the interests, not merely of one
denomination, but of the whole Church in India and the nation. Up to the
present, the Council, though legally an entirely independent body, has worked in
the closest association with the Baptist Missionary Society’s Committee. But
now with the fullest sympathy both of the Baptist Missionaries on the field and
the Committee in England, it is also inviting the co-operation of all
evangelical Christian bodies in the work of Serampore College. It is prepared
to welcome as full professors of the College, in Arts and Theology,
representatives of other evangelical missions, who shall have special
superintendence of the students belonging to their respective denominations,
and be free to give them such supplementary instruction as may be thought
necessary. All professors without distinction of denomination will share
equally in the local management of the affairs of the College. The final
authority must, in accordance with the Charter, remain in the hands of the
College Council, but in order to admit of the due representation upon the
Council of the various evangelical bodies which may co-operate, the present
members of Council have, with the hearty concurrence of the Baptist Missionary
Society’s Committee, approved the suggestion that application should be made to
the Indian Legislature for powers to enlarge its membership.
The
Honorary Secretary of the College Council, A. H. Baynes, Esq., 19 Furnival
Street, London, E.C., will be glad to supply further information, or to receive
contributions towards the Fund for the endowment and equipment of the College.
In
view of the conditions at present existing in India, this appeal should be of
interest not only to friends of Christian missions, but to philanthropists
generally, for a Christian University, conducted on the broad and catholic
principles laid down
by Carey, supplementary but in no way antagonistic to the existing
Universities, will be a most effective instrument for permeating the political
and social ideals of the youth of India with the spirit of Christ. This is a
matter that deeply concerns, not only the Missionary, but also the statesman,
the merchant, and all true friends of India of whatever race or creed.
In
all the romance of Christian Missions, from Iona to Canterbury, there is no
more evident example of the working of the Spirit of God with the Church, than
the call of Carey and the foundation of Serampore College under Danish Charter
and British treaty, making it the only University with full powers to enable
the whole Reformed Church in India to work out its own theological system and
Christian life.
CHAPTER
XVI
CAREY’S
LAST DAYS
1830-1834
The
college and mission stripped of all their funds--Failure of the six firms for
sixteen millions--Carey’s official income reduced from £1560 to £600--His Thoughts
and Appeal published in England--His vigour at seventy--Last revision of
the Bengali Bible--Final edition of the Bengali New Testament--Carey rejoices
in the reforms of Lord William Bentinck’s Government--In the emancipation of
the slaves--Carey sketched by his younger contemporaries--His latest letters
and last message to Christendom--Visits of Lady William Bentinck and Bishop
Daniel Wilson--Marshman’s affection and promise as to the garden--The English
mail brings glad news a fortnight before his death--His last Sabbath--He
dies--Is buried--His tomb among his converts--His will--The Indian press on his
poverty and disinterestedness--Dr. Marshman and Mack, Christopher Anderson and
John Wilson of Bombay on his character--His influence still as the founder of
missions--Dr. Cox and Robert Hall on Carey as a man--Scotland’s estimate of the
father of the Evangelical Revival and its foreign missions.
THE
last days of William Carey were the best. His sun went down in all the
splendour of a glowing faith and a burning self-sacrifice. Not in the penury of
Hackleton and Moulton, not in the hardships of Calcutta and the Soondarbans,
not in the fevers of the swamps of Dinapoor, not in the apprehensions twice
excited by official intolerance, not in the most bitter sorrow of all--the
sixteen years’ persecution by English brethren after Fuller’s death, had the
father of modern missions been so tried as in the years 1830-1833. Blow
succeeded blow, but only that the fine gold of his trust, his humility, and his
love might be seen to be the purer.
The
Serampore College and Mission lost all the funds it had in India. By 1830 the
financial revolution which had laid many houses low in Europe five years
before, began to tell upon the merchant princes of Calcutta. The six firms,
which had developed the trade of Northern India so far as the Company’s
monopolies allowed, had been the bankers of the Government itself, of states
like Haidarabad, and of all the civil and military officials, and had enriched
a succession of partners for half a century, fell one by one--fell
for sixteen millions sterling among them. Palmer and Co. was the greatest; the
house at one time played a large part in the history of India, and in the
debates and papers of Parliament. Mr. John Palmer, a personal friend of the
Serampore men, had advanced them money at ten per cent. four years previously,
when the Society’s misrepresentation had done its worst. The children in the
Eurasian schools, which Dr. and Mrs. Marshman conducted with such profit to the
mission, depended chiefly on funds deposited with this firm. It suddenly failed
for more than two millions sterling. Although the catastrophe exposed the
rottenness of the system of credit on which commerce and banking were at that
time conducted, in the absence of a free press and an intelligent public
opinion, the alarm soon subsided, and only the more business fell to the other
firms. But the year 1833 had hardly opened when first the house of Alexander
and Co., then that of Mackintosh and Co., and then the three others, collapsed
without warning. The English in India, officials and merchants, were reduced to
universal poverty. Capital disappeared and credit ceased at the very time that
Parliament was about to complete the partial concession of freedom of trade
made by the charter of 1813, by granting all Carey had argued for, and allowing
Europeans to hold land.
The
funds invested for Jessor and Delhi; the legacy of Fernandez, Carey’s first
convert and missionary; his own tenths with which he supported three aged
relatives in England; the property of the partner of his third marriage, on
whom the money was settled, and who survived him by a year; the little
possessed by Dr. Marshman, who had paid all his expenses in England even while
working for the Society--all was swept away. Not only was the small balance in
hand towards meeting the college and mission expenditure gone, but it was
impossible to borrow even for a short time. Again one of Dr. Carey’s old
civilian students came to the rescue. Mr. Garrett, grandson of Robert Raikes
who first began Sunday schools, pledged his own credit with the Bank of Bengal,
until Samuel Hope of Liverpool, treasurer of the Serampore Mission there, could
be communicated with. Meanwhile the question of giving up any of the stations
or shutting the college was not once favoured. “I have seen the tears run down
the face of the venerable Dr. Carey at the thought of such a calamity,” wrote
Leechman; “were it to arrive we should soon have to lay him in his grave.” When
the interest of the funds raised by Ward in America ceased for a time because
of the malicious report from England that it might be applied by Dr. Marshman to
the purposes of family aggrandisement, Carey replied in a spirit like that of
Paul under a similar charge: “Dr. Marshman is as poor as I am, and I can
scarcely lay by a sum monthly to relieve three or four indigent relatives in
Europe. I might have had large possessions, but I have given my all, except
what I ate, drank, and wore, to the cause of missions, and Dr. Marshman has
done the same, and so did Mr. Ward.”
Carey’s
trust in God, for the mission and for himself, was to be still further tried.
On 12th July 1828 we find him thus writing from Calcutta to Jabez:--“I came
down this morning to attend Lord W. Bentinck’s first levée. It was numerously attended, and I had the pleasure
of seeing there a great number of gentlemen who had formerly studied under me,
and for whom I felt a very sincere regard. I hear Lady Bentinck is a pious
woman, but have not yet seen her. I have a card to attend at her drawing-room
this evening, but I shall not go, as I must be at home for the Sabbath, which
is to-morrow.” It soon fell to Lord William Bentinck to meet the financial
consequences of his weak predecessor’s administration. The College of Fort William
had to be sacrificed. Metcalfe and Bayley, Carey’s old students whom he had
permanently influenced in the higher life, were the members of council, and he
appealed to them. They sent him to the good Governor-General, to whose sympathy
he laid bare all the past and present of the mission’s finance. He was told to
have no fear, and indeed the Council held a long sitting on this one matter.
But from June 1830 the college ceased to be a teaching, and became an examining
body. When the salary was reduced one-half, from Rs. 1000 a month, the
Brotherhood met to pray for light and strength. Mr. Robinson, the Java
missionary who had attached himself to Serampore, and whose son long did good
service as a Bengali scholar and preacher, gives us this glimpse of its inner
life at this time:--
“The
two old men were dissolved in tears while they were engaged in prayer, and Dr.
Marshman in particular could not give expressions to his feelings. It was
indeed affecting to see these good old men, the fathers of the mission,
entreating with tears that God would not forsake them now grey hairs were come
upon them, but that He would silence the tongue of calumny, and furnish them
with the means of carrying on His own cause.”
They
sent home an appeal to England, and Carey himself published what is perhaps the
most chivalrous, just, and weighty of all his utterances on the disagreeable subject--Thoughts upon the Discussions which have arisen from the Separation
between the Baptist Missionary Society and the Serampore Missions. “From our age and other circumstances our contributions may soon
cease. We have seen a great work wrought in India, and much of it, either
directly or indirectly, has been done by ourselves. I cannot, I ought not to be
indifferent about the permanency of this work, and cannot therefore view the
exultation expressed at the prospect of our resources being crippled otherwise
than being of a character too satanic to be long persisted in by any man who
has the love of God in his heart.”
The
appeal to all Christians for “a few hundred pounds per annum” for the mission
station closed thus: “But a few years have passed away since the Protestant
world was awakened to missionary effort. Since that time the annual revenues
collected for this object have grown to the then unthought-of sum of £400,000.
And is it unreasonable to expect that some unnoticeable portion of this should
be intrusted to him who was amongst the first to move in this enterprise and to
his colleagues?” The Brotherhood had hardly despatched this appeal to England
with the sentence, “Our present incomes even are uncertain,” when the shears of
financial reduction cut off Dr. Carey’s office of Bengali translator to
Government, which for eight years had yielded him Rs. 300 a month. But such was
his faith this final stroke called forth only an expression of regret that he
must reduce his contributions to the missionary cause by so much. He was a
wonder to his colleagues, who wrote of him: “Though thus reduced in his
circumstances the good man, about to enter on his seventieth year, is as
cheerful and as happy as the day is long. He rides out four or five miles every
morning, returning home by sunrise; goes on with the work of translation day by
day; gives two lectures on divinity and one on natural history every week in
the college, and takes his turn of preaching both in Bengali and in English.”
When
the Christian public responded heartily to his appeal Carey was loud and
frequent in his expressions of gratitude to God, who, “in the time of our great
extremity, appeared and stirred up His people thus willingly to offer their
substance for His cause.” With respect to myself, I consider my race as nearly
run. The days of our years are three score years and ten, and I am now only
three months short of that age, and repeated bilious attacks have weakened my
constitution. But I do not look forward to death with any painful
anticipations. I cast myself on and plead the efficacy of that atonement which
will not fail me when I need it.”
Dr.
Marshman gives us a brighter picture of him. “I met with very few friends in
England in their seventieth year so lively, as free from the infirmities of
age, so interesting in the pulpit, so completely conversible as he is now.” The
reason is found in the fact that he was still useful, still busy at the work he
loved most of all. He completed his last revision of the entire Bible in
Bengali--the fifth edition of the Old Testament and the eighth edition of the
New--in June 1832. Immediately thereafter, when presiding at the ordination of
Mr. Mack as co-pastor with Dr. Marshman and himself over the church at
Serampore, he took with him into the pulpit the first copy of the sacred volume
which came from the binder’s hands, and addressed the converts and their
children from the words of Simeon--“Lord now lettest Thou Thy servant depart in
peace, for mine eyes have seen Thy salvation.” As the months went on he carried
through the press still another and improved edition of the New Testament, and
only then he felt and often said that the work of his heart was done.
He
had other sources of saintly pleasure as he lay meditating on the Word, and
praising God for His goodness to the college and the mission stations increased
to nineteen by young Sir Henry Havelock, who founded the church at Agra. Lord
William Bentinck, having begun his reign with the abolition of the crime of
suttee, was, with the help of Carey’s old students, steadily carrying out the
other reforms for which in all his Indian career the missionary had prayed and
preached and published. The judicial service was reorganised so as to include
native judges. The uncovenanted civil service was opened to all British
subjects of every creed. The first act of justice to native Christians was thus
done, so that he wrote of the college:--“The students are now eligible to every
legal appointment in India which a native can hold; those who may possess no
love for the Christian ministry have the prospect of a profitable profession as
advocates in the judicial courts, and the hope of rising to posts of honourable
distinction in their native land.” The Hindoo law of inheritance which the
Regulating Act of Parliament had so covered that it was used to deprive
converts to Christianity of all civil rights, was dealt with so far as a local
regulation could do so, and Carey, advised by such an authority as Harington,
laid it on his successor in the apostolate, the young Alexander Duff, to carry
the act of justice out fully, which was done under the Marquis of Dalhousie.
The orders drawn up by Charles Grant’s sons at last, in February 1833, freed
Great Britain from responsibility for the connection of the East India Company
with Temple and mosque endowments and the pilgrim tax.
His
son Jonathan wrote this of him two years after his death:--
“In
principle my father was resolute and firm, never shrinking from avowing and
maintaining his sentiments. He had conscientious scruples against taking an
oath; and condemned severely the manner in which oaths were administered, and
urged vehemently the propriety of altogether dispensing with them. I remember
three instances in which he took a conspicuous part in regard to oaths, such as
was characteristic of the man. On one occasion, when a respectable Hindoo
servant of the college of Fort William, attached to Dr. Carey’s department, was
early one morning proceeding to the Ganges to bathe, he perceived a dead body
lying near the road; but it being dark, and no person being present, he passed
on, taking no further notice of the circumstance. As he returned from the
Ganges after sunrise, he saw a crowd near the body, and then happened to say to
one of the watchmen present that in the morning he saw the body on the other
side of the road. The watchman took him in custody, as a witness before the
coroner; but, when brought before the coroner, he refused to take an oath, and
was, consequently, committed to prison for contempt. The Hindoo being a
respectable person, and never having taken an oath, refused to take any
nourishment in the prison. In this state he continued a day and a half, my
father being then at Serampore; but upon his coming to Calcutta, the
circumstances were mentioned to him. The fact of the man having refused to take
an oath was enough to make him interest himself in his behalf. He was delighted
with the resolution the man took--rather to go to prison than take an oath; and
was determined to do all he could to procure his liberation. He first applied
to the coroner, but was directed by him to the sheriff. To that functionary he
proceeded, but was informed by him that he could make no order on the subject.
He then had an interview with the then chief judge, by whose interference the
man was set at liberty.
“Another
instance relates to him personally. On the occasion of his last marriage, the
day was fixed on which the ceremony was to take place--friends were
invited--and all necessary arrangements made; but, three or four days prior to
the day fixed, he was informed that it would be necessary for him to obtain a
licence, in doing which, he must either take an oath or have banns published.
To taking an oath he at once objected, and applied to the then senior judge,
who informed him that, as he was not a quaker, his oath was indispensable; but,
rather than take an oath, he applied to have the banns published, and postponed
the arrangements for his marriage for another three weeks.
“The
third instance was as follows:--It was necessary, in a certain case, to prove a
will in court, in which the name of Dr. Carey was mentioned, in connection with
the Serampore missionaries as executors. An application was made by one of his
colleagues, which was refused by the court, on account of the vagueness of the
terms, ‘Serampore missionaries;’ but as Dr. Carey’s name was specifically
mentioned, the court intimated that they would grant the application if made by
him. The communication was made: but when he was informed that an oath was
necessary, he shrunk with abhorrence from the idea; but after much persuasion,
he consented to make the application, if taking an oath would be dispensed
with. He did attend, and stated his objections to the then chief judge, which
being allowed, his affirmation was received and recorded by the court.
“The
duties connected with the College of Fort William afforded him a change of
scene, which relieved his mind, and gave him opportunities of taking exercise,
and conduced much to his health. During the several years he held the situation
of professor to the college, no consideration would allow him to neglect his
attendance; and though he had to encounter boisterous weather in crossing the
river at unseasonable hours, he was punctual in his attendance, and never
applied for leave of absence. And when he was qualified by the rules of the
service to retire on a handsome pension, he preferred being actively employed
in promoting the interests of the college, and remained, assiduously
discharging his duties, till his department was abolished by Government. The
business of the college requiring his attendance in Calcutta, he became so
habituated to his journeys to and fro, that at his age he painfully felt the
retirement he was subjected to when his office ceased. After this circumstance
his health rapidly declined; and though he occasionally visited Calcutta, he
complained of extreme debility. This increased daily, and made him a constant
sufferer; until at length he was not able to leave his house.”
Nor
was it in India alone that the venerable saint found such causes of
satisfaction. He lived long enough to thank God for the emancipation of the
slaves by the English people, for which he had prayed daily for fifty years.
We
have many sketches of the Father of English Missions in his later years by
young contemporaries who, on their first arrival in Bengal, sought him out. In
1824 Mr. Leslie, an Edinburgh student, who became in India the first of Baptist
preachers, and was the means of the conversion of Henry Havelock who married
Dr. Marshman’s youngest daughter, wrote thus of Carey after the third great
illness of his Indian life:--
“Dr.
Carey, who has been very ill, is quite recovered, and bids fair to live many
years; and as for Dr. Marshman, he has never known ill-health is, during the
whole period of his residence in India. They are both active to a degree which
you would think impossible in such a country. Dr. Carey is a very equable and
cheerful old man, in countenance very like the engraving of him with his pundit, though not
so robust as he appears to be there. Next to his translations Botany is his
grand study. He has collected every plant and tree in his garden that will
possibly grow in India, and is so scientific withal that he calls everything by
its classical name. If, therefore, I should at any time blunder out the word
Geranium, he would say Pelargonium, and perhaps accuse me of ignorance, or
blame me for vulgarity. We had the pleasure of hearing him preach from Rom.
vii. 13, when he gave us an excellent sermon. In manner he is very animated, and
in style very methodical. Indeed he carries method into everything he does;
classification is his grand hobby, and wherever anything can be classified,
there you find Dr. Carey; not only does he classify and arrange the roots of
plants and words, but visit his dwelling and you find he has fitted up and
classified shelves full of minerals, stones, shells, etc., and cages full of
birds. He is of very easy access, and great familiarity. His attachments are
strong, and extend not merely to persons but places. About a year ago, so much
of the house in which he had lived ever since he had been at Serampore, fell
down so that he had to leave it, at which he wept bitterly. One morning at
breakfast, he was relating to us an anecdote of the generosity of the late excellent
John Thornton, at the remembrance of whom the big tear filled his eye. Though
it is an affecting sight to see the venerable man weep; yet it is a sight which
greatly interests you, as there is a manliness in his tears--something far removed from the crying of a child.”
The
house in which for the last ten years he lived, and where he died, was the only
one of two or three, planned for the new professors of the college, that was
completed. Compared with the adjoining college it was erected with such severe
simplicity that it was said to have been designed for angels rather than for
men. Carey’s room and library looked towards the river with the breadth of the
college garden between. On the other side, in the upper verandah, in the
morning he worked at his desk almost to the last, and in the evening towards
sunset he talked with his visitors. In 1826 the London Missionary Society sent
out to Calcutta the first of its deputations. Dr. Carey sent his boat for them,
and in the absence of her husband in England, Mrs. Marshman entertained the
guests. They wrote:--
“We
found Dr. Carey in his study, and we were both pleased and struck with his
primitive, and we may say, apostolical appearance. He is short of stature, his
hair white, his countenance equally bland and benevolent in feature and
expression. Two Hindoo men were sitting by, engaged in painting some small
subjects in natural history, of which the doctor, a man of pure taste and
highly intellectual cast of feeling, irrespective of his more learned pursuits,
has a choice collection, both in specimens and pictorial representations.
Botany is a favourite study with him, and his garden is curiously enriched with
rarities.”
Of
all the visits paid to Carey none are now so interesting to the historian of
the Church of India, as those of the youth who succeeded him as he had
succeeded Schwartz. Alexander Duff was twenty-four years of age when, in 1830,
full of hesitation as to carrying out his own plans in opposition to the
experience of all the missionaries he had consulted, he received from Carey
alone the most earnest encouragement to pursue in Calcutta the Christian
college policy so well begun in the less central settlement of Serampore. We
have elsewhere32 told the story:--
“Landing
at the college ghaut one sweltering July day, the still ruddy highlander strode
up to the flight of steps that leads to the finest modern building in Asia.
Turning to the left, he sought the study of Carey in the house--‘built for
angels,’ said one, so simple is it--where the greatest of missionary scholars
was still working for India. There he beheld what seemed to be a little yellow
old man in a white jacket, who tottered up to the visitor of whom he had
already often heard, and with outstretched hands solemnly blessed him. A
contemporary soon after wrote thus of the childlike saint--
“‘Thou’rt
in our heart--with tresses thin and grey,
And eye that knew the Book of Life so
well,
And brow serene, as thou wert wont to stray
Amidst thy flowers--like Adam ere he
fell.’
“The
result of the conference was a double blessing; for Carey could speak with the
influence at once of a scholar who had created the best college at that time in
the country, and of a vernacularist who had preached to the people for half a
century. The young Scotsman left his presence with the approval of the one
authority whose opinion was best worth having...
“Among
those who visited him in his last illness was Alexander Duff, the Scots
missionary. On one of the last occasions on which he saw him--if not the very
last--he spent some time talking chiefly about Carey’s missionary life, till at
length the dying man whispered, Pray. Duff knelt down and prayed, and
then said Good-bye. As he passed from the room, he thought he heard a feeble
voice pronouncing his name, and, turning, he found that he was recalled. He
stepped back accordingly, and this is what he heard, spoken with a gracious
solemnity: ‘Mr. Duff, you have been speaking about Dr. Carey, Dr. Carey; When I
am gone, say nothing about Dr. Carey--speak about Dr. Carey’s Saviour.’ Duff
went away rebuked and awed, with a lesson in his heart that he never forgot.”33
When with his old friends he
dwelt much on the past. Writing of May 1832, Dr. Marshman mentioned: “I spent
an hour at tea with dear Brother Carey last night, now seventy and nine months.
He was in the most comfortable state of health, talking over his first feelings
respecting India and the heathen, and the manner in which God kept them alive,
when even Fuller could not yet enter into them, and good old John Ryland (the
doctor’s father) denounced them as unscriptural. Had these feelings died away,
in what a different state might India now have been!” In September of that
year, when burying Mrs. Ward, he seemed, in his address at the grave, to long
for renewed intercourse with the friends who had preceded him in entering into
the joy of the Lord.
On
Mr. Leechman’s arrival from Scotland to be his colleague, he found the old man
thus vigorous even in April 1833, or if “faint, yet pursuing”:--
“Our
venerable Dr. Carey is in excellent health, and takes his turn in all our
public exercises. Just forty years ago, the first of this month, he
administered the Lord’s Supper to the church at Leicester, and started on the
morrow to embark for India. Through this long period of honourable toil the
Lord has mercifully preserved him; and at our missionary prayer meeting, held
on the first of this month, he delivered an interesting address to encourage us
to persevere in the work of the Lord. We have also a private monthly prayer
meeting held in Dr. Carey’s study, which is to me a meeting of uncommon
interest. On these occasions we particularly spread before the Lord our public
and private trials, both those which come upon us from the cause of Christ,
with which it is our honour and privilege to be connected, and those also which
we as individuals are called to bear. At our last meeting Dr. Carey read part
of the history of Gideon, and commented with deep feeling on the encouragement
which that history affords, that the cause of God can be carried on to victory
and triumph, by feeble and apparently inefficient means.”
Carey’s
successor, Mack, wrote thus to Christopher Anderson ten months later:--
“SERAMPORE,
31st January 1834.--Our venerable father, Dr. Carey, is yet
continued to us, but in the same state in which he has been for the last three
months or so. He is quite incapable of work, and very weak. He can walk but a
few yards at a time, and spends the day in reading for profit and
entertainment, and in occasionally nodding and sleeping. He is perfectly
tranquil in mind. His imagination does not soar much in vivid anticipations of
glory; and it never disquiets him with restless misgivings respecting his
inheritance in God. To him it is everything that the gospel is true, and he
believes it; and, as he says, if he can say he knows anything, he knows that he
believes it. When his attention is turned to his dismissal from earth, or his
hope of glory, his emotions are tender and sweet. They are also very simple,
and express themselves in a few brief and pithy sentences. His interest in all
the affairs of the mission is unabated, and although he can no longer join us
either in deliberation or associated prayer, he must be informed of all that
occurs, and his heart is wholly with us in whatever we do. I do not conceive it
possible that he can survive the ensuing hot season, but he may, and the Lord
will do in this as in all other things what is best.
“When
our necessities were coming to their climax I concluded that I must leave
Serampore in order to find food to eat, and I fixed upon Cherra-poonjee as my
future residence. I proposed establishing a first-class school there, and then
with some warmth of imagination I began anticipating a sort of second edition
of Serampore up in the Khasia hills, to be a centre of diffusing light in the
western provinces. I became really somewhat enamoured of the phantom of my
imagination, but it was not to be. The brethren here would not see it as I
did.”
This
last sketch, by Mr. Gogerly, whom the London Missionary Society had sent out in
1819, brings us still nearer the end:--
“At
this time I paid him my last visit. He was seated near his desk, in the study,
dressed in his usual neat attire; his eyes were closed, and his hands clasped
together. On his desk was the proof-sheet of the last chapter of the New
Testament, which he had revised a few days before. His appearance, as he sat
there, with the few white locks which adorned his venerable brow, and his
placid colourless face, filled me with a kind of awe; for he appeared as then
listening to the Master’s summons, and as waiting to depart. I sat, in his
presence, for about half an hour, and not one word was uttered; for I feared to
break that solemn silence, and call back to earth the soul that seemed almost
in heaven. At last, however, I spoke; and well do I remember the identical
words that passed between us, though more than thirty-six years have elapsed
since then. I said, ‘My dear friend, you evidently are standing on the borders
of the eternal world; do not think it wrong, then, if I ask, What are your
feelings in the immediate prospect of death?’ The question roused him from his
apparent stupor, and opening his languid eyes, he earnestly replied, ‘As far as
my personal salvation is concerned, I have not the shadow of a doubt; I know in
Whom I have believed, and am persuaded that He is able to keep that which I
have committed unto Him against that day; but when I think that I am about to appear
in the presence of a holy God, and remember all my sins and manifold
imperfections--I tremble.’ He could say no more. The tears trickled down his
cheeks, and after a while he relapsed into the same state of silence from which
I had aroused him.
“Deeply
solemn was that interview, and important the lesson I then received. Here was
one of the most holy and harmless men whom I ever knew--who had lived above the
breath of calumny for upwards
of forty years, surrounded by and in close intimacy with many, both Europeans
and natives, who would have rejoiced to have witnessed any inconsistency in his
conduct, but who were constrained to admire his integrity and Christian
character--whilst thus convinced of the certainty of his
salvation, through the merits of that Saviour whom he had preached, yet so
impressed with the exceeding sinfulness of sin, that he trembled at the thought
of appearing before a holy God! A few days after this event, Dr. Carey retired
to his bed, from which he never rose.”
So
long before this as 17th March 1802, Carey had thus described himself to Dr.
Ryland:--“A year or more ago you, or some other of my dear friends, mentioned
an intention of publishing a volume of sermons as a testimony of mutual
Christian love, and wished me to send a sermon or two for that purpose. I have
seriously intended it, and more than once sat down to accomplish it, but have
as constantly been broken off from it. Indolence is my prevailing sin,
and to that are now added a number of avocations which I never thought of; I
have also so continual a fear that I may at last fall some way or other so as
to dishonour the Gospel that I have often desired that my name may be buried in
oblivion; and indeed I have reason for those fears, for I am so prone to sin
that I wonder every night that I have been preserved from foul crimes through
the day, and when I escape a temptation I esteem it to be a miracle of grace
which has preserved me. I never was so fully persuaded as I am now that no
habit of religion is a security from falling into the foulest crimes, and I
need the immediate help of God every moment. The sense of my continual danger
has, I confess, operated strongly upon me to induce me to desire that no
publication of a religious nature should be published as mine whilst I am
alive. Another reason is my sense of incapacity to do justice to any subject,
or even to write good sense. I have, it is true, been obliged to publish
several things, and I can say that nothing but necessity could have induced me
to do it. They are, however, only grammatical works, and certainly the very
last things which I should have written if I could have chosen for myself.”
On
15th June 1833 the old man was still able to rejoice with others. He addressed
to his son Jonathan the only brief letter which the present writer possesses
from his pen, in a hand as clear as that of a quarter of a century before:--
“MY
DEAR JONATHAN--I congratulate you upon the good news you have received. But am
sorry Lucy continues so ill. I am too weak to write more than to say your
mother is as well as the weather will permit us to expect. I could scarcely
have been worse to live than I have been the last fortnight.--Your affectionate
father, W. CAREY.”
The
hot season had then reached its worst.
His
last letters were brief messages of love and hope to his two sisters in
England. On 27th July 1833 he wrote to them:--
“About
a week ago so great a change took place in me that I concluded it was the
immediate stroke of death, and all my children were informed of it and have
been here to see me. I have since that revived in an almost miraculous manner,
or I could not have written this. But I cannot expect it to continue. The will
of the Lord be done. Adieu, till I meet you in a better world.--Your
affectionate brother, “W. CAREY.”
Two
months later he was at his old work, able “now and then to read a proof sheet
of the Scriptures.”
“SERAMPORE,
25th Sept. 1833.
“MY
DEAR SISTERS--My being able to write to you now is quite unexpected by me, and,
I believe, by every one else; but it appears to be the will of God that I
should continue a little time longer. How long that may be I leave entirely
with Him, and can only say, ‘All the days of my appointed time will I wait till
my change come.’ I was, two months or more ago, reduced to such a state of
weakness that it appeared as if my mind was extinguished; and my weakness of
body, and sense of extreme fatigue and exhaustion, were such that I could
scarcely speak, and it appeared that death would be no more felt than the
removing from one chair to another. I am now able to sit and to lie on my
couch, and now and then to read a proof sheet of the Scriptures. I am too weak
to walk more than just across the house, nor can I stand even a few minutes
without support. I have every comfort that kind friends can yield, and feel,
generally, a tranquil mind. I trust the great point is settled, and I am ready
to depart; but the time when, I leave with God.
“3rd
Oct.--I am not worse than when I began this letter.--I am, your very
affectionate brother, WM. CAREY.”
His
latest message to Christendom was sent on the 30th September, most
appropriately to Christopher Anderson:--“As
everything connected with the full accomplishment of the divine promises
depends on the almighty power of God, pray that I and all the ministers of the
Word may take hold of His strength, and go about our work as fully
expecting the accomplishment of them all, which, however difficult and
improbable it may appear, is certain, as all the promises of God are in Him,
yea, and in Him, Amen.” Had he not, all his career, therefore expected and
attempted great things?
He
had had a chair fixed on a small platform, constructed after his own direction,
that he might be wheeled through his garden. At other times the chief gardener
Hullodhur, reported to him the state of the collection of plants, then
numbering about 2000. Dr. Marshman saw his friend daily, sometimes twice a day,
and found him always what Lord Hastings had described him to be--“the cheerful
old man.” On the only occasion on which he seemed sad, Dr. Marshman as he was
leaving the room turned and asked why. With deep feeling the dying scholar
looked to the others and said, “After I am gone Brother Marshman will turn the
cows into my garden.” The reply was prompt, “Far be it from me; though I have
not your botanical tastes, the care of the garden in which you have taken so
much delight, shall be to me a sacred duty.”34
Of
strangers his most frequent visitor was the Governor-General’s wife, Lady
William Bentinck. Her husband was in South India, and she spent most of her
time in Barrackpore Park retreat opposite to Carey’s house. From her frequent
converse with him, in his life as well as now, she studied the art of dying.
Daniel Wilson, Bishop of Calcutta, learned to delight in Serampore almost from
the beginning of his long episcopate, and in later years he lived there more
than in Calcutta. On the 14th February 1833 he first visited Carey, “his
interview with whom, confined as he was to his room, and apparently on the
verge of the celestial world, was peculiarly affecting.” In the last of
subsequent visits the young Bishop asked the dying missionary’s benediction.
With all the talk was the same, a humble resignation to the will of God, firm
trust in the Redeemer of sinners, a joyful gratitude for the wonderful progress
of His Kingdom. What a picture is this that his brethren sent home six weeks
before he passed away. “Our aged and venerable brother feels himself growing
gradually weaker. He can scarcely rise from his couch, and it is with great
difficulty that he is carried out daily to take the air. Yet he is free from
all pain as to disease, and his mind is in a most serene and happy state. He is
in full possession of his faculties, and, although with difficulty, on account
of his weakness, he still converses with his friends from day to day.”
The
hottest season of the year crept wearily on during the month of May and the
first week of June. Each night he slept well, and each day he was moved to his
couch in the dining-room for air. There he lay, unable to articulate more than
a word or two, but expressing by his joyful features union in prayer and
interest in conversation. On the 22nd May the English mail arrived with
gladdening intelligence from Mr. Hope--God’s people were praying and giving
anew for the mission. Especially was his own latest station of Cherra-poonjee
remembered. As he was told that a lady, anonymously, had offered £500 for that
mission, £500 for the college, £500 for the translations, and £100 for the
mission generally, he raised his emaciated hands to heaven and murmured praise
to God. When the delirium of departure came he strove to reach his desk that he
might write a letter of thanks, particularly for Cherra. Then he would recall
the fact that the little church he at first formed had branched out into six
and twenty churches, in which the ordinances of the Gospel were regularly
administered, and he would whisper, “What has God wrought!”
The
last Sabbath had come--and the last full day. The constant Marshman was with
him. “He was scarcely able to articulate, and after a little conversation I
knelt down by the side of his couch and prayed with him. Finding my mind unexpectedly
drawn out to bless God for His goodness, in having preserved him and blessed
him in India for above forty years, and made him such an instrument of good to
His church; and to entreat that on his being taken home, a double portion of
his spirit might rest on those who remained behind; though unable to speak, he
testified sufficiently by his countenance how cordially he joined in this
prayer. I then asked Mrs. Carey whether she thought he could now see me. She
said yes, and to convince me, said, ‘Mr. Marshman wishes to know whether you
now see him?’ He answered so loudly that I could hear him, ‘Yes, I do,’ and
shook me most cordially by the hand. I then left him, and my other duties did
not permit me to reach him again that day. The next morning, as I was returning
home before sunrise, I met our Brethren Mack and Leechman out on their morning ride,
when Mack told me that our beloved brother had been rather worse all the night,
and that he had just left him very ill. I immediately hastened home, through
the college in which he has lived these ten years, and when I reached his room,
found that he had just entered into the joy of his Lord--Mrs. Carey, his son Jabez, my son John, and Mrs. Mack being present.”
It
was Monday the 9th June 1834, at half-past five, as the morning sun was
ascending the heavens towards the perfect day. The rain-clouds burst and
covered the land with gloom next morning when they carried William Carey to the
converts’ burial-ground and made great lamentation. The notice was too short
for many to come up from Calcutta in those days. “Mr. Duff, of the Scottish
Church, returned a most kind letter.” Sir Charles Metcalfe and the Bishop wrote
very feelingly in reply. Lady Bentinck sent the Rev. Mr. Fisher to represent
the Governor-General and herself, and “a most kind and feeling answer, for she
truly loved the venerable man,” while she sadly gazed at the mourners as they
followed the simple funeral up the right bank of the Hoogli, past the College
and the Mission chapel. Mr. Yates, who had taken a loving farewell of the
scholar he had been reluctant to succeed, represented the younger brethren;
Lacroix, Micaiah Hill, and Gogerly, the London Missionary Society. Corrie and
Dealtry do not seem to have reached the spot in time. The Danish Governor, his
wife, and the members of council were there, and the flag drooped half-mast
high as on the occasion of a Governor’s death. The road was lined by the poor,
Hindoo and Mohammedan, for whom he had done so much. When all, walking in the
rain, had reached the open grave, the sun shone out, and Leechman led them in
the joyous resurrection hymn, “Why do we mourn departing friends?” “I then
addressed the audience,” wrote Marshman, “and, contrary to Brother Mack’s
foretelling that I should never get through it for tears, I did not shed one.
Brother Mack was then asked to address the native members, but he, seeing the
time so far gone, publicly said he would do so at the village. Brother Robinson
then prayed, and weeping--then neither myself nor few besides could refrain.”
In Jannuggur village chapel in the evening the Bengali burial hymn was sung, Pœritran Christer Morone, “Salvation by the death of
Christ,” and Pran Krishna, the oldest disciple, led his countrymen in prayer.
Then Mack spoke to the weeping converts with all the pathos of their own sweet
vernacular from the words, “For David, after he had served his own generation,
by the will of God fell on sleep.” Had not Carey’s been a royal career, even
that of a king and a priest unto God?
“We,
as a mission,” wrote Dr. Marshman to Christopher Anderson, “took the expense on
ourselves, not suffering his family to do so, as we shall that of erecting a
monument for him. Long before his death we had, by a letter signed by us all,
assured him that the dear relatives, in England and France, should have their
pensions continued as though he were living, and that Mrs. Carey, as a widow,
should have Rs. 100 monthly, whatever Mackintosh’s house might yield her.”
Twenty-two
years before, when Chamberlain was complaining because of the absence of stone,
or brick, or inscription in the mission burial-ground, Carey had said, “Why
should we be remembered? I think when I am dead the sooner I am forgotten the
better.” Dr. Johns observed that it is not the desire of the persons themselves
but of their friends for them, to which Carey replied, “I think of others in
that respect as I do of myself.” When his second wife was taken from him, his
affection so far prevailed that he raised a memorial stone, and in his will
left this “order” to Mack and William Robinson, his executors: “I direct that
my funeral be as plain as possible; that I be buried by the side of my second
wife, Charlotte Emilia Carey; and that the following inscription and nothing
more may be cut on the stone which commemorates her, either above or below, as
there may be room, viz.:--
WILLIAM
CAREY, BORN AUGUST 17, 1761; DIED
A wretched, poor, and helpless worm,
On Thy kind arms I fall.”
The
surviving brethren seem to have taken the small oblong stone, with the
inscription added as directed, and to have placed it on the south side of the
domed square block of brick and white plaster--since renewed from time to
time--which stands in the left corner of the God’s-acre, now consecrated by the
mingled dust of four generations of missionaries, converts, and Christian
people. Ward’s monument stands in the centre, and that of the Marshman family
at the right hand. Three and a half years afterwards Joshua Marshman followed
Carey; not till 1847 was Hannah Marshman laid beside him, after a noble life of
eighty years. Mack had gone the year before, cut off by cholera like Ward. But the brotherhood
cannot be said to have ended till John Marshman, C.S.I., died in London in
1877. From first to last the three families contributed to the cause of God
from their own earnings, ninety thousand pounds, and the world would never have
known it but for the lack of the charity that envieth not on the part of Andrew
Fuller’s successors.
Carey’s
last will and testament begins: “I utterly disclaim all or any right or title
to the premises at Serampore, called the mission premises, and every part and
parcel thereof; and do hereby declare that I never had, or supposed myself to
have, any such right or title. I give and bequeath to the College of Serampore
the whole of my museum, consisting of minerals, shells, corals, insects, and
other natural curiosities, and a Hortus Siccus; also the folio edition of Hortus
Woburnensis, which was presented to me by Lord Hastings; Taylor’s Hebrew
Concordance, my collection of Bibles in foreign languages, and all my books
in the Italian and German languages.” His widow, Grace, who survived him a
short time, had the little capital that was hers before her marriage to him,
and he desired that she would choose from his library whatever English books
she valued. His youngest son, Jonathan, was not in want of money. He had paid
Felix and William Rs. 1500 each in his lifetime. In order to leave a like sum
to Jabez, he thus provided: “From the failure of funds to carry my former
intentions into effect, I direct that my library be sold.” In dying as in
living he is the same--just to others because self-devoted to Him to whom he
thus formally willed himself, “On Thy kind arms I fall.”
The
Indian journals rang with the praises of the missionary whose childlike
humility and sincerity, patriotism and learning, had long made India proud of
him. After giving himself, William Carey had died so poor that his books had to
be sold to provide £187 10s. for one of his sons. One writer asserted that this
man had contributed “sixteen lakhs of rupees” to the cause of Christ while
connected with the Serampore Mission, and the statement was everywhere
repeated. Dr. Marshman thereupon published the actual facts, “as no one would
have felt greater abhorrence of such an attempt to impose on the Christian
public than Dr. Carey himself, had he been living.” At a time when the old
Sicca Rupee was worth half a crown, Carey received, in the thirty-four and a
half years of his residence at Serampore, from the date of his appointment to
the College of Fort William, £45,000.35 Of this he spent £7500 on his Botanic
Garden in that period. If accuracy is of any value in such a question, which
has little more than a curious biographical interest, then we must add the
seven years previous to 1801, and we shall find that the shoemaker of Hackleton
received in all for himself and his family £600 from the Society which he
called into existence, and which sent him forth, while he spent on the
Christianisation and civilisation of India £1625 received as a manufacturer of
indigo; and £45,000 as Professor of Sanskrit, Bengali, and Marathi, and Bengali
Translator to Government, or £46,625 in all.
“It
is possible,” wrote Dr. Marshman, “that if, instead of thus living to God and
his cause with his brethren at Serampore, Dr. Carey had, like the other
professors in the college, lived in Calcutta wholly for himself and his family,
he might have laid by for them a lakh of rupees in the thirty years he was
employed by Government, and had he been very parsimonious, possibly a lakh and
a half. But who that contrasts the pleasures of such a life with those Dr.
Carey enjoyed in promoting with his own funds every plan likely to plant
Christianity among the natives around him, without having to consult any one in
thus doing, but his two brethren of one heart with him, who contributed as much
as himself to the Redeemer’s cause, and the fruit of which he saw before his
death in Twenty-six Gospel Churches planted in India within a surface of
about eight hundred miles, and above Forty labouring brethren raised up
on the spot amidst them--would not prefer the latter? What must have been the
feelings on a deathbed of a man who had lived wholly to himself, compared with
the joyous tranquillity which filled Carey’s soul in the prospect of entering
into the joy of his Lord, and above all with what he felt when, a few days
before his decease, he said to his companion in labour for thirty-four years:
‘I have no fears; I have no doubts; I have not a wish left unsatisfied.’”
In the Danish Church of
Serampore, and in the Mission Chapel, and afterwards in the Union Chapel of
Calcutta, Dr. Marshman and Mr. Mack preached sermons on William Carey. These
and the discourse delivered in Charlotte Chapel, Edinburgh, on the 30th of
November, by Christopher Anderson, were the only materials from which a just
estimate of Carey and his work could be formed for the next quarter of a century.
All, and especially the last, were as worthy of their theme as éloges
pronounced in such circumstances could be. Marshman spoke from the text chosen
by Carey himself a few weeks before his death as containing the foundation of
his hope and the source of his calm and tranquil assurance--“For by grace are ye saved.” Mack found his inspiration again, as he had
done in the Bengali village, in Paul’s words--“David, after he had served his
own generation, by the will of God fell on sleep.” The Edinburgh preacher
turned to the message of Isaiah wherewith Carey used to comfort himself in his
early loneliness, and which the Revised Version renders--“Look unto Abraham
your father; for when he was but one I called him and I blessed him and made
him many.” And in Bombay the young contemporary missionary who most nearly
resembled Carey in personal saintliness, scholarship, and self-devotion, John
Wilson, thus wrote:--
“Dr.
Carey, the first of living missionaries, the most honoured and the most
successful since the time of the Apostles, has closed his long and influential
career. Indeed his spirit, his life, and his labours, were truly
apostolic...The Spirit of God which was in him led him forward from strength to
strength, supported him under privation, enabled him to overcome in a fight
that seemed without hope. Like the beloved disciple, whom he resembled in
simplicity of mind, and in seeking to draw sinners to Christ altogether by the
cords of love, he outlived his trials to enjoy a peaceful and honoured old age,
to know that his Master’s cause was prospering, and that his own name was named
with reverence and blessing in every country where a Christian dwelt. Perhaps
no man ever exerted a greater influence for good on a great cause. Who that saw
him, poor and in seats of learning uneducated, embark on such an enterprise,
could ever dream that, in little more than forty years, Christendom should be
animated with the same spirit, thousands forsake all to follow his example, and
that the Word of Life should be translated into almost every language and
preached in almost every corner of the earth?”
As
the Founder and Father of Modern Missions, the character and career of William
Carey are being revealed every year in the progress, and as yet, the purity of
the expansion of the Church and of the English-speaking races in the two-thirds
of the world which are still outside of Christendom. The £13:2:6 of Kettering
became £400,000 before he died, and is now £5,000,000 a year. The one ordained
English missionary is now a band of 20,000 men and women sent out by 558
agencies of the Reformed Churches. The solitary converts, each with no
influence on his people, or country, or generation, are now a community of
3,000,000 in India alone, and in all the lands outside of Christendom 5,000,000,
of whom 80,000 are missionaries to their own countrymen, and many are leaders
of the native communities. Since the first edition of the Bengali New Testament
appeared at the beginning of the century 250,000,000 of copies of the Holy
Scriptures have been printed, of which one half are in 370 of the non-English
tongues of the world. The Bengali School of Mudnabati, the Christian College of
Serampore, have set in motion educational forces that are bringing nations to
the birth, are passing under Bible instruction every day more than a million
boys and girls, young men and maidens of the dark races of mankind.
The
seventh Earl of Shaftesbury, the greatest and most practical Evangelical of the
nineteenth century after William Wilberforce, wrote thus in his Journal of the
class whom Carey headed in the eighteenth, and whom Wordsworth commemorated as
“Not sedentary all, there are who roam
To scatter seeds of Life on barbarous
shores.”
1847.
“Aug. 30th--RYDE.--Reading Missionary Enterprises by Williams...Zeal,
devotion, joy, simplicity of heart, faith, love; and we here have barely
affection enough to thank God that such deeds have been done. Talk of ‘doing
good’ and being ‘useful in one’s generation,’ why, these admirable men
performed more in one month than I or many others shall perform in a whole
life!”
The
eloquent Dr. Richard Winter Hamilton, reflecting that sacrifice to heroes is
reserved until after sunset, recalled William Carey, eight years after his
death, as “wielding a power to which all difficulties yielded, but that power
noiseless as a law of nature; great in conception as well as in performance;
profound as those deep combinations of language in which the Indian philosophy and
polytheism hide themselves, but gentle as the flower which in his brief
recreation he loved to train; awful as the sage, simple as the child; speaking
through the Eastern world in as many languages, perhaps, as ‘the cloven tongues
of fire’ represented; to be remembered and blessed as long as Ganges rolls!”
The
historian of the Baptist Missionary Society, and Robert Hall, whom Sir James
Mackintosh pronounced the greatest English orator, have both attempted an
estimate of Carey’s genius and influence. Dr. F. A. Cox remarks:--“Had he been
born in the sixteenth century he might have been a Luther, to give
Protestantism to Europe; had he turned his thought and observations merely to
natural philosophy he might have been a Newton; but his faculties, consecrated
by religion to a still higher end, have gained for him the sublime distinction
of having been the Translator of the Scriptures and the Benefactor of Asia.”
Robert Hall spoke thus of Carey in his lifetime:--“That extraordinary man who,
from the lowest obscurity and poverty, without assistance, rose by dint of unrelenting
industry to the highest honours of literature, became one of the first of
Orientalists, the first of Missionaries, and the instrument of diffusing more
religious knowledge among his contemporaries than has fallen to the lot of any
individual since the Reformation; a man who unites with the most profound and
varied attainments the fervour of an evangelist, the piety of a saint, and the
simplicity of a child.”
Except
the portrait in London and the bust in Calcutta, no memorial, national,
catholic, or sectarian, marks the work of Carey. That work is meanwhile most
appropriately embodied in the College for natives at Serampore, in the Lall
Bazaar chapel and Benevolent Institution for the poor of Calcutta. The Church
of England, which he left, like John Wesley, has allowed E. S. Robinson, Esq.,
of Bristol, to place an inscription, on brass, in the porch of the church of
his native village, beside the stone which he erected over the remains of his
father, Edmund, the parish clerk:--“To the Glory of God and in memory of Dr.
Wm. Carey, Missionary and Orientalist.”
Neither
Baptist nor Anglican, the present biographer would, in the name of the country
which stood firm in its support of Carey and Serampore all through the
forty-one years of his apostolate, add this final eulogy, pronounced in St.
George’s Free Church, Edinburgh, on the man who, more than any other and before
all others, made the civilisation of the modern world by the English-speaking
races a Christian force.36 Carey, childlike in his humility, is the most
striking illustration in all Hagiology, Protestant or Romanist, of the Lord’s
declaration to the Twelve when He had set a little child in the midst of them,
“Whosoever shall humble himself as this little child, the same is greatest in
the kingdom of heaven.” Yet we, nigh a century after he went forth with the
Gospel to Hindostan, may venture to place him where the Church History of the
future is likely to keep him--amid the uncrowned kings of men who have made
Christian England what it is, under God, to its own people and to half the
human race. These are Chaucer, the Father of English Verse; Wyclif the Father
of the Evangelical Reformation in all lands; Hooker, the Father of English
Prose; Shakspere, the Father of English Literature; Milton, the Father of the
English Epic; Bunyan, the Father of English Allegory; Newton, the father of
English Science; Carey, the Father of the Second Reformation through Foreign
Missions.
APPENDIX
I.--CHARTER
OF INCORPORATION OF SERAMPORE COLLEGE
WE,
Frederick the Sixth, by the Grace of God King of Denmark, the Venders and
Gothers, Duke of Slesvig Holsten, Stormarn, Ditmarsken, Limessborg and
Oldenborg, by writings these make known and publicly declare, that whereas
William Carey and Joshua Marshman, Doctors of Divinity, and John Clark
Marshman, Esq., inhabitants of our town of Fredericksnagore (or Serampore) in
Bengal, being desirous of founding a College to promote piety and learning
particularly among the native Christian population of India, have to secure
this object erected suitable buildings and purchased and collected suitable
books, maps, etc., and have humbly besought us to grant unto them and such
persons as shall be elected by them and their successors to form the Council of
the College in the manner to be hereafter named, our Royal Charter of
Incorporation that they may the more effectually carry into execution the
purposes above-mentioned:--We, being desirous to encourage so laudable an
undertaking, have of our special grace and free motion ordained, constituted,
granted and declared, and by the presents We do for ourselves, our heirs and
successors ordain, constitute, grant and declare:
1.
That the said William Carey, Joshua Marshman and John Clark Marshman, and such
other person or persons as shall successively be elected and appointed the
Council of the said College, in the manner hereafter mentioned, shall by virtue
of the presents be for ever hereafter one body politic and incorporate by the
name of the Serampore College for the purposes aforesaid to have perpetual
succession and to have a common seal, and by the said name to sue and be sued,
to implead and be impleaded, and to answer and be answered unto in every court
and place belonging to us, our heirs and successors.
2. And We do hereby ordain, constitute and
declare that the persons hereby incorporated and their successors shall for
ever be competent in law to purchase, hold and enjoy for them and their
successors any goods and chattels whatsoever and to receive, purchase, hold and
enjoy, they and their successors, any lands, tenements or hereditaments
whatever, and that they shall have full power and authority to sell, exchange
or otherwise dispose of any real or personal property to be by them acquired as
aforesaid, unless the sale or alienation of such property be specially
prohibited by the donor or donors thereof, and to do all things relating to the
said College or Corporation in as ample a manner or form as any of our liege
subjects, or any other body politic or corporate in our said kingdom or its
dependencies may or can do.
3.
And We do hereby ordain, grant and declare that the number of Professors,
Fellows or Student Tutors and Students, shall be indefinite and that the said
William Carey, Joshua Marshman and John Clark Marshman, shall be the first
Council of the said College, and that in the event of its appearing to them
necessary during their life-time, or in the case of the death of any one of the
three members of the said first Council, the survivors or survivor shall and
may under their respective hands and seals appoint such other person or persons
to be members of the Council of the College, and to succeed each other so as to
become Members of the said Council in the order in which they shall be
appointed, to the intent that the Council of the said College shall for ever
consist of at least three persons.
4.
And We do hereby further ordain, grant and declare, that for the better
government of the said College, and the better management of its concerns, the
said William Carey, Joshua Marshman and John Clark Marshman, the members of the
first Council, shall have full power and authority for the space of ten years
from the date of these presents, to make and establish such statutes as shall
appear to them useful and necessary for the government of the said College, in
which statutes they shall define the powers to be entrusted to their
successors, to the Professors, the Fellows or Student Tutors and the other
Officers thereof, and the duties to be performed by these respectively for the
management of the estates, lands, revenues and goods--and of the business of
the said College, and the manner of proposing, electing, admitting and removing
all and every one of the Council, the Professors, the Fellows or Tutors, the officers,
the students and the servants thereof, and shall make and establish generally
all such other statutes as may appear to them necessary for the future good
government and prosperity of the said College, provided that these statutes be
not contrary to the laws and statutes of our realm.
5.
And we do hereby further ordain, grant and declare, that the statutes thus made
and established by the said three members of the first Council, and given or
left in writing under their respective hands, shall be valid and in full force
at the expiration of ten years from the date of these presents, so that no
future Council of the College shall have power to alter, change or vary them in
any manner whatever and that the statutes shall for ever be considered the constitution
of the said College. And we do hereby appoint and declare that these statutes
shall be made and established by the said William Carey, Joshua Marshman and
John Clark Marshman alone, so that in case either of them should die before the
expiration of ten years, the power of completing or perfecting these statutes
shall devolve wholly on the survivors or survivor; and that in case all three
of them should die before the expiration of ten years, the statutes which they
have left in writing under their hands, or under the hand of the last survivor
among them shall be considered “The Fundamental Statutes and Constitution of
Serampore College,” incapable of receiving either addition or alteration, and shall and
may be registered in our Royal Court of Chancery as “The Statutes and
Constitution of Serampore College.”
6.
And We do hereby further appoint, grant and declare that from and after the
completion of the statutes of the said College in the above said time of ten
years, the said Council of the College shall be deemed to consist of a Master
or President and two or four members who may be Professors or otherwise as the
Statutes may direct so that the said Council shall not contain less than three,
nor more than five persons, as shall be defined in the Statutes. The Council
shall ever be elected as the Statutes of the College may direct, yet the said
Master or President shall always previously have been a Member of the said
College; and upon the decease of the said Master or President, the Council of
the said College shall be unable to do any act or deed until the appointment of
a new Master or President, save and except the appointment of such a Master.
7.
And We further appoint, grant and declare, that the said William Carey, Joshua
Marshman and John Clark Marshman, the members of the first Council, and their
successors for ever, shall have the power of conferring upon the students of
the said College, Native Christians as well as others, degrees of rank and
honour according to their proficiency in as ample a manner as any other such
College, yet the said Serampore College shall only have the power of conferring
such degrees on the students that testify their proficiency in Science and no
rank or other special right shall be connected therewith in our dominions. And
We do hereby further appoint, grant and declare, that after the expiration of
the said ten years, the said Council of the College and their successors for
ever shall have power to make and establish such orders and bye-laws as shall
appear to them useful and necessary for the government of the said College, and
to alter, suspend or repeal those already made, and from time to time make such
new ones in their room as shall appear to them most proper and expedient
provided the same be not repugnant to the Statutes of the College, or to the
laws of our realm, and that after the expiration of these ten years any member
of the Council shall have power to move the enactment of any new bye-law, or
the alteration, suspension or repeal of any existing one provided notice of
such motion shall have been delivered in writing to the Master and read from
the Chair at one previous meeting of the Council of the said College, but that
no such motion shall be deemed to have passed in the affirmative, until the
same shall have been discussed and decided by ballot at another meeting
summoned especially for that purpose, a majority of the members then present
having voted in the affirmative; and in this, as in all other cases, if the
votes be equal, the Master or President shall have the casting vote.
Given
at our Royal Palace in Copenhagen on the twenty-third day of February, in the
year of our Lord one thousand, eight hundred and twenty-seven, in the
nineteenth year of our reign.
Under
our Royal Hand and Seal.
FREDERICK
R.
II.--STATUTES
AND REGULATIONS OF SERAMPORE COLLEGE
June 12th, 1833.
1.
Article the Third of the Charter granted by his Danish Majesty, having
authorised the first Council of Serampore College in their lifetime to nominate
under their hand and seal such other person or persons for colleagues or
successors as may to them appear most proper, so that the Council shall always
consist of at least three persons, their successors in the Council shall be
competent in like manner to nominate in their lifetime, under their separate
hand and seal, such person or persons as they may deem most proper to fill
vacancies then existing or which may occur on their demise; members thus
nominated and chosen shall succeed to the Council in order of their nomination.
2.
It being fixed in the Charter that the Council must consist of the Master or President
and at least two, but no more than four Members, and that on the demise of the
Master no act shall be done until another be elected, the Master and Council
for the time being shall appoint the next Master under their separate hand and
seal. If on the demise of a Master no one be found thus appointed under the
hand and seal of a majority of the Council, the Senior Member of the Council
shall succeed as Master.
3.
The Charter having given the casting vote to the Master, in all cases when the
votes are equal the casting vote shall lie with the Master, and if there be no
Master, it shall lie with the Senior Member of the Council.
4.
Learning and piety being peculiar to no denomination of Christians, one member
of the Council may at all times be of any other denomination besides the
Baptist, to preserve the original design of the Institution; however, if on the
election of a Master a number of the Council be equally divided, that part
which is entirely of the Baptist denomination shall have the casting vote,
whether it includes the Master or not.
5.
The management of the College, including its revenues and property, the choice
of Professor and Tutors, the admission of Students, the appointment of all
functionaries and servants, and the general order and government of the
College, shall ever be vested in the Master and the Council. The Master shall
see that the Statutes and Regulations of the Council be duly carried into
effect, and take order for the good government of the College in all things.
His signature is necessary to the validity of all deeds, instruments, documents
and proceedings.
6.
“The first Council and their successor for ever” being authorised by the
Charter “to confer such degrees of rank and honour as shall encourage learning”
in the same manner as other Colleges and Universities, they shall from time to
time confer degrees in such branches of Knowledge and Science as may be studied
there, in the same manner as the Universities in Denmark, Germany and Great Britain. In doing
this the Master and Council shall ad libitum call in the aid of any or
all the Professors of Serampore College. All such degrees shall be perfectly
free of expense to the person on whom they may be conferred, whether he be in
India, Europe or America.
7.
No oaths shall be administered in Serampore College, either to the Members of
Council, the Professors and Tutors, or the Students. In all cases a solemn
promise, duly recorded and signed by the party, shall be accepted instead of an
oath.
8.
Marriage shall be no bar to any office or situation in Serampore College, from
that of the Master to that of the lowest student.
9.
The salaries of the Professors and Tutors in Serampore College shall be
appointed, and the means of support for all functionaries, students and servants
be regulated by the Council in such manner as shall best promote the objects of
the Institution.
10.
It is intended that neither the Master nor any Member of the Council in general
shall receive any salary. But any Master who may not previously reside in the
College shall have a residence there free of rent for himself and his family.
And if the Council shall elect any one in Europe or in America, whom they deem
eminent for learning and piety, a Member of the Council, with a view to
choosing him Master, should they on trial deem him worthy, the Council shall be
competent to appoint him such salary as they may deem necessary, not exceeding,
however, the highest given to a Professor.
11.
As the founders of the College deem the belief of Christ’s Divinity and
Atonement essential to vital Christianity, the promotion of which is the grand
object of this Institution, no one shall be eligible to the College Council or
to any Professorship who is known to oppose these doctrines, and should any one
of the Professors or any member of the Council unhappily so change his views
after his election as to oppose these fundamental doctrines of Christianity, on
this being clearly and decidedly proved from his teaching or his writings, he
shall vacate the office he previously held. But every proceeding of this nature
on the part of the College Council shall be published to the Christian world,
with the proofs on which it may rest, as an Appendix to the succeeding Report.
12.
Members of the Council are eligible from among the Professors of the College,
or from among any in India, Europe, or America whom the College Council may
deem suitable in point of learning, piety, and talent.
13.
Students are admissible at the discretion of the Council from any body of
Christians, whether Protestant, Roman Catholic, the Greek, or the Armenian
Church; and for the purpose of study, from the Mussulman and Hindu youth, whose
habits forbid their living in the College. No caste, colour, or country shall
bar any man from admission into Serampore College.
14.
Expulsion shall be awarded in cases of open immorality, incorrigible idleness,
neglect of the College Statutes and regulations, or repeated disobedience to
the officers of the College.
15.
Any person in India, Europe, or America shall be at liberty to found any
Professorship, or to attach to Serampore College any annual exhibition or prize
for the encouragement of learning in the same manner as in the Universities of
Great Britain, regulating such endowment according to their own will; and it
shall be duty of the College Council to carry such benefactions into effect in
strict consonance with the will of the donors as far as shall be consistent
with the Statutes of the College.
16.
It shall be lawful for the first Council of the College or their successors to
make and rescind any bye-laws whatever, provided they be not contrary to these
Statutes.
17.
The Charter having declared that the number of the Professors and students in
Serampore College remains unlimited, they shall be left thus unlimited, the
number to be regulated only by the gracious providence of God and the
generosity of the public in India, Europe and America.
III.--ARTICLE
VI., CLAUSE 2, OF THE TREATY OF PURCHASE, TRANSFERRING SERAMPORE TO THE BRITISH
GOVERNMENT
“The
rights and immunities granted to the Serampore College by Royal Charter of
date, 23rd February, 1827, shall not be interfered with, but continue in force
in the same manner as if they had been obtained by a Charter from the British
Government, subject to the general law of British India.”
FOOTNOTES
1
Iphicrates, great Athenian general, who was the son of a shoemaker, used this
saying, fit motto for Carey, έξ οζων εζς
οζα. {Font=Courier New Greek}
2
The shopmate, William Manning, preserved this signboard. In 1881 we found a
Baptist shoemaker, a descendant of Carey’s wife, with four assistants, at work
in the shed. Then an old man, who had occasionally worked under Carey, had just
died, and he used to tell how Carey had once flipped him with his apron when he
had allowed the wax to boil over.
3 In
the library of the late Rev. T. Toller of Kettering was a manuscript (now in
the library of Bristol Baptist College) of nine small octavo pages, evidently
in the exquisitely small and legible handwriting of Carey, on the Psalter. The
short treatise discusses the literary character and authorship of the Psalms in
the style of Michaelis and Bishop Lowth, whose writings are referred to. The
Hebrew words used are written even more beautifully than the English. If this
little work was written before Carey went to India--and the caligraphy seems to
point to that--the author shows a very early familiarity with the writings of
one who was his predecessor as a Christian Orientalist, Sir William Jones. The
closing paragraph has this sentence:--“A frequent perusal of the book of Psalms
is recommended to all. We should permit few days to pass without reading in
Hebrew one of those sacred poems; the more they are read and studied, the more
will they delight, edify, and instruct.”
4
Twice reprinted, in Leicester, and in London (1892) in facsimile.
5 Wealth
of Nations, Book IV., Chap. VII.
6
Mr. Thomas Haddon of Clipstone writes: “I recollect when I was about ten years
old, at my father’s house; it was on a Saturday, Carey was on his way to Arnsby
(which is twenty miles from Moulton) to supply there the following Sabbath; he
had then walked from Moulton to Clipstone, a distance of ten miles, and had ten
miles further to walk to Arnsby. My honoured father had been intimately
acquainted with him for some years before, and he pressed him to stay and take
an early cup of tea before he went further. I well recollect my father saying
to him, ‘I suppose you still work at your trade?’ (which was that of an army
and navy shoemaker). Mr. Carey replied: ‘No, indeed, I do not; for yesterday
week I took in my work to Kettering, and Mr. Gotch came into the warehouse just
as I had emptied my bag. He took up one of the shoes and said, “Let me see,
Carey, how much do you earn a week?” I said, “About 9s., sir.” Mr. Gotch then
said: “I have a secret to tell you, which is this: I do not intend you should
spoil any more of my leather, but you may proceed as fast as you can with your
Latin, Greek, and Hebrew, and I will allow you from my own private purse 10s. a
week!” With that sum and about 5s. a week which I get from my people at
Moulton, I can make a comfortable living’ (although at that time he had a wife
and three children to provide for).”
7 Farewell
Letters on Returning to Bengal in 1821.
8
Rev. A. T. Clarke succeeded Kiernander in 1789 in the Old or Mission Church,
according to Miss Blechynden’s Calcutta Past and Present (1905), p. 84.
9 At
this time, and up to 1801, the last survivor of the Black Hole tragedy was
living in Calcutta and bore his own name, though the missionary knew it not.
Mrs. Carey was a country-born woman, who, when a girl, had married an officer
of one of the East Indiamen, and with him, her mother, and sister, had been
shut up in the Black Hole, where, while they perished, she is said to have
retained life by swallowing her tears. Dr. Bishop, of Merchant Taylors’
School--Clive’s School--wrote Latin verses on the story, which thus conclude--
“...Nescit sitiendo perire
Cui
sic dat lacrymas quas bibat ipsa fides.”
--See
Echoes from Old Calcutta, by Dr. Busteed, C.I.E.
10
But not its Church. In October 1796 Mr. A. Johnstone, thirty years elder in
Lady Yester’s congregation, beside the University of Edinburgh, began a prayer
meeting for Carey’s work and for foreign missions. He was summoned to the
Presbytery, and there questioned as if he had been a “Black-neb” or
revolutionary. This meeting led to the foundation of the Sabbath School and
Destitute Sick Societies in Edinburgh. See Lives of the Haldanes.
11
Dr. Marshman’s English translation is still used, beginning--
“Oh!
thou my soul forget no more
The Friend who all thy misery bore.”
12
The chatookee is a bird which, they say, drinks not at the streams below: but
when it rains, opening its bill, it catches the drops as they fall from the
clouds.
13
The sight of the red coat of the military surgeon who attended him gave this
form to his delirious talk: “I treated him very roughly and refused to touch
his medicine. In vain did he retire and put on a black coat. I knew him and was
resolved.”
14
In a criticism of the three Sanskrit grammars of Carey, Wilkins, and
Colebrooke, the first number of the Quarterly Review in 1809 pronounces
the first “everywhere useful, laborious, and practical. Mr. Wilkins has also
discussed these subjects, though not always so amply as the worthy and
unwearied missionary. We have been much pleased with Dr. Carey’s very sensible
preface.”
15
It was reserved for a young Orientalist, whom the career of Carey and Wilson of
Bombay attracted to the life of a Christian missionary, to do full justice to
this book and its literature. In 1885 the Hon. Ion Keith-Falconer, M.A.,
published, at the Cambridge University Press, his Kalilah and Dimnah, or The
Fables of Bidpai: Being an Account of their Literary History, with an English
Translation of the later Syriac Version of the Same, and Notes. The heroic
scholar and humble follower of Christ, having given himself and his all to
found a Mission to the Mohammedans of South Arabia, at Sheikh Othman, near
Aden, died there, on 11th May 1887, a death which will bring life to Yemen,
through his memory, and the Mission which he founded, his family support, and
the United Free Church of Scotland carry on in his name.
16 THIRTY-SIX BIBLE
TRANSLATIONS,
MADE AND EDITED BY DR. CAREY AT
SERAMPORE
First
Published
in
1801. BENGALI--New Testament; Old
Testament in 1802-9.
1811.
Ooriya " " in 1819.
1824.
Maghadi " only.
1815-19.
Assamese " " in 1832.
1824.
Khasi.
1814-24.
Manipoori.
1808. SANSKRIT "
" in 1811-18.
1809-11. HINDI "
" in 1813-18.
1822-32.
Bruj-bhasa " only.
1815-22.
Kanouji " "
1820.
Khosali--Gospel of Matthew only.
1822.
Oodeypoori--New Testament only.
1815.
Jeypoori "
1821.
Bhugeli "
1821.
Marwari "
1822. Haraoti "
1823.
Bikaneri "
1823.
Oojeini "
1824.
Bhatti "
1832.
Palpa "
1826.
Kumaoni "
1832.
Gurhwali "
1821.
Nepalese "
1811. MARATHI-- " Old
Testament in 1820.
1820.
Goojarati " only.
1819.
Konkan " Pentateuch in 1821.
1815. PANJABI "
" and Historical Books in 1822.
1819.
Mooltani--New Testament.
1825.
Sindhi--Gospel of Matthew only.
1820.
Kashmeeri--New Testament; and Old Testament to 2nd Book of Kings.
1820-26.
Dogri--New Testament only.
1819. PUSHTOO--New Test. and Old Test.
Historical Books.
1815. BALOOCHI " Three
Gospels.
1818. TELUGOO " and
Pentateuch in 1820.
1822. KANARESE " only.
MALDIVIAN--Four Gospels.
EDITED AND PRINTED ONLY BY
CAREY
Persian. Singhalese.
Hindostani. Chinese (Dr.
Marshman’s).
Malayalam. Javanese.
Burmese--Matthew’s
Gospel. Malay.
17 Life
and Work in Benares and Kumaon, 1839-77. London, 1884.
18
Mr. John Marshman, in his Life and Times of the three, states that Fry
and Figgins, the London typefounders, would not produce under £700 half the
Nagari fount which the Serampore native turned out at about £100. In 1813 Dr.
Marshman’s Chinese Gospels were printed on movable metallic types, instead of
the immemorial wooden blocks, for the first time in the twenty centuries of the
history of Chinese printing. This forms an era in the history of Chinese
literature, he justly remarks.
19
The fervent printer thus wrote to his Hull friends:--“To give to a man a New
Testament who never saw it, who has been reading lies as the Word of God; to
give him these everlasting lines which angels would be glad to read--this, this
is my blessed work.”
20
In 1795 Captain Dodds, a Madras officer front Scotland, translated part of the
Bible into Telugoo, and, lingering on in the country to complete the work, died
seven days after the date of his letter on the subject in the Missionary
Magazines of 1796.
21
Then Editor of the Friend of India.
22
The Chaitanya Charita Amrita, by Krishna Dass in 1557, was the first of
importance.
23
Nor was his influence confined to the Protestant division of Christendom. When,
on the Restoration of 1815, France became once more aggressively Romanist for a
time, the Association for the Propagation of the Faith was founded at Lyons and
Paris, avowedly on the model of the Baptist Missionary Society, and it now
raises a quarter of a million sterling a year for its missions. The expression
in an early number of its Annales is:--“C’est l’Angleterre qui a fourni
l’idée modèle,” etc. “La Société des Anabaptistes a formé pour ses Missions des Sociétés,”
etc.
24 Life
of Alexander Duff, D.D., LL.D., chapter i.
25
Fuller more than once referred to the dying words of Sutcliff--“I wish I had
prayed more.” “I do not suppose he wished he had prayed more frequently, but
more spiritually. I wish I had prayed more for the influences of the Holy
Spirit; I might have enjoyed more of the power of vital godliness. I wish I had
prayed more for the assistance of the Holy Spirit in studying and preaching my
sermons; I might have seen more of the blessing of God attending my ministry. I
wish I had prayed more for the outpouring of the Holy Spirit to attend the
labours of our friends in India; I might have witnessed more of the effects of
their efforts in the conversion of the heathen.”
26
The Baptist missionary, who became an Arian, and was afterwards employed by
Lord William Bentinck to report on the actual state of primary education in
Bengal.
27
The first India chaplain of the Church of Scotland, superintendent of stationery
and editor of the John Bull.--See Life of Alexander Duff, D.D.
28
His Majesty’s Lord Chamberlain formally expressed to the British Minister at
Copenhagen, H.E. the Hon. Edmund Monson, C.B., the King’s high pleasure at “the
author’s noble expressions of the good his pre-possessors of the throne and the
government of Denmark tried to do for their Indian subjects,” when the first
edition of this Life of William Carey, D.D., was presented to His
Majesty.--See Taylor and Son’s Biographical and Literary Notices of William
Carey, D.D., Northampton, 1886.
29
In 1834, the year Carey died, there were in the college ten European and
Eurasian students learning Hebrew, Greek, Latin, Bengali, mathematics,
chemistry, mental philosophy, and history (ancient and ecclesiastical). There
were forty-eight resident native Christians and thirty-four Hindoos, sons of
Brahmans chiefly, learning Sanskrit, Bengali, and English. “The Bengal language
is sedulously cultivated...The Christian natives of India will most effectually
combat error and diffuse sounder information with a knowledge of Sanskrit. The
communication, therefore, of a thoroughly classic Indian education to Christian
youth is deemed an important but not always an indispensable object.”
30
Serampore--Srirampur or place of the worshipful Ram.
31 Aitchison’s
Collection, vol. i., edition 1892, pp. 81-86
32 Life
of Alexander Duff, D.D., LL.D., 1879.
33 William
Carey, by James Culross, D.D., 1881.
34
For years, and till the land was sold to the India Jute Company in 1875, the
Garden was kept up at the expense of John Marshman, Esq., C.S.I.
Sa. Rs.
35
“From May 1801 to June 1807, inclusive, as Teacher of
Bengali and Sanskrit, 74 months at 500
rupees monthly 37,000
From 1st July 1807 to 31st May 1830, as
Professor of
ditto, at 1000 rupees monthly 2,75,000
From 23rd Oct. to July 1830, inclusive,
300 rupees
monthly, as Translator of Government
Regulations 24,600
From 1st July 1830 to 31st May 1834, a
pension of 500
rupees monthly 23,500
“Sicca Rupees 3,60,100”
36 The Evangelical Succession. Third Series. Edinburgh, Macniven and Wallace, 1884.